#there is content to imply them?? lmao
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
actually another reason that dasher fan hating post is so funny is because anon goes "let them be childhood friends in peace" and erik himself proceeds to not do so, himself.
like yeah they could be just friends, but why did david let him kiss his cheek? LMFAO
and then in another audio david talks about how dating within the pack just makes the dynamic weird
but in another universe, they do end up together (granted he does die in that universe, but thats irrelevant)
and like- he basically implies that the only thing actually stopping him is pack dynamics, in this universe anyway-
and helping him with his tie???? and calling them 2 sides of the same coin????? and getting married together??????
#sure these things could be platonic#but idk ash and milo for example#dont have this much will-they wont-they content/tension#im not saying you have to like dasher#but i am saying that shippers arent forcing it out of nowhere#there is content to imply them?? lmao#tell erik to make em less gay not us bro#redacted fandom#redacted asmr#redacted audio#redactedverse#shaw pack#redacted david#redactedasmr#indi's yap sessions
80 notes
¡
View notes
Text
what's the worst shonen ending? wellđ whatever shonen is ending right now of course
#funny ass phenomenon to see play out twice in as many months but people always being like âthis ending SUCKSâ#and the ending is exactly the same quality as the rest of the manga. which may or may not be bad but like you stuck it out this whole timeđ¤¨#specifically though I'm so tired of hearing âthis ending is rushedâ just cause I never know what the fuck that means#like normally when people make a critique of smth I can follow the thought process even if I don't agree#but like ârushed endingâ I'm always confused cause like 9 times out of 10 I'm like what else would you have stuck in this epilogue#besides what DID get stuck in this epilogue. like what would we have added. not necessarily that I always like what we got#but then that's like. I would replace it entirely. ârushedâ implies that they just didn't include ALL the content they should have#also epilogues aren't really supposed to have much in them i think. idk. lmao#like genuinely maybe I would agree that something is rushed BUT I NEVER KNOW WHAT YOU MEANNNNN#I don't actually care about this the post makes it sound like I really do but honestly I see such minimal amounts of discourse idc#I was just giggling about this for a moment. like. lmao. worst shonen ending is the shonen that's ending
2 notes
¡
View notes
Note
What will S Tord do when he learns that R Tord slept with his Tom? Love the blog!â¤ď¸đ
cw: Slight suggestive talk (I just talk about safewords idk Im ace shut up ruskdnfe)
I really doubt STom would let it go that far, sure he might let RTord get a little bit spicy with him but he would DEFINITELY feel that something is off from there. His Tord is just as much of a perv as RTord is, but his brand of degeneracy has a respectful flavor to it, yknow?? The kind of degeneracy with a safeword.
RTord does not know their safeword, his husband always asks him if he remembers it whenever they start getting intimate, STom would ABSOLUTELY start clocking on that this man is NOT his husband.
Though, even so, just the fact that he got far enough would probably lead STord to initiate a smack down and boy howdy, RTord is in the body of an ailing old man right now and STord is NOT afraid to exacerbate his disabilities.
He will ABSOLUTELY throw down with a crippled man and right now?? Heâs a decade younger and his bones dont hurt LETS GO WEABOO BITCH
#asks#blueengineercherryblossom#regimen ao3#ew stay au#The Conference Table#also TY hahaha sorry its sorta dead on my content rn#as I am battling the climate of a country not my own#Also you donât date someone for years and not know all the subtle facets that makes them THEM#Like my ex was somebody I dated for maybe a year#and even THEN I would be able to tell them apart from an imposter#its the ~vibes~ you feel me? lmao#STom: [squints] youâre a lot more confident today love#RTord: Oh? Well thank you#STom:âŚ.too confidentâŚ..*secretly powers up gun*#also I dont think its that suggestive??#Iâm violently ace so any mention of sex gets tagged riskdjf IDK??#I just talk about safewords in this ask so it implies sex thats it#idk dont hit me HRHAJSJF
25 notes
¡
View notes
Text
ARB?????????????????????????????????? SAMATOKI AND KUUKOU??????????????????????????????
#this is vee speaking#AFTER WE JUST HAD LEADERS EVENTS BACK TO BACK?????????????#NO WAIT SAMATOKI AND KUUKOU WERE THE GRIND CARDS FOR THOSE BRUH#ARB REALLY SAID YALL PAYING FOR ALL THESE LEADERS LMAO#BUT FRESH SAMATOKI AND KUUKOU CONTENT??????????? FFFFOOD???????????????#the event implies samajuto are in need of assistance related to katengumi matters#so iâm on my hands and knees begging this wonât be another event like the samajutoârosho halloween one#where samatoki spoke like three words to rosho and it was at the end of the event lmao#please donât be like the đ´đ°đŽ event where they barely interacted pls#i want them to be cool with each other but like in a friendly antagonistic way#basically i need samatoki and kuukou to gleefully rile each other up and to also agree to make juto miserable lol đ#the arb chronicles
9 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Mentally preparing myself for whichever character gets the Rauâshan shard to be temporarily swarmed with negativity for their supposed greediness
#the second I see anyone being mean I am putting them in a salad spinner#aka blocking them#pls pls be normal! I know itâll happen regardless of who takes it#but the fact that it hasnât even happened yet and Iâve already seen multiple neg/crit posts abt fearne and ashton#the two most likely to get it tonight#fills me with nothing but fear in regards to what the response to it ACTUALLY happening will be lmao#discourse#vaguely. itâs implied. hypothetical upcoming discourse#this is a safe space for truthers of ANY CHARACTER getting the shard#regardless of my personal preferences for who I would most like to see get it#at this point Iâd be genuinely content with and interested in any of them getting it#gonna be honest at this point Iâm more interested in seeing WHAT HAPPENS to them more than who gets what#especially bc itâs been implied that weird surprise dunamancy shit is going to pop off simultaneously???
1 note
¡
View note
Text
"creature of myth."
pairing: vampire!gojo x fem!human!reader summary: when you receive an offer of marriage from a mysterious wealthy lord, itâs too good a deal for your family to turn down. but nothing could be so perfect... right? content: MDNI (18+Â ONLY), dark content, nsfw, gets dubcon/noncon in some spots, yandere behavior from gojo, implied death/k*lling of a character (not reader or gojo), arranged marriage, victorian au, plot that ends with porn lmao, spooky dooky vibes, blood, blood sucking/eating, praise, biting, unprotected sex, creampie, virgin!reader, discussion of virginity, cherry popping, pain, pet names (princess/love), reader is highkey clueless about sex, discussion of masturbation, ideas of masturbation as âsinfulâ, very minor religious themes, fated âmatesâ, gojo is highkey insane, coercion and manipulation, like SO much neck kissing, ooc gojo??? (had to alter his character to match a victorian vampire lord LMAO). a/n: PLEASE READ THE CONTENT WARNINGS. THERE IS DARK CONTENT AHEAD. is this a gojo fic or a twilight fic?? Going back to my roots fr fr. straight down to the âSAY IT, SAY ITâ. this fic is also way too long my apologies bbs. i hope you like a hefty side of plot with your porn. parts of this fic feel way too cheesy to me but sometimes i eat that up, yk?? this fic was inspired by this amazing work by @rice5x ! and, finally, thank you all for the support on my most recent fics. i'm just getting back into being active on this blog and it's been amazing reading each and every comment/reblog/ask. they genuinely fill me with so much joy. keep them coming hehe. anyway, i hope you enjoy and remember, ALL AGELESS BLOGS WILL BE BLOCKED. credits: dividers by @cafekitsune. banner art by @ndsoda on twitter. wc: 11.6k (sowwy)
You remember perfectly the way your motherâs jaw dropped when Satoru Gojo proposed to you. Youâd never seen the man, and you still hadnât. Heâd asked to marry you via messenger, a simple letter delivered by hand with a list of all the things heâd be willing to pay for your hand. Offers of money, land, protection, connection- anything so long as he got you. Youâd thought it was a joke. Your father nearly took a shovel to the head of the poor messenger, thinking the letter was some kind of cruel prank, some sort of targeted disrespect. Youâd only started to believe when you really looked- saw the Gojo crest embroidered on the manâs suit, the fine leather of his boots. If it was a prank, somebody had spent a great deal of money and effort to pull it off.Â
Youâd asked for proof nonetheless, and youâd gotten it. Documents signed and sealed with a well-known waxen crest, gifts that could only have been purchased by a wealthy lord. The one thing you never got was the lord himself. He refused to see you, to come down from his mysterious castle on the hill. It didnât surprise you. He rarely deemed town worthy of his presence. He had a reputation as a recluse, as a man who only ever liked to see and never be seen. What little glimpses people got of him were usually through the dark window of his carriage. Still, his appearance preceded him. White hair, light eyes⌠âhauntingâ said those who had the luck to see him. Those who went to work for the lord tended to return⌠changedâ if they returned at all.Â
You accepted, of course. How could you not? You were a peasant family with no status or wealth to your name. The promises Lord Gojo had made would make your parents into aristocrats all on their own. But that left you wondering⌠why did he want you? You offered him no benefit. If anything, you sullied his bloodline. The question scratched at the back of your mind. It came to you while you ate breakfast, while you washed your clothes, while you weeded in the garden. Some part of you told you that you needed the answer before you ever stepped foot in that castle. You needed that answer, but youâd never get it.Â
Your wedding wasnât even a wedding- just a piece of paper that had already been signed and witnessed, once again delivered by a familiar messenger. You signed at your dining room table and⌠that was that. You were married.Â
Later that night the carriages arrive. Men flood your home, all dressed in blue velvet, the Gojo crest embroidered on their chests. They seem puzzled when you tell them youâve packed all your belongings into a measly three bags.Â
You say a quick goodbye to your parents, drawing them into stiff embraces. You love them, and they love you, but you canât bear to see their faces as they send you away to a man who couldnât even show his face for your wedding.Â
The carriage ride is somehow longer than youâd thought it would be- apparently, the castleâs size makes it seem deceptively close. The trip is rocky and twisty and altogether unpleasant as you steadily make your way toward the castle gates. By the time you reach them you think youâve probably dozed in and out of consciousness at least half a dozen times.Â
The castle is even more intimidating up close. Spires that swirl into the clouds, sculptures that stare, doors that look more suited to being locked than opened. Itâs⌠terrifying.Â
When you finally roll to a stop, you move for the door. When you swing it open you get your fair share of strange looks from your attendants and remember that you should have waited for the footman. Your face heats as you climb out anyway, unwilling to subject yourself to the further humiliation of waiting for assistance.Â
Your feet hit gravel and all you can do is stare- up, up, up, to where the castleâs peaks disappear into the fog. When your eye flashes to a window on the east side of the manor you think you see a swaying curtain. You tuck your arms around yourself and shiver, but itâs not from the cold.Â
You nearly stumble over your feet on your first step inside. The entrance hall is larger than your former house, with ceilings that stretch so high you can hardly make out the figures on the frescoes that adorn it. Silver and blue drape everywhere, the Gojo family colors. You swallow when you see a chair that is most definitely worth more than your familyâs annual income.Â
The floors are marble and when your worn heels clack against it, you only feel reminded that you donât belong here. That question pricks in your mind again as you pass portraits of every Gojo heir to have lived in the last three hundred years. Why me? Why me? Why me?Â
Your footman deposits you in your room, a place more lavish than youâve ever seen. You have a four poster bed with a canopy of blue velvet, a window that overlooks a sprawling estate, and more square footage than youâve ever dreamed of.Â
âPull this if you need any sort of assistance, maâam.âÂ
You turn to see your footman referencing a silver cord at your bedside. You assume itâs one of those contraptions that rings a bell in the servantsâ quarters. You try to hide your amazement- youâve never seen one in real life before.Â
You clear your throat and give your most ladylike nod. âThank you, um-â you pause, your brow furrowing. âIâm sorry, I donât think I asked your name.âÂ
Your footman appears stunned to silence, like heâd never expected you to care about his existence, much less his name. He recovers quickly, though, and forces a small smile. âThomas, maâam.â
You smile and itâs genuine. âThank you, Thomas.âHe bows and makes a beeline for the door, but you have one more question. âOh, um, Thomas-â He freezes, turning slowly on his heel to face you.Â
âYes, my lady?âÂ
You cringe at the title. The sound of it creeps across your skin, foreign and⌠wrong. Why me? Why me? Why me?
You clear your throat again. âDo you know, um, well-â You shift, trying to word your question properly. âDo you know when I might see the Lord?âÂ
There is a pause, a moment of tension and silence, and then an answer. âNo, my lady.â
Thomas does not stick around for more questioning. The door clicks shut behind him and then you're left with only the sound of retreating footsteps.Â
Youâre stunned to say the least, mouth still halfway open, more questions on the tip of your tongue. Should you seek him out? Was that proper? Would he come to you? Would he meet you for dinner, perhaps? Surely he would come to your room tonight to⌠consummate. Would that be the first time you lay eyes on him? When heâs over you?Â
You sigh. Thereâs nothing much to be done about it now. You find your way to the bed and sit down hesitantly. It feels like a crime to rumple such primped and polished cotton. You do it anyway- itâs going to happen sometime, right? You fall back against the mattress and donât fail to notice how utterly comfortable it is. The silvery patterns on your canopy swirl and bend together. Youâre tired. You didnât sleep much last night, anxious for the morning⌠and itâs only mid-afternoon now. You had time for a nap, right? Your eyes are closing before you can convince yourself itâs a bad idea and then youâre swept away into a world of warm darkness.Â
You wake with a start. Your first thought is that itâs dark now. Your room is pitch black except for the stream of moonlight passing through your stupidly large window. Your mouth feels dry and your skin is cold, like youâve just woken from a nightmare. If you have, you donât remember it. Perhaps thatâs a blessing.Â
You sit up, combing a finger through your hair and laughing pitifully when you realize that you left your shoes on as you slept. You hope Thomas didnât walk in to find you in yet another unladylike position. A glance at the foot of the bed reveals he might have. Your bags have arrived- all three of them. You eye them with a combination of longing and contempt. They don't match this place. Theyâre worn and used- everything here is shiny and new. Still, theyâre all you have, and all you have left of your life before. All you have left of home.Â
You stretch your arms above your head, nearly groaning at the burn in your muscles. The carriage ride did your body no favors and you suspect youâll be sore for many days to come.Â
You rise, no longer content to lie in bed. Youâve had your rest and, from the state of darkness outside, you suspect your new husband might be joining you soon. The thought twists a certain tightness into your gut, but you push it aside. If that was the price you paid for all he gave your family⌠then youâd pay it gladly.Â
You start with candles, finding a box of matches at your bedside. You light every candelabra you can find. The room, the castle, seems so perpetually⌠black- like it soaks up every ray of light it touches. Even when youâve finished it doesnât feel like enough. You make a note to ask Thomas for more in the morning.Â
You find a meal, carefully prepared and preserved, on a table near your dresser. Judging by the fact that itâs still warm, you conclude that it canât be much past mid-evening. You originally intend to pick at the food as you unpack, but one bite has your mouth watering. It is the most delicious thing to ever touch your lips, complete with dessert waiting on the side. You clean your plate before moving onto your bags.Â
You lay your clothes out on the bed. A few dresses, riding pants, undergarments, an assortment of ribbons and bows. At one time these items had been the finest things you owned- now you owned a castle.Â
You find an armoire that looks like a master sculptor carved its edges and grab a dress, intending to hang it. Instead, your dress hits the floor when you part the doors to find the hangers already full. Your lips part. Luxury dresses of silk and satin line the rack, fading into some that appear more casual outfits of cotton and linen. You stretch a hand out, curious and utterly⌠amazed. To think your new husband had gone to all the effort⌠Your hand brushes purple silk and-Â
âDo you like them?âÂ
You screech, jumping to face the voice at your back. It takes a moment for your eyes to find him, leaning casually against one post of your bed. Your breath is stolen for a second time. Snow white hair, piercingly blue eyes, pale soft skin⌠you know who he is even without looking at his dress, at the air of authority he claims. Heâs your husband⌠and he is the most devastatingly beautiful thing youâve ever seen.Â
He laughs, then, and itâs a warmer sound than youâd thought it would be- rich and full. A sound that seeps into your bones and settles in your soul.Â
âSorry. Didnât mean to scare you,â he says, but the twinkle in his eyes makes you think that perhaps thatâs a lie.Â
Your heart pounds and your eyes flash to the door. Itâs shut. You didnât hear it open, nor did you hear it close behind him. You also didnât hear footsteps, didnât hear breaths, didnât hear him.Â
He follows your gaze and laughs again, though it sounds a bit⌠strained?Â
âI have a habit of being unintentionally lightfooted. I apologize.âÂ
Your heart is still pounding but you find it in yourself to have some decorum. You snap your jaw shut and bow your head slightly in respect. âYou must be Lord Gojo. Forgive me for my insolence.âÂ
Thereâs a beat, and then footstepsâ ones you actually hear this time. You clench your jaw when he stops before you and then nearly gasp when he takes your hand and brings it to his lips.Â
âSatoru, please,â he winks and you think you might stop breathing. âI am your husband after all.âÂ
You force yourself to nod, to swallow, to act normal. But how can you in the presence of a man that looks like⌠that? Thereâs something too unreal about him, too perfect. Itâs almost⌠unsettling.Â
âOf course⌠Satoru.âÂ
He straightens and shows you a close-lipped smile that digs a dimple into his left cheek. You have to look away to avoid stumbling over your own feet.Â
âSo, do you like them?â Your brows furrow- âThe dresses,â he clarifies.Â
âO-oh.â Your features relax into an easy smile. You turn back to your armoire, running a hand along another gown. You donât think youâve ever touched something so⌠finely made. âI like them very much. I donât know how to thank you.âÂ
Thereâs a little chuckle as you turn to face him again and you have to steel yourself before you meet his eyes. Heâs mesmerizing, too mesmerizing. You think you could probably lose yourself in those eyes foreverâŚÂ
âNo need to thank me. If they donât fit, weâll call for the seamstress in the morning.âÂ
You nod softly, still lost to the situation. Thereâs a beat of silence in which your husband does nothing but⌠look at you. His eyes roam freely and the hair on your arms stands under his gaze. He traces the lines of your nose and jaw and lingers on your pulse. Can he see just how fast your heart is pounding?
âDid you⌠get dinner?â Itâs a stupid question, you know, but you donât think you can bear another second of that look heâs giving you. âI fell asleep and found a plate. I hope I didnât prevent a proper mealâŚâ You trail off. Perhaps you shouldnât have pointed out your own shortcoming?Â
He gives you another smile and you swear he inches just a little closer. âYou did no such thing. Iâm⌠perfectly satisfied.âÂ
You nod, glad that he doesnât seem upset at the very least. Your lips press together, unsure of what to do or say. Youâve never had a husband before. Wasnât he supposed to just sort of⌠put you on the bed and⌠do it?
Your eyes flit to said bed and your husband must see because he hurries to continue.Â
âWell, Iâll see you in the morning then, hm?â His eyes flit to your armoire and back again. âWear the blue dress with the lace to breakfast, yeah? Been dying to see it on you.â He chuckles like heâs just told some sort of amusing joke.
Your brows furrow. That was⌠not the topic youâd been expecting. âYouâre notâŚâ You feel your cheeks heat and tighten your jaw. âNot staying the night?âÂ
His lashes lower a fraction and those eyes pierce you again. You donât think you could move even if you wanted to, even with him prowling closer, each step eating up the space between you. He doesnât stop until youâre nose to nose and you can feel his breath fanning over your cheeks. Itâs cold somehow, chilling, and you shiver. He smirks.Â
âNot tonight.âÂ
His head dips and for a moment you think heâs going to kiss you, but then heâs bypassing your mouth altogether and- his lips connect to your pulse. His mouth is cool, just like his breath, and you shiver uncontrollably under his touch.Â
His touch is just a fleeting moment, just a wrinkle in time, and then heâs gone. His footsteps are quiet brushes on the hardwood and the creak of the door even seems tamed in his presence.Â
âGoodnight,â is all he says, and then heâs gone.Â
You climb into your bed an hour later wondering what in the world just happened.Â
~Â Â
You do wear the blue dress to breakfast and you can only gape in the mirror when you realize that it fits perfectly. It has you second-guessing yourself. Had you sent your measurements in advance and forgotten about it? No, youâd only sent a handful of pieces of information to the Lord prior to your marriage and you remembered all of them very clearly. Everything had gone through a messenger, everything had been clear and directâ you would have remembered sending your measurementsâ you didnât. So had he just⌠guessed?Â
That seemed impossible with how everything fit you like a glove, but it was the only explanation you had. The only one that made sense.Â
When you join Satoru for breakfast itâs in a sitting room as lavishly decorated as the rest of the castle, but perhaps organized to be a bit more⌠liveable. He has no plate in front of him, only a tin cup that hides the contents of whatever heâs drinking. You assume coffee or juice. Perhaps heâs just not a breakfast person.Â
âIt fits!â he says. His hands clasp together in front of him and he smiles again, dimples and all.Â
You nod and fight the heat that bubbles beneath your cheeks as you take your seat. âYes, perfectly.â
A plate is set before you and a glance up reveals itâs Thomas serving your breakfast. You smile, hoping for some acknowledgement from him, for a small piece of comfort. Instead, you get his averted gaze and quick retreat. Your brows furrow, but before you can say anything, Satoru is back to speaking.Â
âI hope Thomas treated you well yesterday?âÂ
You glance up, but Satoruâs eyes arenât on you, theyâre on your footman. His smile is bright, but itâs anything but friendly. You fight a shiver.Â
You glance at Thomas. Heâs perfectly still, perfectly straight, but you think you see a muscle clench in his jaw. You clear your throat. âY-Yes. Thomas was very helpful.â When Satoru keeps staring the boy down you add, â-and very respectful.âÂ
That seems to satisfy. Satoru breaks his stare and some of the tension in the air instantly eases. He shoots you another dimpled smile, this one with a little more warmth. âPerfect.âÂ
Thereâs a beat and then heâs standing, draining whatever he has in his cup and then straightening his jacket. âWell, I have some work to do. Iâll see you for dinner?â Heâs grinning again, like itâs so normal for a man to abandon his bride on their wedding night and then again the morning after. All you can do is nod. He chuckles. âSee you then, princess.â And then heâs gone.
~
If this is to be your life you don't know how you will survive it. You spend the day milling about. Through the gardens, through the castle, through the stables. Thomas is never far behind, but any attempt at conversation is nipped in the bud by hit shortness. Itâs like he fears coming too close. Heâs never closer than a couple paces except when he has to bring you something, only to retreat again as soon as possible. The other servants barely pay you any mind apart from giving you a respectful greeting and then immediately averting their eyes. There is no work to be done, no guests to be had, no parties to plan⌠and no Satoru. You donât see your husband once on tour around the grounds. You ask Thomas where his office is only for him to vaguely point out a window in the east tower. You donât see so much as a ripple in the curtains.Â
Dinner comes around at the pace of a snail. When itâs finally time to get dressed a ladyâs maid whose name you donât even catch arrives to help you lace your dress. As soon as your corset is deemed tight enough sheâs back out the door with a curtsy. Thomas leads you to the dining room and your eyes roam the whole way. Even after having spent the whole day exploring, there are halls and corridors that youâve yet to step foot in.Â
The dining room is just as gorgeous as the rest of the placeâ filled with singular items that could feed entire families for years. Somehow, you think youâve already grown accustomed to such things, since the only thing you truly care to look at is your husband. Satoruâs already seated, but he stands when you enter, looping around the table to pull a chair out for you.Â
You give him your most genuine smile, accepting a kiss to your knuckles in greeting before you settle. âHow was your day?â you ask as he takes his seat again.Â
He chuckles. âPerfectly fine. And how was yours, princess?â Your nose crinkles. Thatâs the second time heâs called you that. Something about it feels wrong. Youâre still getting used to being a lady. Princess feels even worse.Â
âIt was⌠good.â
You watch a perfect white brow arch in the candlelight. âOh? Just good?â You donât miss the way his eyes flicker to the cornerâ to Thomas.Â
You hurry to elaborate. âWell, I justâ I canât help but feel as if thereâs not much⌠use for me.â Servants flood in, some carrying wine, others carrying trays that hold more food than the both of you could ever possibly consume.Â
That brow arches impossibly higher. âUse?â His lips crack into that smile again, but itâs tight this time. Too tight. âYou have no use. You only enjoy yourself. Surely Thomas has told you that.âÂ
A plate of steaming food plops in front of you. Even its heavenly smell canât quell the sudden dread in your gut. âOf course! Of course he did.â Your stomach twists and you decide that perhaps now is not the time to press the subject. âIâll just⌠Iâll try riding tomorrow.â You hate riding, but itâs the first thing that comes to mind.Â
Satoruâs smile thaws into something less menacing. âIâm sure youâll enjoy that.âÂ
You nod eagerly. âIâm sure I will.âÂ
You grab your fork, eager for a new subject. From what you can tell, dinner is roast chicken and vegetables, though itâs the luxury version as everything seems to be. The spices are intoxicating and the green beans are even arranged in a pretty little pattern that makes them look too good to eat. You do anyway. The first bite nearly makes you moan, but you chew slowly, delicately, trying not to let your upbringing show.
Itâs not until several bites later that you realize youâre the only one eating. A quick glance reveals your husband has no platter, no chicken or green beans. Heâs only⌠watching you. You clear your throat, dabbing at your lips with a napkin.Â
âYouâre not⌠eating?â
That permanent smile grows a little wider and you canât help but feel as if thereâs something⌠menacing about it. âAte before I came.âÂ
Your brows furrow. âOh. Were you on the road?âÂ
You think you see something wild flash in his eyes. âNo.âÂ
The rest of dinner passes slowly, almost painfully. Satoru doesnât eat a bite, doesnât even look enticed. You wonder how thatâs possible when it smells like a spice bomb went off in the dining room.Â
By the time youâve cleared your plate youâve discussed everything from the number of horses in the stables to kinds of crops grown on the estate. Itâs comforting to know a little more about your new home, but itâs not enough.Â
âIs there a library?â you ask. Youâre on dessert now. Itâs the best chocolate cake youâve ever had and it takes everything in you to hold back a moan each time it touches your tongue.Â
âOf course.â Your husbandâs eyes flicker to Thomas again and youâre honestly starting to fear for the poor footmanâs life. Everytime you ask a question itâs like Satoru is angry it hasnât already been answered. âItâs yours to use as you please.âÂ
You smile lightly. âPerfect. Thank you.âÂ
He softens a bit at that. âIs there anything specific you wanted to read about?âÂ
You shrug. âThe estate, I suppose. I should know my homeâs history, no?â
His eyes get that wild look again, that sparkle that you know speaks to nothing good. âOh, absolutely. I have some personal favorites to recommend. Iâll leave them aside for you?âÂ
You swallow and give him a shallow nod. âThat would be perfect. Thank you.âÂ
He chuckles. âMy pleasure.âÂ
When dessert is finally over, you stand slowly. Satoruâs not far behind you, saying heâll walk you to your room. Your heart leaps at his words. Will he stay with you tonight?Â
He offers you his arm in the hall and your mouth runs dry when you feel the corded muscle beneath his jacket. By the time you reach your room, youâre thinking of tugging him in behind you. His denial to stay with you last night was not only confusing, but⌠off putting. Nearly offensive. Did he not like how you looked? Did he think something was wrong with you?Â
You muster all the courage you possess and force your lips apart. âWill you stay with me tonight?âÂ
His eyes spark again and you hold your breath. He presses closer. This is it, you think. His lips hover over yours, eyes glimmering in the candlelight. And then he dips his head, his mouth pressing to your pulse.Â
âNot tonight,â he whispersâ and then heâs gone.Â
~
You wake suddenly. Itâs the middle of the night, you gather. The light streaming through the window is weak enough to only be that of the moon.Â
Your heart is pounding and your skin is slick with sweat despite the chill in your bones. A nightmare, you think. It must have been a nightmare.Â
As you settle back into your sheets you swear you see a ripple in the darkness. You close your eyes. If your nightmare is real, youâd rather not see it coming.
~
The library is huge. Itâs sprawling and smells of paper and leather and everytime Thomas lights a candle you flinch at the idea that one misplaced spark could end thousands of years of knowledge.Â
The books Satoru left you are⌠perfect. Just what you were looking for. Theyâre all comprehensive volumes of the history of the estate, many of which reference each other. Youâre stunned to see that several are written by very well-known authors of both the past and the present. You knew the Gojo familyâs influence reached far, but not that far. You peruse the titles. The Gojos: A History, A History of the Gojo Crest, History of the Gojo Castle, Revisiting the Gojo Family: A Comprehensive History. Altogether you have well over a few thousand pages of informationâ but thereâs one book that doesnât fit with the rest. Itâs relatively unassuming. A black cover with some sort of gold rune etched onto its front. When you flip to the title page it reads âCreatures of Myth and Where To Find Themâ. Your brows furrow. You slide it to the sideâ must have gotten mixed in with the others, you think.
~
You ask Thomas to bring the books to your room. He does. Very respectfully. He sets them on your bedside table and then retreats like a kicked puppy with only a polite goodbye. You sigh. His behavior has only gotten stranger in the past few days. You think the servantsâ coldness must have something to do with Satoru, but you canât figure out why. Had he ordered them to stay away? Why would he?Â
You decide itâs a question for another day and dive into your books. You spend hours, days, reading every chapter, page, and word. The pure amount of information is dizzying. Apparently this specific estate had been in the hands of the Gojo family since the eighth century (with several razings and consequential rebuilds). You also learn that Satoru was not only the most wealthy lord on the continent, but the most wealthy man. Even wealthier than the king apparently, though that fact was kept fairly under wraps to protect the crownâs ego. The estimates of your husbandâs net worth made your head spin.
Satoru joins you for breakfast and dinner every day. You never see him eat a morsel. Itâs⌠unsettling to say the least. Itâs always just that tin cup, filled with something you could never quite see. You develop a pattern of waking in the night, too, with the overwhelming sense that something is watching you. Sometimes you could swear you feel the bed shift as you jerk awake. Each time you simply close your eyes and try your best to slow your heart, convinced your mind is playing tricks on you.Â
Your days feel a little more productive with a book in your hands, but youâve read them all three times over by the time a fortnight has passed. You find yourself packing them up to return to Thomas when a certain black cover catches your attention. You grab it from the pile and settle back into your seat. Youâve nothing better to do, right?Â
You flip back the cover, revealing a familiar title. âCreatures of Myth and Where to Find Themâ. You donât recognize the authorâs name. A quick scroll through the table of contents reveals nothing particularly interesting, but you pick a random chapter on ghouls and decide to start there.Â
Itâs fascinating. Nothing about the style is boring and the words fly by. Your silly little myth book is a page turner. By the time you notice the light has started dying youâve read about ghosts, fairies, werewolves, and goblinsâ all of which have been a delightful little read. A glance at the clock reveals you have a half hour before dinner. One more chapter, you think. Your eyes skim the title. âVampires [Vampyr]â.Â
You skim the first paragraphs until your eyes settle on a line that catches your eye.Â
âContrary to popular belief, vampires are not always crazed blood-hungry monsters. Many live among humans quite comfortably and are able to avoid detection with a little well-placed effort.âÂ
You purse your lips. What a⌠terrifying thought. You skim a little further.Â
âA vampireâs key characteristic is, of course, their desire and need to drink human blood as sustenance. However, a vampire can be spotted sooner if one is able to recognize their subtler traits. Vampires often have skin lacking any sort of flush. The lack of blood in their veins results in a sickly pallor, even after the most rigorous exercise. Their skin is also noticeably cold to the touch. At best, a vampireâs body will reach room temperature. Vampires can also be noted for their preternatural beauty. They will stand out as the most attractive person in any crowd. Finally, a vampire will have fangs. If one wishes to identify a vampire, one only needs a good look at their teethâ.
A chill settles over your skin. You flip ahead a few pages.Â
âVampires are unable to consume typical human food. Should they attempt to, their bodies will immediately reject any and all foreign substances.âÂ
Your stomach drops. You donât want to think about why. You skip the rest of the paragraph.Â
âVampires possess several supernatural abilities that set them apart as a humanâs predator rather than their equal. Vampires are known to move unnaturally fast and are notably light footed. If a vampire does not wish to be heard, they will not be. A vampireâs strength is inhuman, well over ten times that of the average man. They also have a penchant for darkness, an ability to hide away in the shadows that cannot be explained. Oftentimes they will seem to appear from thin air.â
You skip ahead again.
âVampires have been known to take mates. Mates usually come in the form of another vampire, but in some cases a human has been chosen. Vampires are fiercely protective of their mates, bordering on obsession. Any person deemed a threat to their bond or their mateâs safety is usually disposed of quickly. Oftentimes, vampires make these decisions with haste, with little regard for whether or not the threat was real. A vampire will do everything in their power to please their mate, but have been known to forcibly restrain their mates in situations of unrequited feelings. Above all else, vampires wish to possess their mates. Two bonded vampires will sometimes spiral into gloriously destructive fits in their endless desire to protect and possess one another. A vampire bonded to a human will show an increasingly protective nature, often isolating their mate from others.â
Your heart pounds. A bead of sweat rolls down your back. You flip the pages, desperateâ desperate for a piece of information that will save you from the thoughts spilling in your mind, from the thoughts you will do anything not to believe. You reach the âWhere to Find Themâ subsection and nearly gasp with relief. Surely, vampires do not pose as wealthy lords of Europe?Â
âVampires can be found everywhere. They do not exist in only one country or continent, but all over the world. Odds are that you have faced at least one vampire in your life, unknowingly or not. Some vampires choose to live solitary lives, surviving in the wilderness where human society will not attempt to tame their wild nature. Others choose to live among humans, some even existing in positions of very high authority.âÂ
No, no, no. This canât be happening to you. It canât be real. Youâre dreaming, youâre having one of those nightmares again. Youâre going to wake up any second.Â
âOne tale recounts a razing of the Gojo estate in the 12th century.âÂ
Youâre panting, hyperventilating. This isnât happening.Â
âSoldiers of the enemy force recounted a singular man, the son and heir of the then Lord Gojo, taking out a minimum of 800 men. He was described as having his familyâs characteristic white hair as well as blue eyes. Eyewitness accounts depict the Gojo heir as covered in blood and killing savagely and with inhuman strength.âÂ
No, no, no.Â
â(See next page for only existing portrait)â
Your fingers tremble but you canât stop them. Thereâs no way. Itâs not possible.Â
You flip the page and Satoru stares back at you.Â
Knock! Knock! Knock!
You nearly scream. Your door rattles angrily, but youâre not sure you can answer it, not with the knowledge flooding your mind. The knocking continues. You run your hand over your face and smooth down your hair. You feel frazzled, dirty, despite not having moved from your chair all day. Another knock prompts you to set your book aside and stand. You do your best to compose yourself, to put on a straight face. You fail instantly when you pull back the door not to reveal your faithful attendant, not Thomas, but Satoru.Â
You bite back a shriek and instead force a smile. Youâre suddenly very aware of the blood pounding in you veins and of the fact that he most likely knows.Â
âHello,â he says, but his voice is lower than usually, more intense.Â
You force a breath into your lungs. âHello,â you answer, but it sounds more like a squeak than a greeting.Â
Something flashes in his eyes, something familiar, something that is no longer interesting but rather terrifying. âAre you alright? You seem a little⌠flushed.â The concern on his face feels anything but genuine.Â
âIâm fine,â you answer, but even you can tell that reply too quickly, too eagerly. You rush to cover it up. âIs it time for dinner? Whereâs Thomas?âÂ
His lip twitches and you see a muscle in his jaw flex. âThomas has⌠left us.âÂ
No. This wasnât happening to you. There was no way this was happening to you.Â
âHe⌠what?â Thereâs an unmistakable wobble in your voice that only causes Satoruâs face to fall further.Â
âItâs no matter. Heâs gone. Now itâs just you and me, hm?â He chuckles and the sound rattles your bones. âIn fact, I was thinking Iâd cut down on the number of servants we have entirelyâŚâÂ
You mind races with the memory of knowledge you wish you didnât have. âVampires are fiercely protective of their mates, bordering on obsession. Any person deemed a threat to their bond or their mateâs safety is usually disposed of quickly.â
You nearly stumble, but lean against the doorframe just in time. Your husband had disposed of a man, all because he brought you meals and books?
âWhat have you been up to today, princess?â The question breaks your trance just in time for you to see your husbandâs eyes flicker behind you.Â
You wet your lips. âJust some reading.â You plead that he doesnât ask anything further. He does.Â
âAbout the estate?â he asks.Â
You nod and try to swallow the lump in your throat. âYes.â
His smile returns and this time itâs not forced. âYou got my books, then?âÂ
You try smiling back, but youâre fairly sure it looks more like a grimace. âYes.â
âAnything interesting?â he presses.
This isnât happening. This canât be happening. Does he know? Does he know that you know? âYes, of course. Lots.âÂ
He pauses and you see the debate and then the decision in his eyes. You think itâs the first time youâve felt true terror when he meets your gaze again. âI think we should skip dinner tonight. It seems we have so much to discuss.â
You donât even have the wherewithal to scream when he steps into you, forcing you back until heâs shutting your door behind him. He doesnât stop there, though. He keeps pressing, keeps pushing until your knees hit the bed and youâre falling to the mattress. He crawls right after you.
âWho knew my little wife was such a reader? All those books in such a short time⌠You must be simply spilling with information.âÂ
You retreat across the mattress, squeaking when your back hits the headboard and his arms cage your waist. Youâre trapped.
His hands find your hips and youâre all too aware of how cool his touch is. Even more so when he pulls you right into his lap.
âSatoru-â your voice is pitiful, breathless, and youâre ashamed to say itâs not just from the fear in your gut. Heâs never been this close before, never touched you, held you like this. âThomas-âÂ
âDonât speak his name.â His face pulls into the first scowl youâve ever seen and the sight is enough to root you to the spot. Never have you seen anything more frightening. A creature so beautiful, so perfectly angelic, filled with an insurmountable rage. Itâs wrong. âHeâs gone. Heâll never bother you again.â Heâs closer now, his breath skating over your skin. Itâs cool and now you know the reason why.Â
You shake and tremble and you knowâ Thomas is dead. Your husband killed himâ killed him for getting too close when all he did was stay at a distance. Satoru killed him. Killed him.Â
He buries himself in your neck, his voice a near whine. âThought I could put up with it, just so youâd have someone to take care of youâŚâ He groans. âI was so wrong, princess. Couldnât stand it. Couldnât stand the way you smelled more like him than meâŚâÂ
You feel him melt against you then, relief washing over his body in a wave. âBut heâs gone. And now itâs just you and me, hm? Just you and meâŚâ He hums, like remembering that fact is all heâs ever needed.
Heâs kissing your pulse again, now, and your heart is racing faster than ever. Your fingers curl into his shoulders. You should push him away, away, away. Heâs a killer, of thousands no doubt. Youâve never felt at home here, never felt like you belonged. This is why. Youâre not even the same species. Heâs something else, something your hands were never meant to touch.Â
Your mind screams at you to do go, to shove and kick at him and leave this place behind. Go, go, go your gut says⌠but you donât. You canât. Itâs too⌠good. The feeling of his cool lips against your skin, of what youâre sure is his tongue prodding at your pulse⌠itâs intoxicating. He is intoxicating. How could anyone blame you for wanting more of someone, something, so divine?Â
âHave you figured it out yet, love?â Your breath hitches and he chuckles, licking a long stripe up your neck, before he settles back at your pulse. Always your pulse. âI can feel those little gears turning. Tell me, what have they discovered?âÂ
He knows you know. But heâs going to make you say it. You swallow and feel his grip on you tighten. âYouâreâŚâ Your breaths come faster. You canât. Not aloud. Aloud makes it too⌠real.Â
âYessss?â he prods. Heâs licking at you again, all the way across your throat to find your other pulse-point.Â
âYouâre notâŚâ Something sharps nicks at your skin and you bite your lip to hold back a whimper.Â
âGo on, princess.â You think heâs just smelling you now, just burying his face as close to you as possible and taking you in.Â
You close your eyes tightly, holding back tears. âNot human,â you breathe. A piece of you breaks with the admission.
He huffs a little laugh against your skin and pulls back to look you in the eye. âThatâs good,â he purrs. âBut I think you can be a little more specific, no?â His lips press to your chin, then the corner of your mouth, then down to your jaw⌠âTell me.âÂ
Your lips wobble, muscles clenching tighter with each passing moment. You donât want to say it, donât want to speak it into existence, but you also donât dare to disobey him.Â
âYouâre aâŚâ You shake and tremble. He draws a line up your neck with the tip of his nose.
âMhm?âÂ
You open your eyes, thinking this might be the last time you see. âVampire.âÂ
He chuckles and you feel his teeth press to the skin of your neck. âThatâs right, princess. So smart.âÂ
He smiles and you suddenly realize youâve never seen his teeth before. Everytime he smiles at you itâs close-lipped and dimpled. But this⌠this is the smile of a predatorâ all white and pointy and fitted with a set of menacingly long fangs. You sob at the sight.Â
âShhhhh,â he coos. He has your chin in his hand, forcing you to truly look at him, to see him for what he is. âI wonât hurt you, love.â You want to believe him so badly it burns, but his laugh washes away any fire and turns it to ice. âNot unless you want me to.â He wiggles a brow like itâs just a little joke, like heâs not an actual fucking vampire that had his fangs over your neck just moments ago.Â
âSatoru,â you beg. Youâre not sure what youâre begging for. Release maybe? But, no, thatâs not right. You donât want him to let you go, not when you finally have him close after all this time. âWhy did you pick me?âÂ
The question slips out. You hadnât even been thinking about it, hadnât even noticed it scratching at the walls of your mind, but it made its way out nonetheless.
His brow creases, but not in confusion. Moreso in⌠thoughtfulness. âDo you think about that a lot, princess?âÂ
You nod and you suddenly want him closer, want him to touch you everywhere, hold you like his life depends on it. You want him, no matter how horrible it might be.Â
He nods and hums, kissing the tip of your nose lightly. âWellâŚâ he says. His thumb swipes over your lips when he leans in to whisper in your ear. âAt first I wanted you for this.â His head dips to your neck again and you feel the familiar brush of his lips against your throat. âYou smellâŚâ he chuckles. âLike heaven. Which is a place Iâll never get to on my own, so I had to bring my own little slice home, no?â He laughs again, a little louder this time, genuinely amused. âWent into town one day and caught your scent on the street. At first I thought I must be walking past the bakery, but, lo and behold, there was no baker in sight.â Heâs still kissing at your pulse, worshiping it. âWent crazy, princess. Didnât think I was going to be able to contain myself when I found you. Thought it might be quite the scene.â He huffs a laugh and you shiver, somehow both terrified and intoxicated. âBut then I saw youââ he groans and something clenches deep at your center. âAnd I knew I needed more than just your blood. Needed you.â Heâs rocking into you now, and your breath catches when you feel something firm against your backside. âWent to you in that little room you slept in every night. Watched you. Couldnât stay away. Knew I had to have you.â You feel him smile against your skin. âAfter a week I couldnât take it anymore. Sent you that letter, married you. Made you mine.â He groans again. âThen I met you and you were so pretty, princess. Already knew it, but hearinâ you talk to me, look at me.â Teeth graze your pulse. âNeeded you more than ever. Almost took you right on the fucking floor in here while you were lookinâ at those dresses.â You whine when his hips roll into you again. âOh, but I knew I couldnât. Youâre so fragile, love. Had to wait, had to make you feel safe, yeah? Spent all this time forcing myself to stay away, âfraid of what I might too if I was in your presence too long. Had to control myself. Had to make you realize you could trust me.â He panting, like heâs so pent up he can hardly sit still. âDo you trust me, princess?âÂ
Your brows scrunch. Say no, say no, say no a part of you screams. Run, run, run. You canât. âYes,â you breathe.Â
You feel him smile again, feel the pleasure of submission. âGood girl.âÂ
Youâre on your back. It happens so fast your eyes donât even have time to gasp. You donât see Satoru, but you feel him. Everywhere. His hands are roaming your body softly, sliding under buttons and laces and popping them off. Your dress loosens with every passing moment until Satoru reappears above you, diving straight for your neck again. âSo good, princess. Letâs get you out of this dress, yeah?âÂ
You nod wordlessly, entranced. He finds your mouth as he rids you of your clothes. His tongue presses in and you flail against him, unsure of what to do, of how to handle the intrusion. The kiss is heavy, too heavy, but Satoru canât seem to stop. He devours you as he gives up on laces and buttons and simply shreds your dress down the back. You tremble when the cold air hits your skin, when his cool fingers dust your collarbone.Â
âI always forget how many damn layers they make you ladies wear,â he chuckles. His hands run beneath your shift, up across your bare thigh. You gasp at the touch. No one has even been so close to you before. You feel the threads of your corset snapping away, feel your breaths growing deeper. You tremble when he pulls your sleeve down past your shoulder and runs his mouth along the newly exposed skin.Â
âSatoru,â you gasp, and your hand pulls at his flowing white shirt.Â
He chuckles, pulling back just enough to see your face. âYou wanna see me too?â You nod, lips parted and eyes glassy, and he laughs again. He lips dust over the corner of your mouth. âAlright.âÂ
His hands shift from you to himself, working at the laces on his chest. His movements are speedy, practiced, like heâs been lacing and unlacing shirts for hundreds of years. Your throat tightens when you realize that he has.Â
You gasp when he reveals himself, when his shirt slides away to reveal an expanse of pale skin and carved muscle. Youâve never seen a man like this and seeing one this close up for the first time is nearly blinding. Heâs art, you think- nothing less.Â
âTouch me, princess,â he says. You canât. You shouldnât. Heâs too beautiful, too perfect to be beneath your insignificant hands. âNeed a little help?â he asks, and thereâs a lilt in his voice that makes you sure heâs grinning.Â
His hands find yours and bring them to his chest, running your palms over his collarbones, his pecs, down, down, down across his abs that you can feel each and every one⌠You whimper, watching your own fingers grope his skin. He pulls you lower, lower, lower, and you gasp when your fingertips brush the waistband of his pants. But then heâs laughing again and heâs throwing your arms over his shoulders and pulling you closer, kissing your neck like it pained him to be parted from your pulse for so long.Â
âNot so fast,â he says, like he wasnât the one nearly stuffing your hands down his pants. His hands are on your corset again. You can feel it dangling onto you by a thread, literally. All he needs is a couple more pulls and youâll be bare. By the look he gives you, you can tell heâsÂ
thinking the same thing. âYou touch me, now I touch you, yeah?â Thereâs a tug and a tear and then so much⌠cold. Youâve never realized how cold this castle is, not until youâre exposed to its elements fully. Youâre naked.Â
Satoru sits back on his knees and just watches. His gaze is searing, burning, despite the iciness of his being. Itâs too much. Your hands move to cover yourself, to maintain some modicum of your dignity-Â
âNo.â Strong hands find your wrists and pry them apart. âLet me see you,â he says. His tongue darts out to lick his lips.Â
Your jaw clenches and your frame shakes, but you do as he asks, letting your hands fall limply at your sides. Thereâs silence for many more moments and it seems to go on so long that you can only squeeze your eyes shut under his gaze. Surely he will turn you away now, get up and leave, tell you this was a mistake, tell you that youâreâÂ
âBeautiful,â he breathes. Your eyes snap open to find him already staring at you. âBeautiful,â he says again, and then heâs on you, lips at your pulse, hands on your skin. His touch is cool and you squeak at the chill that runs up your spine. Youâre not sure itâs entirely from his temperature.Â
His mouth seeks yours and he devours you. You feel as if heâs sucking your soul out through your lips. âTell me youâve never done this before,â he begs. âTell me Iâm the first to touch you.âÂ
You whine against his mouth, both aching for more and overwhelmed by what heâs already giving you. âY-Youâre the first,â you whisper.Â
His groan is deep, primal. It rattles through your chest and you whimper when his hands dig into your waist hard enough to bruise. âYes,â he breathes, and you shiver again. âLie back, princess.â Your eyes widen, with anticipation or fear youâre not sure. Probably both. He chuckles. âDonât worry. Iâll be gentle.âÂ
You pray he means that. âJust relax, love. Here, hold my hand.â His fingers find yours, twining them together. When you swallow, his eyes follow the bob of your throat. He leans back again and your body twitches when his free hand skims the skin of your thighs. His tongue darts out to wet his lips as he finds your knees and you gasp when he parts your legs, revealing you so completely to his gaze. The way he stares, like heâs committing you to memory, itâs nearly enough to make you snap your thighs shut, but a squeeze from his hand reminds you to relax, to trust.Â
His palm skates up your thigh and settles near your hip, his fingertips inching closer to where you can feel an embarrassing throb.Â
âTell me, love. Have you ever touched yourself here?â His fingers dust low on your tummy- just low enough for you to catch his meaning, but not low enough to give you any relief. Your face heats and your teeth dig into the flesh of your cheek. You have, you have touched yourself there, but itâs the last thing you want to admit to your new husband. Itâs shameful, itâs dirty, itâs- âDonât think Iâll judge you, princess. Just wanna know.âÂ
You gulp down a breath. You should come clean. âY-yes,â you stutter, and the sound of your voice so weak and helpless only makes you flush further.Â
He chuckles and squeezes your hand again. âOn the outside or the inside?âÂ
Your eyes widen. I-inside? Youâd never considered that⌠âJ-just the outside,â you answer.Â
Your eyes grow even wider when his head rolls back and he moans straight up to the ceiling like your answer is heaven-sent. When he looks back to you his fangs are on full display. âWell, I think you and I are in for a little treat today, hm?âÂ
Your brow furrows and your lips part to ask him what he meansâ his fingers travel those last few inches down your tummy and find your clit. You squeak and jolt so violently that he presses a hand to your hip, holding you to the mattress. âSomebodyâs sensitive,â he chuckles. He holds you still for a moment and then lets your hips go free. âTry to stay still. I promise itâll feel good.â
You nod hopelessly, but this time youâre prepared for when he touches you again. Your muscles clench at the first touch, at the foreign sensation of a touch down there that wasnât your own. But then itâs more. Itâs languid, slow circles around a spot that youâve never been able to pinpoint so well on your own. Itâs heat building in your tummy that seeps through every vein and into every pore. Itâs relaxation that youâve never known, that has you melting into the mattress despite the chill of the touch.Â
Thereâs a little huff of a laugh and then his voice. âGood girl. Feels nice, yeah?â You nod hesitantly and squeeze desperately at his hand, searching for an anchor. His head cocks to the side and you watch the smile slide across his lips. âItâs about to feel even nicer.âÂ
By the time you realize what heâs doing itâs far too late to stop him. His mouth closes around your cunt and you yelp, trying to wiggle away from the overwhelming sensation- but heâs got his freehand on your hip again and his grip is bruising, punishing, as he holds you in place. He licks a stripe through your folds and you find yourself jolting again, uselessly so against the pressure of his palm on your hip. âStop that, princess.â Your heart drops at the admonishment until you feel his guiding touch. âRock into me like this.â His hand rocks your hips into his mouth and the pressure of his tongue against your clit is so delicious that you whimper. âGood girl,â he says and your heart rises right back up. âKeep doing that, now.â You donât dare defy him. You rock like he showed you, a little jerkily at first, and then you find a rhythm that has you seeing stars. âThatâs it, love,â he says, and the sound is muffled against your cunt. âHere, put your hand in my hair.â He finds your wrist and guides you forward until your fingers are tangling in those snowy locks. Theyâre even softer than youâd imagined. âGood girl,â he whispers and suddenly heâs taking one last long lick and lifting his head to meet your eyes. ââM gonna put my fingers in you now, princess.â Your chin wobbles. âIt might hurt a little bit, but stay still, okay?â You canât do anything but nod.Â
His eyes return to your cunt and you can feel him prodding at your entrance, circling the hole as you clench in anticipation. âRelaaaaaax, love,â he says and you nod. A deep breath in through your nose and out through your mouthâÂ
You feel the exact moment he pushes into you and a whine of pain rips from your throat. Your walls clamp down like a vice, angry at the intrusionâ but itâs already too late. Thereâs a beat of silence, of anticipation, and then heâsâ laughing?Â
Your brows furrow when you hear it, your head lifting to a sight that locks your limbs in shock. Satoruâs hand is lifted in front of his face, his pointer finger coated inâ blood, you realize. Your blood. And heâs a fucking vampire.Â
âOh princess,â he coos, and the manic look in his eyes makes you tremble. âYou really are perfect.âÂ
Things seem to slow as you watch him take his blood covered finger into his mouth. Youâre sure youâve never seen an expression more blissful, more lost to sensation. His eyes roll back and his body shivers, like heâs ascending to some higher plane. Maybe he is.Â
When he pulls his finger from his mouth itâs completely licked clean. You hold your breath. Heâs going to go for your neck now, right? Heâs had a taste and now heâll want more of it, all of it?
âFuck,â is all he says. His mouth is back on your cunt so fast you donât even see him move.Â
Your mouth falls wide. It hurts, the way he is so desperately licking at you. You feel his finger again, pressing in, in, in, only to pull back and suddenly be joined by another. The stretch tears at you. You thrash and jolt, but Satoru doesnât bother telling you to stop this time. His arm wraps over your hips, holding you in place. He seems immune to how hard your legs squeeze at his head or your hands pull at his hair. Heâs lost. You can feel him licking, lapping, and prodding at you like youâre a fucking gold mine. Heâs lost to desperation, to the need for more, more, more. Every so often he lifts his chin and you see his mouth smudged with a mixture of your wetness and your blood. He laps at his lips like an animal, dragging his thumb across his chin and sliding it into his mouth to make sure he gets every last drop.Â
Youâre not quite sure when the ravenous pain turns to a ravenous pleasure, when it turns from terrifying to downright delicious. You donât notice your moans filling the air until Satoru joins you, groaning and whining into your cunt and telling you to keep going, to keep making those sounds. The hand you have buried in his hair doesnât fight to push him away any longer, only to pull him into those now practiced rocks of your hips. His fingers thrust deep, curling into a spot that makes you feel so good and his mouth has found your clit again. He sucks your nerves lightly between his lips, tongue swirling in little circles. Your thighs start to shake.Â
âYes. Yes. Give it to me.âÂ
âS-Satoruââ you breathe. Warmth and tightness pool in your tummy, and you recognize it as your approaching orgasm, though you know this one will be far different than any youâve ever managed to give yourself. Your body shakes and your breaths tremble and thenâ you fall over the edge, rocking your hips senselessly, losing all form of rhythm. Warmth tingles in your spine and seeps all the way down to your toes. You think you cry out, cry for your husband, cry for more, cry for less, but if you do you donât hear it. All you hear is the pounding of your pulse, of pleasure throbbing in your veins until the world slowly seeps back in through the corners of your vision.Â
Satoru is grinning. A speck of your blood clings to his chin and his fangs peek out from behind his lips. The sight makes your blood run a little colder. If any part of you doubted what he was before⌠well, there was no doubt any longer.Â
Thereâs a shift between your legs, his hips slotting between them, and youâre suddenly snapped back to reality. From the look in his eyes, youâre not done.Â
Frantic hands find his pants and he undoes each button with a quickness that is almost inhuman. You wonder if he could go even faster, if heâs holding back so as not to scare you. If he is, it isnât working very well. Fear surges in your veins right alongside anticipation.Â
âS-Satoruââ
âItâs alright, love.â His hand finds yours without his eyes ever looking up. His grip is just a little too firm, a little too cold. âJust stay still.âÂ
You whimper, but you donât think heâs paying attention to that, and soon enough, neither are you. His pants slide down just past his hips, just enough. You gasp.Â
Youâve never seen a man in the nude, never even dared to think about what it might look like, though it seemed you no longer had to guess. His hand wrapped around his shaft, giving one long and slow stroke that made his breath hiss through his fangs. The tip was flushed, angry, and leaking something that looked clear and sticky. You couldnât help but notice it was a lot thicker than a finger, or even two. If his fingers had hurtâŚ
He moves with that alarming quickness again, leaning down to hover over you, chests nearly pressed together. âGonna take you now, princess. Gonna make you mine.â His eyes bore into yours, blue and shimmering with something wild. His hand presses into the mattress beside your head. âStay still, now.â
Itâs all the warning he gives you. You feel like youâre splittingâ straight up the middle. You wail, hands flying out to claw at his back. It hurts. It hurts.Â
âSatoru, p-please! ItâsââÂ
Lips catch yoursâ hungry, feral. The kiss is not gentle, not soothing. It shuts you up, it keeps you quiet, it keeps you still as you feel him sinking further, deeper into you. Itâs too much, you try to say, but the poke of sharp teeth against your lips keeps you silent. Your hips jolt and wiggle trying desperately to escape the stretch but itâs no use. By the time heâs fully inside you, tears are streaking down your cheeks, fat and heavy. His lips break away and his eyes reappear. You shake when you see that none of the wildness has been tamed, that youâve only just begun.
âGood girl,â he coos, and a cool finger traces a line across your jaw. âTook me so well.â You hold back a sob when his hips shift a little, testing, prodding. He must see the pinch of your eyes, the twist of your mouth, because heâs quick to comfort. âJust hold my hand, princess.â His hips rock in earnest this time and you whimper, squeezing down on his hand with all your might. Youâre panting as he chuckles. âBreathe, love. Breathe. Soon youâll be begging for more,â he laughs. Itâs not long before heâs rocking into you sincerely, setting a pace that stretches you to the brink of breaking. At first itâs all you can do to grasp onto him, to bite your lips through the whimpers and hold his hand. And then itâs⌠more. Itâs heat and warmth despite the coolness of his body on yours. Itâs sensation and⌠pleasure. He laughs when the first moan slides past your lips, burying his face in your neck once again. You hear him at your ear, panting his hot breath across your skin.Â
âFeel good, princess?â You nod, letting your hips rock against his as he showed you before. It feels goodâ it feels right. He chuckles, but thereâs nothing light about the sound. âWanna feel even better?â Something sharp pokes at the skin of your neck, hard enough to make you squeak, to make you freeze at what you know he wants.Â
He pulls himself back, pressing his forehead to yours, searching your eyes with his. Something like a cruel smile dances on his mouth. âJust a taste, love. I promise it wonâ hurt.â His tongue darts out and licks across your lips, his thrusts rocking just a bit faster. âYouâll feel sâ good anâ Iâll only take a little.â He laughs again and it sends a chill through your bones. âPromise.â He sounds breathless, like heâs struggling to restrain himself. The increase of his pace makes you whine and you squeeze his hand again. He buries himself back in your neck, panting. âCome on, love. Say yes. Say yes fâ me.â Your eyes glaze over. Your body justles with each new thrust. Heâs desperate now, seeking a release that you donât think is any kind youâre familiar with. âYes, yes, yes,â he chants in your ear. Youâre not sure when his words twist in your mind, when they settle on your tongue and push past your lips, but you know it feels so right when they do.Â
âYes,â you whisper.Â
His fangs clamp around your pulse. You scream when the sting rips through you, violent and savageâ but it only lasts a moment. Pain fades to⌠ecstasy. You feel his throat bobbing with each swallow, feel your blood seeping from your skin and onto his tongue. Youâd thought it would feel slicing, draining, like the life was being sucked from you. It doesnât. It feels wonderful. Heat spreads under your skin, emanating from your neck and down to your toes. It feels like breathing for the first time, like sugar being pumped into your veins. It feels like heaven. Your hand tangles in his hair, holding him close. You donât want it to stop, not ever. You could die like this, have him suck every last drop of blood from your veins and thank him for it with your dying breath.Â
Heâs moaning now, hands curling into your hips while he fucks into you relentlessly. The pace is grueling and brutal. You know it should hurt but only feels perfect. Anything less would not be enough. Anything else would leave you wanting. You feel it building, feel that familiar twinge at your core. The ecstasy flooding through your veins has it coming faster, has you teetering on the edge in moments.Â
âSatoruâŚâ You hadnât noticed how dizzy you felt until you tried to speak. You wonder why⌠ââM gonnaâŚâÂ
He fucks you harder, something menacing and deep rumbling in his chest. The sound makes you shiver, makes you whine, makes you come.Â
Your body shakes and a cry rips from your throat, cunt clenching like a vice around him. Your eyes roll back, hands scraping trails down his back. Your thighs quake with the intensity, with the overwhelming senses of pleasure that erupt throughout your body. Every nerve is firing, every hair rising. Itâs an unstoppable current, one that sweeps you away, helpless to its pull.Â
His thrusts grow sloppy and untimed. His grip on your hips tightens, holding you in place while he makes you his. His teeth break from your neck and when you look up through blurry eyes you see his head thrown back, your blood streaming down his chin in thick little globs. You feel it when he cums, feel the thick ropes of it seeping into your womb, feel the way he keeps fucking you, pushing it deeper and deeper inside. Heâs moaning, chanting your name like a prayer at the heavens.Â
When the moment ends he slumps over you, eyes half lidded and tired. Thereâs a familiar grin on his lips, one that inspires both comfort and uneasiness in your gut. You canât help but stare at him, at the blood that stains his chin and cheeks, that reddens his lips so beautifully. You want to reach out and touch him, touch his blood-soaked skin and see what it feels like, what it tastes like. What you taste like.Â
His eyes slide to the side, finding your pulse again. You groan. Yes, you think. Please, yes. More. You donât think youâll ever get enough of that. Of his teeth in your flesh, of the euphoria flooding your veins. More, more, more, your mind chants.Â
He chuckles lightly and shakes his head. âNo, princess.â He raises a finger to trace the curve of your neck. âI took more than I should haveâŚâ His expression doesnât tense with worry. His cheeks pull into a smile, those little dimples shining through. âBut what can I say? You just taste so good.â Like he needs to emphasize his point, his tongue darts out to trace his lips, lapping up some of the remaining blood on his chin. âYou taste like mine.â
You whine. More, more, more. Itâs all you can think about. You lift an arm weakly. You want to pull him to your neck, to make him drink, to make him fill you with the heaven you had just moments ago.Â
He catches your wrist and brings it to his lips, inhaling deeply. His lips split into another grin and you see his eyes spark again with the wildness you crave.Â
âNot yet, princess.â he coos. âBut soon.â His smile grows even wider, until those fangs are on full display, until youâre trembling again. âForever,â he whispers.
taglist (dm me or send an ask to be added!): @lacheri, @la-undercover-latina, @keiva1000
please consider leaving a comment, sending an ask, or reblogging! interacting with authors is the best way to support them! thanks for reading âĄ
#gojo#gojo smut#gojo x reader#jjk gojo#satoru gojo#gojo satoru#jjk x reader#jjk#jjk smut#jujutsu kaisen#satoru#jujutsu gojo#jujutsu kaisen smut#jjk x reader smut#vampire gojo#vampire#tw: loss of virginity#tw: yandere#jujustu kaisen#gojo x you#bree's fics!
33K notes
¡
View notes
Text
meraki | jjk (m)
MERAKI (v., Greek). "to do something with soul, creativity, or love; to put something of yourself in your work." Summary: Jungkook finds you irritating; far too energetic and insistent. But his perception of you changes bit by bit, minute by minute, when he's persuaded into spending an entire night with you at places he doesn't know.
âł pairing: Jungkook x reader âł rating: 18+ âł genre: e2l, grumpy!jk (+ photographer!jk) x sunshine!reader; fluff, smut âł warnings: bickering, bantering, jk is a bit rude at the beginning, flirting, tension, oc is bold and courageous, mention of someone being stoned, mention of insomnia, jk's lip rings <3, heights, not exactly e2l but more like "i find you pretty annoying" to lovers lmao, deep talks and sweet moments, one bed trope, guest appearance, jk takes pictures of pretty things, stars and sky talk <3, explicit sexual content: kissing/making out, implied pain kink? lol, fingering, manhandling, oral (f. & m. receiving), teasing, 69, spitting, one or two spanks, bit of choking, soft and hard sex, unprotected sex (oc has an iud), soft dom!jk but also glimpses of sub!jk, ofc biiiig dick!jk, doggy/riding/missionary, praises, more flirting, jk's godly body, masturbation, cum swallowing (he comes in her mouth); the lovely ending <3 âł word count: 26.6k <3 âł a/n: you guys built this fic!! 𼺠hopefully this is what we expected it to be. it's also yet another love letter to one of the gentlest men i know; happy birthday, jeon jungkook, you're the standard and i will never fall out of love with you đ i hope y'all enjoy it!! come and talk to me when you're done mwah <3
TAGLISTÂ | MASTERLIST | WIPs
1:04AM, Her
Thereâs a word for how you do what you do.
A term you hold dearly in the crevices of your bright heart. Ever since you first learned its meaning two decades ago, youâve made it your primary goal to breathe through life with it as your philosophy.
Passion, it is. A word certainly common in conversation and daily life â youâre not the only person to live by it. Doesnât mean youâre not allowed to wallow in it.
Because thereâs a fire behind your hard-working chest, lit up, pride residing next to it. Itâs where you feel the most vivid light when you do what you love, blooming and blossoming. There are synonyms of it you know, and each of them are pretty as a growing garden.
You gatekeep them for now; havenât yet found a person to share your knowledge with. Which is okay; in the meantime, youâll keep looking. You do think everybody needs something like this in their lives.
Something that forces your body upright, sprinkling fairy dust and glimmer into your eyes. Something you can resort to in order to escape the trials of life.
For you, as odd it may seem to people, itâs your job.
You usually work late like today, surrounded by sounds and disquiet. But you enjoy it. You like stepping into the night afterwards, and you like the dark blanket above, the starlight sprinkled across the comforting blackness.
And you like it when it drizzles sometimes. The giggles of couples or groups of friends as they wade through the rain. The absolute quiet and relieving serenity.
You live for this. You enjoy people. You enjoy sensing life around you.
Tonight isnât different. Even when you find yourself hastening by the end, wrapping up the event with a dozen chores to tackle; even when the host rushes to you, asking for help. Your shoes click-clack across the floor as you move left and right, up and down.
But by God, you never doubt these daysâ worth.
1:04AM, Him
Sometimes, people donât want to be photographed.
Jungkook learned that early on when he agreed to be a photographer at events. Heâs encouraged and urged to ask people to pose; thatâs his job. Waiting for them to force a smile before they can resume eating, debone their fish or work on their lobsters, beef, veggies.
They long to return to whatever they were doing, or to their conversations, mostly insignificant ones; Jungkook knows because he, involuntarily, hears too many of them.Â
Itâs only when theyâre dancing or drinking that they open up. Thatâs when theyâre okay with listening to him, obedient, almost as if heâs authority, staring into the lens with flushed cheeks and wide grins.
Though itâs irritating when every other person walks up to him afterwards, inquiring when theyâd be receiving the photos, or, even ruder, if at all.
Today, there are a few more comfortable people around. Not as harsh, not as grim as he feels. Youâre here, too, somewhere; of course you are â you got him here in the first place. Somehow, your paths often cross. You were ready for a picture immediately, drawn in by the host, smiling.
He perceived your presence just for a second, though. Doesnât need or want any more than that. Youâre too loud, too energetic anyway; heâs rather among himself, not in any photo, indulging in the job.
He loves clicking through his camera roll; itâs the people that tire him out. Working his way through the pictures he took once home gives him joy, though. Makes his fatigue feel worth it.
But God, youâre not the only one, right? So many people here are the same amount of enthusiastic, party people to the core.Â
Which is why heâs happy when the night finally concludes, and he, far after midnight, stuffs his equipment back into his bag and slips into his at least somewhat chic blazer.
1:12AM, Her
You groan as your hand dives into your bag, fishing out the key that you already removed from your keychain an hour ago. Back when the man facing you approached you; heâs the last face you see when you step out of the somewhat stuffy hall.
Or so you think.
You donât know that the night is far from over when you linger at the entrance, handing him a key that he encloses in his grip with a grateful nod and a goodbye-wave. The final interaction when you excuse yourself, breathing in the night.
Itâs a hunch cooler than when you left home today; yet, the breeze feels pleasant caressing your skin. The end of August is still warm, still fairly far from fall; you regard summer nights as the best part of the season.
Sighing, you come to a halt in the middle of the pavement, studying the alley. You ponder until you remember a bus not too far from here; you need to turn left, right? Should be there. You have never been around here before, so youâre not entirely sure.
But youâll just go with your first instinct for now. Keep walking until you detect any kind of a promising sign. You hold onto your roomy bag as you pass the rare people still around.
Some of them are faces you recognise from the party; some are strangers. One couple you spoke to just earlier even lifts a thumbs up for you, praising you for the exceptional organisation. They make you feel at ease until the road quietens.
And the place stays serene and silent until you hear the clearing of somebodyâs throat. Itâs not near; yet not far. Your eyes scan the area, not for long when they recognise a figure sitting on the opposite side of the narrow street.
Itâs a man, clutching a heavy object with careful hands. A camera, you know it immediately. Heâs hunting through the pictures he took, face slightly lit by the screen. Jutting lower lip, slowly blinking eyes.
Simple attire â dark jeans, a white shirt, and a blazer on top that hides the wide shoulders.
Constantly and undeniably handsome, albeit always grim due to the lack of a smile.
You squint to confirm itâs him youâre seeing; but when he smacks his lips in the dark of the night, nibbling at the shiny lip rings, you know youâre right. This is a habit youâve never seen on anybody this persistently as on Jeon Jungkook.
And the one and only Jeon Jungkook must be feeling your eyes on him, because only a second later, he lifts his gaze. Instinctively, you wave a little, but Jungkook isnât on board with your hospitality. He rolls his eyes; you donât take it to heart, though. Youâre used to this.
As he starts stuffing the camera back into his bag, you waddle over, crossing the street. Upon reaching him, you ask, âGot some good pictures tonight?â
âIâd guess so.â
His voice is as nonchalant as always, his shoulders relaxed, uncaring. To your vampire-novel-reading middle school self, he wouldâve been the coolest and most mysterious riddle, waiting to be cracked. But you know how he feels about you, and that makes the situation just a little less intriguing.
Yet, you never stopped approaching him, because aside from conversations like these, you know heâs just human, too. He smiles at events whenever he gets the chance, content with the moments he captures; he likes what he does.
Photography has always been his thing; or thatâs what you gathered, at least. You see the same sparkle in his eyes that you feel in yours when you work; the same joy when he fumbles with his camera, always checking, presumably changing the settings, testing it out.
You lean in a little, wondering, âCan I see?â
âUhmâŚâ He hesitates, lifting the strap of the camera bag higher up his shoulder. âDo you have to?â
âIf I may. I brought you here, remember?â
Of course. Itâs always you; youâre the one to organise this, and youâve seen his pieces and albums before. He might not hang around you too much, always the first to tell you he has somewhere else to be, but you know heâs good. You trust him in this regard.
âYou say that every time,â he argues, a tattooed hand settling on his bag, clearly reluctant.
So you click your tongue, waving your suggestion off. You try to sound as lively as ever, but your voice is more earnest as you say, âOkay, itâs fine. Donât show me the pictures, but come on. Be a bit nice at least.
âAlright. What else? Do you need something?â
You sigh in defeat. âNo. I was just going home.â
âYou should go home. Itâs pretty late.â
âArenât you going, too?â
âI am,â he responds, his voice going up at the end. âI just wanted a bit of peace before leaving.â
âPeace,â you repeat, as if trying out the word. âYou canât get it at home?â
Jungkook doesnât answer this time. Instead, he only shifts his stare from you to the empty road ahead, exhaling a dramatically long breath before he gets into motion. You immediately react, by his side until he asks, âAre you following me?â
âHuh? Did you forget that I was literally heading this way?â Heâs distracted, looking for the street signs, and you laugh at his own confusion. âDo you even know where youâre going?â
âI guess so.â
Okay, at least heâs honest, not giving himself airs. You want to see what his inner compass suggests, but then somewhat shun the thought of walking further into unknown terrain.
So you question, âYou taking the bus?â
âNope. Subway.â
âAh. That should be this way, then,â you nod towards the direction youâre approaching, âI know the bus is, because thatâs where I need to go.â
ââŚAre you sure?â
âYep.â
Thatâs it. He doesnât respond much; only lets out the millionth sigh, following you with something you might nearly call trust. He doesnât attempt small talk or any other kind of interaction, so you let him sink into his thoughts.
But a beat of silence later, you still ask politely, âHow did you like the party?â
âUhhh, it was okay.â For the first time in minutes, he looks at you. âThe people were weird, donât you think? But I got some good shots in.â
âHmm⌠okay. I didnât notice anything weird about the people.â You shrug your shoulders. âTalking about shots⌠did you drink a little?â
He whines your name as the question is a tale as old as time, complaining, âEvery single time? Why is this so important to youâŚâ He waits, shakes his head. âNo, I didnât. Seems you did, though.â
âA little,â you say, bringing your forefinger and thumb together, indicating a tiny space. âBut Iâm all sober and well.â Another brief pause. âAre you okay, too?â
He licks his lower lip, dimples appearing that donât ever need a smile to emerge. Then, he throws back, âWhy shouldnât I be?â
âDunno. You always look so bored at parties. And you always go home alone.â
You donât know if the following laugh is sarcastic or not, but you soon discover the very answer when he lifts a finger and counts, âFirst off, how would you know?â Another finger added to the mix. âSecondly, Iâm not bored. Iâm just focused. And I donât know anybody there.â
His hand drops again, working on his bagâs strap again. Pushing it over his shoulder. He adds, âItâs a bit different for me than for you because theyâre literally your clients and you know them at least a little.â
âI mean⌠you know me.â
âYeah, but youâreâŚâ He regards you from head to toe, not the softest of expressions, and you pout. You donât ever take him seriously, but he can be hurtful sometimes. âI just donât think weâd be good conversation partners.â
âWeird,â you challenge, âbecause youâre conversing with me right now, no problem. Itâs also not my fault you always argue with me at every event.â
âI donât. You approach me.â
âYou do.â You lean your face closer to his, not making it very far when his palm pushes your cheek, and you, away from him. âUgh. Okay. Seriously, though â why do you always leave alone?â
He exhales in defeat. Seems that Jeon Jungkook is too tired to take your idiocy tonight. You understand, but youâre just trying to figure out how to convince him that youâre normal, too. That he just dislikes you because youâre different from him, and nothing else.
âHeyâŚâ he utters, out of energy.
âI mean it,â you still declare, âthere are so many sweet and nice girls around. They ask about you sometimes, you know? Iâve also met many men on such paââ
âThatâs great,â he interrupts, a palm stopping you from spilling more info, âbut⌠I donât think Iâm interested.â
âOh.â The syllable is short, cut, harmless. That is, until it clicks in your brain, and your eyes widen, lips parting as you turn to him in shock, stating, âOh, wait. Do you⌠play for the other team?â
Jungkook blinks at you. Then lowers his gaze, turning it a couple shades darker, staring at you from under his eyelids. He looks annoyed when he spits, âNo, Iâm not gay. And even if I was, itâd be none of your business.â
Shit.
Okay, you were sure about your assumption, but now that it turned out wrong, this sounds pretty shitty. And annoying. And awkward.
âSorry,â you apologise, and he gives you a taunting head tilt. âOkay⌠different topic then? Tell me, what do you think of this dress?â You lift the hem a little, smiling; you were convinced the moment you first saw it. âDo you think I look pretty today?â
For a second, he joins; his initial gaze is still cynical, but his voice is appealing, a whisper when he leans in and asks, âWhy? Do you want to be the one I go home with?â
Ah⌠why do the words, the way he speaks them, tickle you just right? Youâre flabbergasted, seeing your reaction on the bare skin of your arms, but all he does is back away again and once again, shake his head.
You want to retort something snarky back, but you donât get to it when he inquires a moment later again, âAre you sure weâre going the right way?â
Right⌠you need to go home. You forgot.
âUh⌠yeah.â You look around, finally detecting a sign, picturing a bus and a number. âThereâs the bus, so the subway should beâŚâ You stop; hum; then see two women waiting at the bus stop. âShould we ask someone?â
âSure.â
With a nod, you separate from him, walking towards the bus station bench theyâre sitting on, hands folded, conversing quietly. Theyâre surprised when they see a figure advance, but relax when they catch your smile.
You ask the questions floating in your brain, trying to explain where you live, what you need. They attempt an answer, gesture around, and barely a minute later, youâre thanking them and leaving again.
Jungkook stands there in anticipation, waiting for you to deliver good news â yet confused when you return with slumped shoulders instead of an enthusiastic, âWe were right! Come!â
Okay, there arenât too many reasons for Jungkook to dislike you; you want to say this much. But when you see him understand that this is going nowhere, you do get his frustration.
Especially as you kiss your lips, staring at him like a lost bunny, and explain, âSo⌠the subway isnât here.â Big eyes meet yours. âIâm not sure where it is, and they,â your thumb points to the girls behind you, âcouldnât help because theyâre tourists.â
âAh. Great,â he says, delivering a falsely cheerful smile. Hands thrown into the air. âSo weâre stranded and should definitely not be here. What about the bus? Where does it go?â
âUhmâŚâ You scratch your head. âNot where I need to go. Itâs a different one. But!â Immediately, your voice rises, trying to approach this with hope. Itâs not the end of the world, after all! âDonât worry! Weâll get home either way.â
âJust a lot later than necessary.â
âBut nothingâs lost yet. Donât you trust me?â
And â much as you thought â Jungkook only ogles back in silence, blinking once again before he walks away with a curse on his lips.
1:25AM, Her
You catch up to him fast.
âItâs not that big of a deal, I promise!â you vow, but you reckon it only makes matters worse.
Because he breathes air through his nose, like a bull, arguing, âIâm tired, though. This is wasting so much of my time. You always do.â
You stop in your tracks. He doesnât. You sulk, âThat was mean.â
âAnd youâre idiotic.â
âWell⌠shit.â
This time you tilt your head, grinding your teeth; less out of anger, more out of embarrassment. You donât respond much else, and he doesnât throw another insult. Instead, he opens the bag again with the velcroâs ripping sound, heaving out his SLR.Â
You peek over his shoulder, confused about the timing to indulge in a passion, and ask, âWhat are you doing with that?â
âLooking through them,â he mutters, thumb working on the switching button, âmaybe I took a picture when I came here. A sign where to find the subway.â
His reasoning elicits a sudden laugh out of you, probably unfounded to him, but very amusing to you. He throws a bewildered and somewhat warning look, and you immediately silence; still holding yourself back when he turns away again.
You wait, listen to the quiet of the night. He doesnât seem to find any success, and the more time passes, the funnier you find his mind. Eventually, you step next to him and give up, telling him, âHey.â Don't be so tetchy. I'm not that bad.â
Jungkook side-eyes you, tapping the screen of the heavy Sony A9 Alpha. Inhaling the pleasant late summer air, he defends, âI'm never tetchy! But you got us lost.â
âSo? Youâre being dramatic. There's still Google Maps.â
Thatâs it. This look of his.
Jungkook mustâve gotten stuck in a decade youâve long left, because he stares at you dumbfounded, camera still firmly in his hands. He tongues his cheek, blinks.
And then, you mock, âGuess Iâm not the only idiot here, right?â
His next breath is deep, and he soon averts your eyes again. You dig, âWhat? If anything, then low battery might be your only excuse, you know?â
He doesnât look at you, and you break into a grin again. Shake your head. Then fish out your phone at last, ready to type in the goal, or at least, to search the nearest subway and bus that fit your demands.
Hmmm, okay. If you need to go where you think you need to go, then the subway will really be in immediate distance to the bus. So youâll be heading in the same direction anyway.
You open your mouth to ask for his address, prepared to type it in â but as you look at him again, you detect a deeply focused Jungkook, pursing his lips at his camera and regarding it with glitter in his eyes. You see it even from here, the sparkle.
Maybe heâs waiting for you to deliver a conclusion, because you catch him moving through older pictures in the meantime. From here, you only see glimpses. Of forests and roads, and then of waterfalls. Even some of him and his friends.
He doesnât notice it, but his eyebrows are much more relaxed now, expression not quite as steely anymore; and his lips even twitch for a tiny second, tempted to smile. As if he forgot where heâs currently standing.
You let your arms sink, both hands holding your phone, and just gaze for a while. Then move your eyes to the side. To the sky. Remember places youâve seen and loved in this town. Still hear his harsh tone echoing in your ears.
In hindsight, you really donât think you've ever personally hurt or offended him. He mightâve been annoyed by something else. Perhaps he was dealing with something that he never dared to speak about; or perhaps, his perception of optimism is warped, because he clearly doesnât wade through life with it.
Youâd like to see his real self, though. The real self, because your gut feeling whispers to you that this isnât him. Maybe thereâs a kind and kindred soul hidden somewhere; maybe his smile proves far more intriguing to you than these mysterious moods of his. Once it appears, that is.
ButâŚ
Heâll probably say no. Your idea isnât dumb, youâre certain, but he very likely will not go with it. But you want to try. Want to show him that youâre not as bad, that he can trust you; want to know what burdens him; or why he talks to you like this.
You might be the only one to wish for more time with somebody who wants to avoid you like the plague.
YetâŚ
You donât want this to end just yet.Â
So you drop a suggestion that surprise even youâ
ââŚYou know what? Letâs try something fun tonight.â
âExcuse me?â
He voices it with his attention only half on you, not quite taking you seriously; so you swallow to dampen your throat and speak firmer, suggesting, âYou need to trust me on this, though.â
This time, he does look at you. Works on stuffing his camera back into his bag, opening his mouth to retort something, but you stop him with a shushing finger that he doesnât look too happy about.
âHold on, okay?â you exclaim. âListen. Are you busy tomorrow?â
âUh⌠not until the afternoon.â
âSo you can sleep in.â
âI guess.â
You clap once, loudly and dramatically, watching the man in front of you flinch. You canât say if heâs irritated, shocked or terrified of you. But he looks hilarious like this, blinking, scowling as his fingers clutch his bag tighter.
âWhat is it?â he asks as if youâve lost your mind.
âLook. Letâs not leave yet. Fuck Google Maps,â you suggest, and his eyes grow wider by the second, baffled, as if youâre caging him. âLet me show you pretty places until the sun comes up, and if you still hate me by then, I will never talk to you again. Isnât this tempting?â
In your head, it is. Not for yourself, but for him. In your mind, he thinks of you as a constant nuisance that stands in his way, hopping around like an overhyped puppy.
Or not. Maybe he has a dog at home; maybe he regards you as worse than cute puppies.
Whatever.
You look at him expectantly, like your persisting stare could help him land a decision. Instead, however, he grimaces, his voice higher when he asks, âWhat even are you saââ
No, you wonât give up yet; even if the recurring interruptions make him tear his hair out. You click your tongue and then argue, âCome on! Give it a try.â
Hesitation. Or rather, a question wondering if youâre crazy. Clear rejection. Are you losing?
âWeâd be together, so nothing to fear,â you try further, âand how much time is there till sunrise?â You glance at your watch. âItâs barely half past one. The sun comes up in less than five hours. And like, I know it sounds like a lot, but if you give me some time, Iâll give you reasons to smile.â
He keeps looking at you in this questioning, are-you-fully-mad-manner, but youâre absolutely serious and you need him to know. You bat your eyelashes a little, offering your best laugh, and add, âLike this? If you really want to hate me after that, then okay. If not, then⌠maybe we could go get coffee someday.â
Youâve spoken enough. He raises a hand, quieting you down, and then finally says it.
âYou must be crazy.â
âI am,â you confirm.
âYou think Iâd do this, huh?â
ââŚMaaaybe?â
âNo.â
Jungkookâs answer is stone cold and direct, and it shuts you up with a near-wince. Thereâs a faint line between his thick eyebrows, lips pressed together; he looks dangerous and very, very mean.
So you donât say much for another minute, following when he walks away. You side-eye him, notice him type his destination into his phone. Surrendering, you trudge the path he chooses, soon detecting signs leading to the subway.
He canât say anything to your presence by his side. Even if his answer remains a steadfast, boring no, youâll have to go in this direction anyway.
More than halfway through, you venture into a conversation again, âHave you ever tried anything like this before?â
âWhat? The nonsense you suggested?â he asks, and you nod, catching up with his long legs, slightly slower with your heels. âNo. I donât think I need to.â
âYouâre so⌠donât you ever try anything new?â
âI mean, is this your definition of something new?â He gestures at your surroundings haphazardly. âGoing through town in the middle of the night instead of getting some decent sleep?â
You shrug your shoulders, defending, âItâs not like I do it every day. And nothing one can do every day anyway. That's why I want you to try it.â Your voice is soft, friendly. âBut you donât have to.â
He doesnât answer; only comes to a halt when a bus stop nears, peeking up to the sign with the number before he asks, âThat yours?â You hum in confirmation. âOkay. Will you get home well? Itâs late.â
âYeah, of course,â you pout, kicking off a tiny stone with your shoe, âdone it a few times.â
He stalls. You donât know why, but youâre sure he does. You notice it in his slow movements, the brief pause, the way he looks to the subway he needs to approach and then back to you. You smile when his eyes linger on you for a moment too long, and then he tilts his head, sighs.
âAlright. Then⌠good night.â
And thatâs it.
You tell him to sleep well in return, earning a tiny nod, and then heâs leaving you stranded, walking away. Your eyes stay on him until heâs out of sight, down the escalator to the subway and far, far away from the fun idea you conjured.
You mimic his sigh. Take the two or three steps to the bench under the bus stop; and then you wait.
At this time, public transport operates irregularly, so youâre not surprised when youâre still there minutes later. For a while, you remain alone â that is, until a stranger tumbles to you, swaying before he takes a seat on the other edge of the bench.
You donât look at him; donât want his attention on you. But to your discomfort, he garbles just a second later, âThis the bus toâŚâ
He gets a hiccup, pointing to the bus sign, and then mumbles the name of the station he needs to reach. You donât understand, however, so you prod, âWhat?â
Slower now yet similarly slurred, he repeats his question, but this time, you understand and nod your head yes. He overshares, âItâs just that Iâm drunk, so I need to be sure. Sorry for interrupting.â
Suddenly, you feel kind of sorry for him. Your shoulders relax; you observe him letting his arms dangle between his legs, sniffling, incredibly exhausted, it seems. What did the fella experience tonight?
You respond, âItâs okay. Itâs really late. Get home well.â
âThanks. Youâre very nice.â
The same finger previously signalling to the sign now points at you; but he doesnât touch you. In fact, his digits are still a good distance away, already falling when you feel a hand on your elbow out of the blue; you nearly react on intuition, getting into position to break somebodyâs nose.
But when your eyes meet the other manâs, you recognise him as the same figure standing tall that abandoned you a couple minutes ago. His hand is still grasping the camera bag strap, and he looks calm, confident when he speaksâ
âAll good? Sorry, I left for too long, right? Letâs go.â
Your voice changes, a chuckle hidden in it when you blurt, âWhat?â
âYou wanted to take a walk.â
And just like that, the snicker dies again. Is he being serious? It seems so; itâs the whole package, even. The nod towards an entirely different direction and the sudden fingers around your wrist, pulling you away.
âUhmâŚâ you start, feet moving automatically. You turn to the guy drowning in inebriation, leaving a last, âGood luck!â as you wave, smile. Then, to Jungkook, âI thought you went away. Did you want to do this after all?â
Youâre cocking an eyebrow, but much at the back of Jungkookâs head, so he doesnât see. But it seems he hears the tease in your voice, because half-annoyed, half-argumentative, he explains, âNo. Just wanted to be a gentleman. I was going to leave the moment you got on the bus.â
Ah. So he was waiting, hiding somewhere? But you donât mention it; itâd probably just rile him up more.
Yet, you challenge, âYouâre lying. You were concerned and you thought my idea was fun after all.â
âWhatever you say,â he says, waving the white flag, probably just to shut you up, âdonât know if I can do this until sunrise, but I can walk with you for a bit. Get you closer to home. And I swear!â
Now he turns, shooting a stare at you over his shoulders, lightning bolts in the middle of his pupils, âIf youâre lying and thereâs literally nothing special on our way, Iâm actually never talking to you again.â
Nothing easier than that.
âDeal!â
âCool,â he so nonchalantly remarks, finally letting go of your arm, âwhich way are you heading then?â
âNorth-east.â
âGood. Works for me.â
The sun is nowhere near up yet; of course not. Itâs 1:37AM. Around four and a half hours.
Youâre hopeful. In your head, you imagine an uplifted demeanour in no time; try to guess what his smile might look like. A genuine one. Maybe sweet? Maybe cocky? Youâll find out. You will.
So you straighten your stance, clear your throat, sigh a content breath, and step into the night with the courage the stars lend you.
2:13AM, Her
The first almost forty minutes of your night pass leisurely.
Jungkookâs initial sighs cease soon as you advance into the town, walking down a busy main street. You guess the bustling area, the sounds of the traffic and the lights of the flashing cars relieve him somehow. Give him an excuse to not talk to you.
But as the occupied road ends and you reach and pass a crowded square, youâre back in calm and serene alleys. Some people are still wandering around, passing closed shops, much like you.
You attempt conversation every now and then, and Jungkook, having eventually realised that he needs to cooperate with you â he agreed to your idea after all â isnât as mad anymore.
At some point, he breathes in the late summer breeze, and your head swerves into his direction immediately â maybe the magic of the night has finally reached his core, too. Perhaps heâs appreciating the journey you set out to embark on.
You, for one, cherish the quiet; you know at least this much. The alley must be part of the older corner of the town because the lampposts seem Victorian. Theyâre fancy, bent at the top, the light a comforting golden.
You do admire the beauty in the dead of night, you do â but the weirdly bruising feeling on your skin becomes uncomfortably apparent the more you walk. Your heels and the Achilles tendons ache, the ball of your feet sensitive to each step.
For a while, you hide the stupid pain successfully, not wanting the night to end; and you do love the heels. Feel just the way those old romcomâs protagonists probably felt, strutting through town with a man whose life theyâd change.
But as an involuntary groan slips out of you, Jungkookâs view changes from the old buildings to your struggling self. His eyes settle on your contorted expression before they move further down to your sudden limp.
He asks, âYou good?â
âYeah, yeah! Just been walking for a while, is all.â
âHmm,â he hums, regarding your heels with a suspicious look. âDo they hurt?â
âNah. Iâm used to them.â
ââŚOookay.â
He drags the word, as if in disbelief; and you canât lie your way through the minutes when the ache worsens, the suddenly paved path too much of a chore. You nearly trip when your heel gets caught between the stones.
Jungkook immediately reacts when you hiss; youâre nowhere near actually falling, but his arms still reflexively jolt, the camera bag swaying and hitting your hand when he catches your shoulders.
âOkay, seriously,â he spits, eyes wide, âthatâs enough. You canât walk in these.â
âI can!â
âNot!â He takes a look around, inspecting the place; itâs quiet here, not too many cars driving by at all. So he points to the edge of the pedestrian zone, instructing, âSit down there. Letâs see.â
See what?
You blink, but oblige. His pointing finger is dominant, and his eyes urging; you flatten your dress, taking a seat at the edge. The road isnât high, so itâs a little uncomfortable; but youâre pleasantly surprised when he appears in front of you, crouching.
Very, very baffled when he requests, âCan you take them off?â
âSure,â you say, unbuckling the straps around your ankles before removing the shoes. You sigh; you must admit, it does feel great. âIâm honestly okay, though.â
Jungkook doesnât respond, ignores your statement; instead, asks, âMay I?â
You donât understand what he means until his hands come to a float right over your toes; he wants to check for bruises, doesnât he? You nod curtly; something about this warms your chest. You donât think youâve ever seen this side of him before.
Not that you ever had the chance to.
He doesnât really hate you, does he?
Carefully, his fingers reach for your ankle. The touch is warm and pleasant; doesnât hurt until he moves his thumbs to your heel. Your feet are overworked; you notice. But rather than the annoying pain, you canât help but focus on your view.
The big, round nose, hiding the plump, parted lips. His eyes look hooded from here, strands of his hair covering them. Intrusive thoughts plead for your fingers to card through the dark mane; it looks soft, pretty.
And the gentleness he handles your skin with fills you with fondness; you like being cared for.
Even when he shakes his head; pulling you out of your daydream. You take a breath, and then inquire, âYou donât have a problem with touching feet?â
He shrugs his shoulders. âItâs just feet. Besides,â he stops for a second, detecting something at the back of your foot, shaking his head, âMom used to work as a nurse. Tough job. I massaged hers sometimes.â
Ah⌠a loving son, a family person. You smile.
âAnd I thought you have a foot kink,â you tease.
âShut up.â
âFound anything?â
âYeah actually. Do you know how wounded your skin is here? Were you wearing new shoes?â
You gulp with a thin-lipped smile, wondering if heâll kill you now if you tell him. You look to some random spot on your right before you admit, âYes.â
âGod, youâŚâ He clicks his tongue. Puts your foot on the ground cautiously, reaching for his bag. He rummages through it until he pulls out a bandage, holding it in front of you. âYouâre lucky.â
You chuckle, relieved and flattered. âI guess I am.â
He puffs out a laugh, but stops it right away, calling your name under his breath before he says, âGod, youâre crazy. Be careful. And admit it when youâre hurt. Why didnât you?â
Well⌠you didnât want the night to endâ
âIâŚâ
You hesitate.
He works on your other foot just the same, a tender thumb running over your ankle, probably used to the soothing touch. It distracts you. And when he stops and you donât answer, he puts his arm on his angled leg, staring up at you in anticipation.
âYes?â he prods.
âI didnât say anything because I didnât think youâd care.â Nonchalantly yet pouting, you nibble at your lower lip. âAnd if Iâd told you theyâre hurting, you mightâve suggested ending the night.â
He cocks an eyebrow as if agreeing to the most self-explanatory statement ever, nodding as he confirms, âDamn right I wouldâve. We should end the night right now if you canât walk. Not in these, at least.â
Your chest is hot, your stomach twisting a little. Jungkook really does bother; if not due to a connection he shares with you, then simply because he cares for people. Never, you have never experienced him like this before.
With a tilt of your head and a batting of your eyelashes, you suggest, âAnd if I was barefoot?â
Which he reacts to with a roll of his eyes. âThe night isnât that warm. Donât do this to yourself. The groundâs dirty, too.â
You take a look at the dark grey pavement upon his argument, much as if the night could allow you to detect any of the dirt he speaks of. Once more, you hum, pretending to contemplate what to do; and when you pick up your heels, suggesting to follow your idea either way, the back of his hand gives your knee the lightest of hits.
âWhat are you doing?â he asks.
âWatch.â
He does. Watches you place your spacious, black bag on your lap, opening the zip. Observes as your hand dips in, pulling out one pair of sneakers and replacing them with your treacherous heels. He keeps ogling when you put them on, mouth widening bit by bit.
He doesnât speak until youâre done, socks picked out of the shoes, pulled over your feet, laces tied. You keep smiling, content with the moment, only dropping the grin when you see his puzzled expression.
âWhat?â you question.
âYou had them with you and⌠Why didnât you say so sooner?â
Your answer comes without hesitation; whatever timidity he elicited a moment ago slowly fades again. You clear your throat, back to who you are, and dauntlessly admit, âIt was sweet. How you took care of me, I mean. I didnât think you ever would.â
âBut you couldâve at least worn them sooner and avoided the hurt?!â
âWell, it didnât hurt thenâŚâ
âYouâreâŚâ
Jungkook uprights himself, towering above you. You put a flat palm onto the pavement, wanting to heave yourself up, but soon see a hand in front of your face. Heâs offering it; and youâre quick to take it.
Warm and soft; gentle.
As he pulls you up, you land closer to his body than calculated; his face isnât too far from yours⌠much nearer than it has ever been. He leans back; looks to the side; blinks. Clears his throat. Lets go off your hand way too late.
The breath you held escapes in a sudden blow. You swallow.
And when youâve processed the strange moment, you feel the change in your stance. Youâre standing taller now; your feet feel heavenly in your Nikes. Dusting off the front of your dress and your ass, you wait for him to say something.
But he keeps standing there on the road, in the middle of a parking space, hands on his hips. Heâs judging you; you understand. Your mindset isnât for everybody. You might seem crazy, alright.
Yet, he doesnât scold you again. The up and down of his irked voice doesnât appear this time when he speaks again; instead, his chin nods towards your legs, and he questions, âSo you just carry around shoes with you?â
âI need to,â you say, matter-of-factly, âI canât ride the motorcycle in heels. And!â Jungkookâs mouth opens, but youâre quick to explain. âBefore you ask. No, I didnât hide my bike anywhere. It needs some fixing, so my co-worker took it because he knows someone whoâll do it. And because he owes me a favour.â
âRight⌠how unfortunate.â He pauses; runs his tatted digits through the hair you longed to touch minutes ago. They look so silky, it makes you sick. His eyes settle on you, intrigued before he adds, âSo, you have a bike, huh?â
âYeah⌠why?â
âNo reason. I do, too.â
âMmmh,â you voice, nodding to the road ahead to suggest moving. He follows, trudging next to you again. âYou didnât use it today?â
âNoâŚâ He pats the camera bag. âDidnât want to harm my equipment.â
You hum approvingly, fingers entangling in front of your body. You inch closer to his arm, nudging his shoulder with yours before you flash a sugary smile and say, âThank you. For caring even a little, you know? Even if youâre always like that, itâs nice to see you like this for once.â
âIâm usually like this,â is what he, however, merely answers, accompanied by air quotes.
But you know youâve gotten through to him at least a little. Melted bits of the frozen parts of his heart that feel so vexed by you on other nights. In truth, you think, thereâs nothing but a delicate organ pumping behind his ribcage.
Heâs not a robot; Jeon Jungkook is undeniably humane. If anything, then more than most people you have ever met.
And it shows when he looks away, barely able to hide his smile. You see it even from here â that the gesture does something to his eyes. Nearly squints them shut, makes them smaller, more joyful.
You inhale, proud of yourself. Watch as he toys with his lip rings before he asks eventually, âWhat do you mean owing you a favour, by the way?â
He sounds almost offended. You think heâll ask about that favour, reprimand you for giving away your bike tonight of all nights. Tell you off for dragging him here, doing something big enough to entrust an entire motorcycle to somebody.
But instead, he continues with a question you never foresaw, âAre you in a quarrel with them? Am I not your arch-enemy?â
You burst into laughter immediately, covering your mouth as the other palm touches his arm. Thereâs a bulging bicep under his blazer, but youâll focus on that later.
Right now, youâre fairly occupied by the satisfied eyes; he doesnât really expect an answer. He wanted to make you laugh⌠Why does that set something loose in your brain?
âOh⌠are you jealous? What if I told you itâs somebody else who occupies my mind at night and not you?â you wonder, wiggling your eyebrows.
âDonât do this to me. Iâll find your co-worker and fight them for your enemyship. Word of honour.â
âItâs enmity. And stop flirting with me,â you tell him, moving towards him again, shoulder hitting shoulder. âOr is it something else with arch-enemies?â
This time, he doesnât veil his grin. Itâs bright, pretty, reminiscent of the light shed on you underneath the lampposts. And his pupils; whenever you see them clearly enough, you recognise the sky in them. Borrowed stars inside.
You shake your head a second later, winding down from your fit of laughter, and tell him, âYouâre not my arch-enemy. Arch-enemies donât exist, and you know you arenât one. You justâŚâ You stall, your voice quieter now. âYou just regard me as one.â
He throws you an indecipherable look. Hints of joking, shreds of seriousness, you think. His gaze drifts back to the path again, regarding a passing group of three friends briefly. His hands slide into the pockets of his jacket, and he sniffles once before he uttersâ
âNo, I don't.â
Ah. Ah.
Why do your eyebrows relax the way they do? And your shoulders; already in ease, yet they seem to fall in relief. You peer at him wordlessly; he doesnât demand an answer, fully aware youâre looking at him.
And you donât ask what youâve been to him ever since he saw you at the first party probably a year ago; what irked him, what delighted him. If he thought about you at all.
Instead, you look at the neon words in the next street, asking, âAre you hungry?â
2:19AM, Him
Youâre irritating to the core.
You always have been. But heâd be lying if he didnât admit you amused him a little. No matter how much youâve been wasting his time, you allowed a smile in this ill-lit night. Nobody else at the party did â so in some sense, youâve already won, and somehow, heâs even grateful.
Grateful that youâre optimistic about the world at least. Glad that you suggested fetching food. Endeared by the way you thanked him for his care. Surprised that you ride a motorcycle! Relieved that you have good humour.
Even though his own humour and smile dissipate after you enter one of the few open stores still providing late night snacks. The girl behind the counter looks tired, but straightens a little when the two of you flash a polite smile.
She greets with a sweet, âHi!â but Jungkook sees the lethargy in her drooping eyes immediately. Poor girl.
But youâre as enthusiastic as ever; maybe a little more now, maybe observing the same as him. You put your hands on the counter like a child â the image is somewhat cute. But what comes out of your mouth is not.
âUhm⌠Could I have a portion of cheese tteokbokki, please? And then⌠A half and half corndog for my husband.â
Your⌠what now?
Excuse me?
Jungkook throws an immediate and scorching look your way, utterly surprised. When you meet his eyes, his thick eyebrows are closer than anybodyâs ever seen. He huffs your suggestion away, and then corrects, âIâm not her husband. And Iâll take the chicken wrap.â
You chuckle, leaning into him, shielding your mouth with a hand as you warn, âTheyâre not usually very good at this store. Trust me.â
âI know what Iâm doing.â
Right. He does. After the disaster of finding the damn bus and the deception caused by your shoes, he wonât trust you very easily anymore. His opinion clearly differs from yours, so heâll bank on his gut feeling.
Satisfied when you shrug, as if to indicate, âIf you say so,â he walks over to the window seats with you in tow, looking out to the peaceful streets. Once seated, he turns towards you, peering until you notice and ask far too purely, âWhat?â
âNot even your boyfriend, no⌠Jumped straight to making me your husband, huh?â
The lift of your shoulders brushes his concerns aside; your eyes are incredibly innocent and even somehow playful when you say, âI thought itâd be fun.â
âWas it really?â
âWell, your reaction was funny, at least.â
Jungkook rolls his eyes in disbelief. Youâre courageous, he must admit. Social anxiety must fear you â is that how you live life? Unabashed, spirited, not a sheer care for anything that wonât actually hurt you.
He doesnât know if youâre insane or if heâs jealous.
But he still reiterates, âYouâre crazy. And it was embarrassing.â
âI mean,â you say, moving on your chair, folding your fingers on top of the counter but still looking at him, âit was embarrassing because you made it. Itâs honestly whatever.â You blow a raspberry, and then take a swing again, âWhy is it awkward anyway? Weâll never be here together again.â
He whispers a hushed, âThankfully,â and you tap the counter with a click of your tongue. He gets it; you live differently. Thatâs fine. As long as you donât pull him into your mischief, itâs fine.
Right?
Heâs right, isnât he? He knows that in his personal opinion he is; yet, he canât help but feel that sting, suddenly deeming himself as boring. Youâre never bored, are you?
AnywayâŚ
âEven if you do something like this again,â he tells you, âat least tell me.â
âI mean, that would kinda prevent your genuine reactions from happening, but⌠if it makes you happy.â You grin at him, and he scoffs; wants to say something before the girl calls for you. âFood is ready.â
A couple seconds later, the two of you have settled back into place; at the sight of the snack, Jungkook salivates. He didnât realise how hungry he actually was. The buzz and fuzz of a party makes one forget such an essential thing fast.
Or maybe, he was just immersed in his work.
The chicken smells good, at least. Or are these your tteokbokki? He canât quite discern the scent right now; his mind is fogged by his appetite. Silently, he unwraps his food, swallowing before he digs into the wrap.
So far, so good⌠seems edible. He keeps chewing; swallows some more. But as the taste starts to sink in and he realises the sogginess of the wrap, the lack of proper sauces and the dryness as well as the blandness of the chickenâŚ
He pauses. Where⌠are the flavours?
Slowing down, he glances at his meal. Inspects it as if heâs holding an entirely new recipe in his hands. A look of realisation creeps upon his face, unaware of your gaze, and he soon hears an amused snicker from the side.
You donât say much when your eyes align. Only, âAnd?â
He knows heâs already lost when his expression changes, cringing; when he canât answer right away, only gaping at you in confusion. Still thinking about where this recipe went wrong.
He answers, âItâs fineâŚâ
But you catch his obvious lie; he sees it in the way you smile so devilishly. Cocking an eyebrow, enjoying another bite of your snack without ever averting your eyes. Then, you put the tiny wooden fork back into the dish, propping your cheek on your fist.
You wait; he doesnât know what for. For him to eat again? Maybe; because you soon ask, âDo you want something else?â
âNah.â His answer is instant this time. âI can do this. Iâm an omnivore.â
âAh, yeah. An omnivore friend right here.â You laugh, curious when he takes another bite. And then, âJungkook, itâs okay to admitâŚâ
But he wonât listen. Only makes a disapproving sound, stuffing his mouth with another horrendous bite. Shit; he canât confess that you were right. That you were actually right this time.
Suddenly, heâs craving a cup of ramyeon.
But he should keep eating. Wash it down with his drink, empty the soda. And heâs almost halfway through when he notices a movement from your direction, like youâre playing with your food.
Only, he realises that you are not; rather separating the tteokbokki in two halves before shoving the porcelain dish towards him. He shakes his head, but you persist, âTake it, man.â
It does look goodâŚ
But⌠are you going to use the satisfaction his defeat may give you? Probably. But fuck⌠Fuck it.
Reluctantly, he lets the wrap fall onto the small plate, gulping down the remainder of what he just bit off, and then, accepts your generosity with a nod. And⌠whether itâs because of the disappointment the wrap brought or the late hungerâŚ
Jungkook thinks heâs levitating above clouds, floating towards the sun.
Itâs good. Very damn good.
And when you ask again this time, âShould we get another?â his nod comes promptly, chest risen in satisfaction as he states, âThatâd be great.â
âAlright. Be right back.â
âNah,â he says, lifting an arm as if to protect you. Mid-action, you halt, sliding back up onto your seat. âStay here. Iâll get it⌠All good.â
So he does; enjoys the look of surprise when his other hand even carries dessert, four pieces of matcha mochi ice cream. He says, âThis is for you.â
You gasp. He canât deny that itâs sweet â the elation, the big eyes, the palms coming together in delight. How you look between the food and him, suddenly wiggling your feet.
âYou seem to like it,â he notes, and you nod feverishly, telling him that, âYes! Been craving it since we came in. Thank you!â
âOh. You shouldâve told me earlier! We couldâve gotten it. No worries.â
âItâs okay. I wanted to see if my dessert stomach still allowed anything. Didnât disappoint me today.â
Jungkook gets to his own tteokbokki, halving it in the middle the way you did, pushing it towards you. Itâs weird to think about it like this, but â considering how long the two of you have known each other, you might almost look like⌠friends.
And you donât feel quite like an enemy either. Youâre even⌠kind of nice. Friendly; harmless.
âIâm glad,â Jungkook responds, only looking towards the entrance when another group of three friends, two girls, a guy, enter. Then back to you, âSorry. You were right. This,â he points to the poor, sad wrap, âwas shit.â
âSee? My first instinct almost never lies. And I know this store from other places⌠the wraps are never good.â
âSure, but⌠your first instinct isnât always right, though, is it? You did get us lost, so it was wrong at least once.â
âHm⌠was it, though?â
Jungkook regards you in confusion as you put another piece on your tongue, working on the chewy thing as he asks, âWhat do you mean? We had no clue where we wââ
âYeah, I mean. I agree. But⌠I donât think it was that wrong. Becauseââ
You lick your lips clean off the tteokbokki sauce, smacking them. You look child-like, but pretty when you indulge in your element, uncaring about everything, just living. Maybe itâs not that bad that youâre bold.
And maybe, just maybe, he can power through this night easily after all; especially if you keep saying things that soothe his chest, things likeâ
âBecause my first instinct brought me to you.â
2:49AM, Him
The temperatures are falling as the night proceeds, and the second portion of the mochi ice cream adds to the pleasant chill.
Jungkook wonders how youâre doing; your dress is skimpier than his jeans, and your arms bare. But your stance and your speech are still inconspicuous, skin free of goosebumps, your walk elegant, leisurely.
Judging from your occasional hums and your ceaseless optimism, youâre enjoying this journey. It almost makes him feel bad; guilty about how adamantly he refused all this just an hour ago.
It hasnât been too bad. Sure, youâre bold and intrepid, and yeah, in some ways he is, too â but his courage stems from other motivations. From adrenaline-loaded activities or joyful, temporary pains. Like his tattoos; his motorcycle; the summer he bungee-jumped for the first time.
Youâre a different kind of daring; you challenge your limits in crowds and consider life a respectful joke. You donât ever hurt anyone, he doesnât think â you just go and see how far you can push yourself.
Perhaps in some sense, the two of you complement each other while simultaneously seeming to be cut from the same wood. Perhaps youâre different, but then again, not so much.
Youâre quiet; you werenât until you left the snack bar. As for now, however, you seem distracted, swallowing heaps of your dessert as you scan the surroundings youâve led the two into. Youâre somewhat unfazed by it, yet peering as though youâve been here before.
Which, in retrospect, makes sense. Youâve been wanting to show him places you enjoy after all.
When the silence extends, Jungkook, along with the chirping of the nightlife, breaks it with a, âYou know what?â
Your head swerves to his side, the wooden fork in your mouth. The pure gaze you give him throws him off guard for a moment â itâs somewhat sweet. But as he regains himself, he says, âI didnât think weâd get to a housing scheme here. The main street is super close, but the vibe is so different.â
âI know. Itâs a little scary at night when youâre alone. Gives very Desperate Housewives, doesnât it? Secrets veiled behind shut curtains.â You draw closer, imitating a spooky gesture. âBut I liked coming here when I was younger.â
Bingo. He thought so.
âAh⌠why?â
âMy friend lived here,â you explain with a tilt towards a random direction; he doubts the friend lived in just the house you gestured to, âsheâs long moved out of course, but weâd play on these streets back then. Most of the neighbours knew me, too!â
Jungkook tsks, hauling his own bite out of the cup, and you add, âNo, seriously! We could just knock at anybodyâs door here, and theyâd let me in.â
âNot if they moved out, too. A lot of time has passed.â
You bob your head. âTime has passed indeed. It does so pretty fast.â
âDoesnât it?â
You seem to get into overdrive, gearing up; he didnât think this topic would rev you up like this, but it appears you have a somewhat firm and fond opinion about the passing of time. Jungkook recognises the sentiment before you speak â the light of the lampposts reflects in your eyes like glitter.
Only, he doesnât foresee what you say next, your tone teasing through the joy you displayâ
âYeah! Like. Do you remember when I told you to not get the wrap and you still diââ
âShut up.â
The roll of his eyes isnât anything new; but the faint feeling that accompanies it, something akin to amusement, certainly is.
âOkay, but. Seriously,â you start again, sly smirk falling, voice neutralising the mock, âit felt different here. Because like, you know, where I live, it gets crowded. Iâm not too far from the city centre, so⌠this place always felt really peaceful to me. Jieun and I played together a lot.â
Jungkook frowns.
âJieun?â
âHm? Oh. The friend I spoke about? Sheâs pretty cool.â
âAh⌠Right, right.â
âMhmm,â you hum, the end of your small fork tapping the bottom of the nearly finished cup, âyou know another way to know that time passes really fast?â You pause for effect, then add, âItâs been ages since we saw each other for the first time.â
âRight. At a party, too, right? When was that anyway?â
âHmm⌠Like.â You ponder, blinking, looking up to the sky. âLike two years ago?â
Jungkookâs eyes widen; if youâd asked him, he wouldâve estimated a year tops. If he digs in his memory thoroughly enough, he could probably even remember what you wore that day; what you looked like.
It doesnât feel like two years. Youâre right â time truly does pass like the wind.
âWow,â he exclaims, âitâs been this long since you started pestering me?â
âShut up,â itâs your turn to blurt, your body swaying towards him until you push him to the side of the vacant road. âI didnât even come near you most of the time.â
âI know, I know. You were fun to look at, though. Seemed to enjoy yourself every single time.â
Shit, why did he say that? Shouldnât he hold onto the image he fostered; the one thatâs permanently irked by you, throwing snarky remarks throughout the night?
AndâŚ
Didnât this just break the banter, the frenemyship â frenmity? â the two of you have going on? Was it too nice? Itâll probably surprise you. Then again, is he a damn child? Why would he worry about such things? Question his own kindness?
Why would he hold onto his ego and deny you his humane side when youâve been nothing but lovely to him all night?
The young adult rivalry is over, Jeon Jungkook. Look at her and fucking admit that youâre the arrogant one.
But funnily enough, you donât seem to notice anyway.
âHmmm, I do love my job,â you answer, âI have a lot of fun organising stuff. Doing something good for other people, right? See them enjoy it. I mean, of course there are days when things donât go as planned, but.â
You lift a shoulder, indulging in the final remnants of your chewy mochi and the melted matcha ice cream inside.
âI know. It happens to me, too.â
âReally? How?â
Jungkook waves towards the sky, lists, âHeavy rain, lots of traffic, too spontaneous, issues with the camera⌠etcetera. Anything can happen.â
âYeah â I get it. But yeah, I do love doing this. I meet a lot of nice people, too. And I guess that makes me feel very⌠blessed? It puts things into perspective.â
âHow so?â
âLike, it makes you see that most people arenât bad.â
Huh. Odd. Not that heâd ever deem the entire globe vile, putting a standardised label that he can impossibly prove. But as far as he has seen⌠too many people arenât good either.
âReally?â he asks. âThatâs a lucky thing to experience.â
You look genuinely surprised, turning towards him when you ask, âYou donât?â
âUhm â rarely. I do enjoy photography. Always have.â His mind zooms into a glinting memory from the past, and his shoulders and voice rise when he recalls, âYâknow⌠My dad got me one of those yellow disposable Kodak cameras when I was a kid. I loved it so much.â
You nod; if he didnât know better, heâd almost say you look⌠delighted. Actually interested.
âAnd events and weddings,â he continues, âtheyâre beautiful to capture. Itâs probably the lights and the pretty people. And just⌠the memories?â
This time, he looks away, straight to the road; if he hadnât, heâd know that your gaze is definitely fond now. No doubt about it. You listen in closely.
Itâs the first time heâs talking to you like this, or to anyone â or for this long, for that matter. Most of your conversations were fleeting, fiery, a petulant back and forth that â he now realises â couldâve been something else, something better, too.
âBut then it just sucks when so many of them canât appreciate it properly,â he explains, raising his hands to emphasise, tone galled. âI mean, I look at my camera and I see a tool to create art. Itâs⌠nothing I take for granted. Just think about it.â
The ball of fire in his chest grows; he feels it warm up, gassed-up. âA thing that can hold onto moments in absolute high definition, so that you can still remember them years later? The 18th century couldnât have imagined. They needed to commit everything to memory just like that.â
âWow, Jungkook⌠You really do love this, too.â
His arms fall to the side. He inhales the fresh flurry of air. Rethinks his passion for his job and says, âYeah. Yeah, I guess I do.â
ââŚBut?â
He knows whatâs missing.
âI love the art, but I hate the clients. The event hosts. Not you, but the one even above you.â
Jungkook reckons this was a confession that long sat on his tongue unmentioned. Of course he thought about it; is always reminded when he attends these functions, standing at the back, at the front, left and right, unnoticed and taken for granted.
But now that itâs out and that heâs finally verbalised it to somebody⌠it definitely liberates something in his head.
You see his issue with these gatherings; he knows you do because heâs figured out this much. Youâre filled with enough empathy, sympathy, every grand word ending on the same syllable to acknowledge his disappointment.
But youâre filled with humour and absurdity, too, evident in the answer you provide to diffuse the tension.
âSo, thatâs why youâre always in a foul mood.â
âShuââ
âShut up, yeah, yeah.â You giggle, but then halt for a moment, toying with the rim of your paper cup, âBut you know, I think art is worth something even if just one person appreciates it. If it helps in any way⌠Iâm always impressed. And I always appreciate it when I call you and you come despite finding me so annoying.â
One corner of your lips lifts, the smile humble and light; sends a pang of guilt through him. Have you always been so nice?
âAlso, I do see the pictures almost every single time,â you add, âand youâre so good at this. At the job itself and the editing afterwards. Honestly.âÂ
ââŚYou think?â
Damn.
Jungkook would probably not bask in this hobby, continue his job if he wasnât proficient in what he does. Heâs known about his prowess ever since he was young.
But praises do offer a sense of magical warmth, donât they? He doesnât think any creative mind ever sickens of such unexpected support. And the way you say it⌠makes him want to never lay down his camera.
âOf course, yes,â you confirm, ânot to shoot up your ego, but⌠you once sent a set of pictures where I found one of me. Donât know if you even noticed? I was wearing that lilac dress and curls, I still remember â andââ
Stuck on the mention of your clothing, he immediately attaches a detail to the memory, âSleeveless dress. Long silver earrings, right?â
âOh⌠rightâŚâ
Right.
He wonât mention that he looked at that picture for just a second longer than at the others that night. Noticed for the first time how pretty you were. Not too deep of a thought, a twelve second stare, but⌠you wore this vibrant smile on that picture, and in some way, he did hope youâd see it, too.
It seems you did. He feels satisfied, proud even.
âRight,â you repeat, your defences somehow down, âuhm. I printed the picture. Still have it somewhere.â
Jungkook has already often wondered what people do with the pictures; put them in albums? Frame them and pin them over their couch? Right now, he also wonders â do you look at it a lot?
And this again begs the question â when you do, does your decision to book a vendor like him fill you with pride? Like your choice was right?
âThatâs so nice,â he says.
âAll that to say,â you inhale, âthat I think youâre really fucking skilled.â
Woah. You werenât quite certain if your consolation would bring him any solace, but youâve done far more than that. Youâve shown him that you see what he does â and isnât this what every artist craves? To be seen?
The tension buzzes between him and you like electricity; he doesnât know if itâs just him lighting up or if youâre feeling a kindred link, too. But itâs somewhat intense in this moment of walking under the stars, surrounded by quietude and absolute pose.
So much so that heâs soon submerged by an odd urge to make the intensity wane, âHey, does this feel to you like⌠a clichĂŠ chick flick kinda dialogue?â
You knowâŚ
The moment when two find an empty street in the middle of the night, realising that a conversation with each other isnât the end of the world after all?
That type of thing?
But he doesnât say any of it.
âYeah? Maybe. But itâs also true,â you argue, âIâm an honest person and I donât think Iâd say anything I didnât mean.â
âAh, yeah?â Jungkook voices, taking the emptied out ice cream cup and throwing it into the bin on the side of the road, along with his own.
âMhm, one hundred percent,â he hears you say, followed by a light, quiet smacking noise.
He doesnât see what youâre doing until he arrives back where you stand; watches you lick the sticky rest off the pad of your thumb, smiling when you stare up at him again. Itâs a mundane gesture; heâs done it ever since he was a kid.
But somehow, he canât stop looking.
Might be the way your lips curve when you do it, or how your eyes smile when your mouth does. The authenticity you portray is rare; perhaps he just confused it with madness until now.
Seconds pass, and with that, your smile does, too. As it fades and drops, replaced by a curious expression and big eyes, you soon mutter, âWhat?â
Thereâs no response to that, really. He doesnât know either.
He doesnât understand how you turned out to be so right. How itâs such an ultimate truth that a serene night brings out a dreamy alter ego, hitherto undetected. Jungkook has never felt like much of a romantic, but right now, he thinks heâs on a different plane of reality.
This doesnât feel like Earth; and the town doesnât feel like the one he struts through during the day.
So maybe itâs not that wayward or groundless for him to lean in. To bend a bit more. Further and further until you laugh nervously; he knows youâre preparing to crack another joke, but you remain silent as he approaches.
Gauges your reaction. Will you run? You arenât.
Instead, you gulp; let your pupils fall to his piercings, just when his own gaze moves to your lips. His right hand, tattooed, led by its own will, reaches for your cheek until heâs cupping it; and suddenly, his mouth parts â whatâs happening? â and thenâ
And then, a vehicle roars from afar.
Both of you hear the motorcycle before you even see the blinding white light; he grips your arm, probably too harshly, dodging the street with you and jumping onto the pedestrian walk.
One must be crazy to still drive through the city at this hour. Right?
You pant, mixed with insane chuckles of relief, âShit. We almost died.â
âWe didnât,â he refutes, âwe had plenty of time.â
âOh no,â you stretch the last word, eyes squinting. An accusing forefinger points at him before you deduce, âWe almost died because you like me. Of all things!â
âI do not. You just looked kinda cute.â
Jungkook mightâve attempted an indifferent answer, but instead, he steered into an excuse that you do not accept at all. Your smirk is telling and satisfied, and if he wasnât trying to prove a point, your Cheshire Cat grin wouldâve made him laugh, too.
âBut you did almost kiss me,â you persist.
Ugh, youâre bold. Laughing like it means nothing; no embarrassment, no shy restraint in you. Which is probably not too bad; somehow even charming. Explains the rosy dust on his cheeks at least. He feels it in the heat, canât believe he almost kissed you just now.
Why does he feel like a hormonal adolescent? Itâs not like heâs never kissed anybody.
Youâre still enclosed by pure delight, nudging his arm repeatedly, annoyingly. And when he doesnât answer, choosing reticence instead, you nearly shriek, as if he confirmed all you just said.
His instinctive hand slaps up to your mouth, covering it, shushing you. Youâre still smiling, working on removing his palm, but before your nonsense can proceed, a sudden light flickers in the corner of Jungkookâs eye.
Immediately, he seeks out the source, soon finding a room in the house left to him lighting up. You woke somebody, it seems. A silhouette becomes clearer, its edges more refined with every second, and just before the owner of the place can shove the curtains aside, you grip Jungkookâs hand.
Within a moment, he finds himself tugged away by you, running, nearly stumbling over his own feet. You blurt, âBetter get away before they kill us.â
As you leave the tranquil settlement behind, Jungkook still hears a voice from an open window, cursing the younger generation as they do; and then, out of the damn blue, a fucking dog barks.
When you turn over your shoulder, mouth dropping open, Jungkook knows youâre thinking the same as him â this happens outside of cinematic universes, too?
It takes a minute until youâve reached another road again; one of the kind heâs more familiar with. The city type. The two of you come to a halt near some pole, and you let his hand go, leaning against it.
For a moment, you work on catching your breath, Jungkookâs hands settling on his thighs. And then, when your eyes meet, you burst into a fit of laughter, followed by a playful wiggle of his eyebrows to which you respond, âDonât act innocent. This is your fault.â
âWhat? You were lauââ
âBecause of you! Oh, I know you want me so bad.â
Youâre jesting, of course. Swaying your head, poking his chest, a brat straight out of some TV show. But what you can do, heâs been perfecting for years.
So he answers in kind, âAnd if I did?â
Only for you to utter something that not even his brain can compute.
âIf you did? Then⌠I think Iâd let you.â
âAh⌠Yeah? Why?â
âBecauseâ I think youâre just half as bad.â
His snicker is half amused, half flattered. He purses his lips, nodding, and then declares, âYouâre just a quarter as bad. But guess Iâve gotten so tired that Iâve started doing weird shit.â
You click your tongue, puffing out a breath, instantly reacting when he only flicks your chin and then walks away. Your startled expression prevails, a distance between him and you established, but just as he puts his hands in his jeans, he hears you finally follow.
âHey,â you voice from behind, tapping his arm, âare you really tired?â
âI was kidding, but. Honestly? A little.â
ââŚHmm. You know, my friend lives in an apartment nearby. Jieun? Didnât move too far from her old home. We could stop there.â
Jungkookâs left eyebrow leaps up, surprised by the suggestion; the idea doesnât sound too bad. ButâŚ
âWasnât the deal to go around for a whole night, though?â
âOhhh. Are you starting to like it?â
Youâre observant, heâll give you that.
âIâm just saying,â he adds, âand also, would she just let a stranger in?â
âOh, sheâs very civilised and hospitable. She wouldnât mind, and sheâs known me for ages. She trusts me.â Maybe you detect the hesitation in his eyes and the twitch of the corner of his lips, because you immediately carry on, âWe can just stay for an hour and then go.â
âWould she be awake, even?â
âSheâs a night owl. I know that.â
âUhmâŚâÂ
He ponders. In some way, heâs kind of liking the breeze, the quiet side of this town. But⌠would Jieun find that weird? Then again, can he say no? Youâre ogling at him with these hopeful eyes; maybe you need the rest, after all.
âOkay,â he says; he even thinks you jump a bit in joy, nodding.
âOkay! Youâll like her. We can leave with newfound energy afterwards. Okay, cool.â
Thatâs all you need to lead the way. You look around a little, making sure youâre approaching the right direction, and when you find your confidence again, you march ahead.
Your walk is energetic, not too idle anymore, your beam as dashing and fervid as ever. Jungkook knows his way around editing programs; heâs added wings to pictures before or removed unwelcome passersby on an otherwise great photo.
He even understands how to surround a body or silhouette with a glow; but heâs never seen it around an actual person outside of all these graphics editors before.
Your body is so clearly encircled by it.
Bedazzling.
Screw the 18th century. Even in these modern times of advancement, Jungkook doesnât think he needs a camera to commit you to memory.
3:25AM, Her
You avert your eyes from the phone and turn towards Jungkook, reaching him where heâs planted firmly in front of the apartment complex. Heâs been waiting, back settled against the wall, and as you near, his eyebrows rise in question.
Your friend didnât respond until now â but just as you foretold, sheâs still awake at this ungodly hour.
âOkay. Sheâs home, but,â you explain, already ringing the bell to her apartment, âshe said sheâd be leaving soon. Sounds like sheâs in a rush. Typos and all.â
Jungkook waits until the buzzing sound of the opening door ceases and youâve stepped inside, leading him up the stairs, and then wonders again with big eyes, âAnd sheâll just let us stay? Alone at her apartment?â
You wave his concerns off with a handâs gesture, âShe trusts me, dude. Iâve done this a couple times.â
âWhat for?â
Hm⌠you dive back into the old days. Some new, some old. What were they again? Theyâre mostly blurred, but some of them are carved in your core memory.
âOh, justâŚâ you reminisce. âIf I wanted to meet guys and wouldnât want to bring them home back when I was still with my parents? Or when Iâd need a night to sober up. They wouldâve killed me if Iâd come home drunk. And Jieun moved out early.â
âHow old is⌠Jieun anyway?â
Old. Not really, but you like to vex her to the point of a pout. Sheâs patient, but sheâs also an incredibly close friend â you allow yourself to be a brat with her and she allows herself to roll her eyes.
âEarly 90s kid?â you guess. âA little older than us.â
â93, as far as you remember.
âAh. Damn,â he voices; you donât know why.
âOkay.â You climb the last steps to the second floor, halting in front of a white door with a copper number six on top of it. Knock thrice. âHere goes.â
She mightâve been getting ready close to the door, working on her shoes or questing for her keys. Because she opens mere three seconds later, with a radiant smile on her face able to melt hearts, and a comfortable attire thatâs, however, not comfortable enough to wear at home.
A thin sweatshirt and a bun, loose strands framing her pretty face, and shorts that are definitely meant to be worn outside. She wonât be here for long. And youâre focused on this very fact and her hurry so much that you nearly donât register how shy Jungkook gets.
His voice is somewhat smaller than before when he looks at her; your eyes shift to him, and heâs blinking before he finally breaks and mutters, âOh. Hi.â
âHey!â she retorts; she looks so sweet saying it. You understand his perplexity. âDate?â
âNah. Just a friend,â you answer, which, yet again â very confusing â makes him hum in question. If he started regarding himself as your date all of a sudden, you swearâŚ
You smile.
âJust a friend,â you repeat.
âFabulous. So youâre not walking around alone, at least,â Jieun concludes, letting you in. In the living room, a hand on her kitchen island, she points through an open door, âOkay, so, the guest room bed is made. Use blankets on it, if you want to rest.â
Her finger shifts to signal to the entrance you came through, imitates a pulling motion, âDonât worry about locking the door whenever you leave. Also got some leftover food in the fridge, but thereâs also cup ramyeon and some frozen pizza in the freezer. Sorry⌠I need to go shopââ
But you interrupt, shaking your head, âOh, no worries, really. We just ate, so weâll just stay here for a little, work off the food coma and leave. Wonât damage anything.â
âI know you wonât, baby.â
She moves to fetch her purse from the couch, and Jungkook uses the moment to whisper in your ear, âWhere is she going anyway?â
You donât know; you shrug your shoulders, pursing your lower lip, but echo his question a moment later, louder than him, âWhere are you going anyway?â
Previously cramming in her purse, checking it for content, she looks at you again, telling you, âAh⌠Jongsuk is having a bad night and wants me to come over.â Regarding Jungkook, she adds, âMy boyfriend. Heâs an insomniac and got stoned tonight, too, and justââ
Jieun blows a raspberry, raising a hand for a whatever gesture, and Jungkook mumbles, âOof. SoundsâŚâ
âYeah⌠I know. In any case. Make yourself comfortable, okay?â
âYes. Thank you so much.â
âThanks, Jieun,â you repeat.
She nods once more, waving her tiny hand and flashes one last smile before sheâs out the door and has left you in full silence. You shuffle your feet for just a second before you look at him again; he still looks somewhat in a daze.
So you ask, âWhatâs wrong?â
âHm? Nothing.â
Nothing, right⌠thatâs what they all say after seeing Lee Jieun for the first time. You try not to think too hard about the teeny tiny sting in your enormous, delicate heart. Only let him know, âDonât worry too much. What could happen? She does trust me.â
You take a couple steps towards the bedroom she offered you, and you hear him follow. Look at the neatly made bed, a thought occurring; but you donât entertain it yet. Only add, âBesides, she owes me.â
He chuckles. âThatâs how you live your life, huh?â
âItâs alright. Weâll just be here for an hour. Sheâs known me all her life, so nothing to doubt here. And also, think about it,â the tip of your forefinger taps against your temple, âeven if something did happen or went missing, sheâd know where to find me and whom to report.â
He waits, ogles at you. Then presses his lips together, nods as if you made all the sense in the world, and lifts a shoulder â agreeing, âIf you say so. Then uhm â letâs lay down for a bit?â
âSure! Iâll just sleep in her room, so you can have your privacy here.â
âMhm. Okay.â
You stand at the door frame for a moment, feet unmoving.
Heâs already turned away. And you regret not walking away when you watch him unabashedly take off the blazer and provide a glimpse to his snatched waist as inked fingers scratch his back briefly, shirt moving up. But then itâs covering his skin again.
Flawless back; pretty golden. A little further up, and youâre sure you wouldâve seen strong shoulder blades, too. Heâs worn fancy dress shirts at luxurious events before â you know many would kill for his built, because youâve seen his bicep flex before.
You forget where you are for a second, but when he opts to turn, eyes on you for just a heartbeat, you stir. Blurt out an awkward apology, and then leave. Wish him a good night, barely waiting for one back before you close the door.
You laugh quietly at yourself.
Her room is just next door; you already mentally prepare for a nap. Meanwhile, Jungkook plumps onto the bed, groaning when the comfort hits, and works on getting used to the ceiling, if only briskly.
He only notices how much his head is spinning when he closes his eyes, ready to doze off. Should he set an alarm? He doesnât want to still be here by the time Jieun returns. Maybe he should tell you, too.
But his body wonât move.
Yet, in the time heâs failed to make up his mind, he suddenly hears a knock at the door again. Must be you â must be telepathy.
He tells you to enter, and you do with a shy demeanour; only thirty seconds must have passed, right? A minute, tops. He looks at you in wonder, and you explain, âShe uhâ locked her room. No clue where the keys are. Guess thatâs why she specifically pointed out the guest room.â
You nibble your lip, getting no answer back. He looks just as much out of ideas as you, and you still refuse to bring back the thought from before; yet, you ask, âWhat do we do now?â
âWellâŚâ He looks around, though there is not much to take in. âI can sleep on the couch?â
ââŚThe couch is too small.â
âOkay. Then Iâll just sleep on the floor.â Heâs already working on getting up, no hesitation, scratching through his now messy hair, feet moving on the fluffy carpet. âIâll take one of those pillows, though. Carpet should be good enoâ what are you doing?â
Youâve charged towards the bed, climbed past him until youâre sitting behind him, facing his back and his craning neck. You say, âIâm not giving you that pillow.â
âWhy?â
âYou canât sleep on the floor.â
ââŚWhy not?â
You throw an unbelieving look, as if itâs obvious. Your flat hand gestures towards the carpet vaguely, and you argue, âItâs uncomfortable.â
âListen, I should. This or the couch, nothing else left.â Itâs crazy to you how he doesnât even consider the bed instead of giving it up for you. âItâs just an hour. Donât worry about it.â He stretches a hand towards you, curling his fingers in a grabby motion. âCome on. Gimme that.â
Youâre astonished â beyond pleased about the fact that he cares like this. That heâs so⌠mindful and humble. You give up; he wonât falter and you know.
âOkay⌠then take this blanket, too.â
He grabs the second one that Jieun provided, head bowing a little as he says, âThank you.â
The proceeding minutes you spend preparing for bed, slightly discomforted by your dress, pass in half-awkward, half-comfortable silence. He lays down on his unusual spot, and you cuddle into the blanket on your light, soft side.
As the rustling of blankets and sheets subsides, it gives way to the sound of the ticking clock; you focus on it, count the clicks like sheep.
But sleep doesnât quite fall upon you yet, and you guess Jungkook feels similar when he calls your name and asks, âWhat does she owe you?â
Your head moves towards his voice, even though he canât see you. âHuh?â
âJieun. What does she owe you? And your coworker.â
âOh. Uh. Honestly, just kindness.â
You can already see it â doe eyes rolling at another one of your cryptic answers. You know people donât fathom your thoughts very well, and some feel annoyed by your dreamy outlook of the world. You donât mind, but you wonder what heâs thinking.
But all he responds with is, âWhat?â
âWell, just. Theyâve known me for ages. Iâve been there for Jieun for so long, and Jongin has always been so incredibly nice to me. Picked me up when I was dead drunk once and brought me home. Got me medicine and everything. And Iâve lent him some comfort over the years, too.â
It hasnât been too long, so you remember. Youâve been good friends with him ever since you started your job; a steady part of your team. He and you have got each otherâs back.
âThese two are friends,â you say, âand I think kindness is the most we can give our loved ones.â
Jungkook hesitates. Have you bored him to sleep? Or is he pondering your words, thinking of you as weird? Maybe notâ
Because he actually converses, asking, âYou think? Doesnât that mean weâre just kind to them then, so they can be kind to you in return?â
âI mean⌠yes and no. Owing might be the wrong word. Iâm not nice to others to get something back. Iâm like this because I want to be and because the world can be shitty and itâs important to be nice, and in return, I want people to be nice to me, too. Itâs not an eye to eye kind of thing, itâs just about. Spreading affection in relationships. Itâs what theyâre here for.â
ââŚHm. Is this why youâre never rude to me? Even when I deserve it,â he asks, registering a hum. âYou know⌠you think really⌠uniquely.â
This is a nice way to phrase it at least. People like you; youâre good with them. But sometimes, they can be mean, too. Not that you mind. Itâs natural â people occur in all types and shapes.
âBut is it unique, though? Isnât it a given?â you question.
âYeah, probably, I justâ never thought of it this deeply.â
âMmmh. So is me thinking uniquely a compliment? I canât say.âÂ
He laughs, and you join immediately, exclaiming an, âIâm serious!â in the middle of it all. Jungkookâs snicker is authentic, so you enjoy hearing it; but you like his answer even better.
âMaybe. I just⌠I feel like a lot of people try to be different these days. Or play a role to be perceived a certain way? But I think youâre genuine â you actually mean the things you say without any hidden intention to make people forcefully like you, right?â
An intention? Oddly phrased. You think, though⌠that what he said was nice.
Still, you confirm, âI donât try to be anyone for people to like me.â
âI didnât say otherwise! This is actually just what I meant. Besides, people like you anyway because youâre you.â As if heâs reading your mind. âThatâs what I was saying.â
You hum, blinking at the ceiling and the little modern light hanging there, the beam off. The darkness pleasant. You conjure another question and ask, âSo you think me being me is a good thing?â
You always considered it was. You like being you. But Jungkook didnât like whatever makes up your personality â has this changed? Apparently.
âOf course,â he surprisingly answers, âitâs always a good thing. And just because I disagree with some of your characteristics, it doesnât mean everybody will.â Oh. Well. But waitâ âOr maybe, Iâm just a moaner.â
Well.
âThat you are,â you verify.
âDamn.â
âBut, butâ youâre kind, too, you know? Not everyone says the things you just said.â
âMaybe.â
âSoâŚâ you stall, rethinking his prior words. âDo you still disagree with all those characteristics of mine?â
Another joyous sound tumbles out of him, much in the form of a breather than a laugh; hushed, but you still hear it clearly. Perhaps youâre being a little awkward; but in all honesty, you hope heâs just finding it amusing, somewhat cute.
âI mean â youâre too blunt. But brave, like, I could never. The thing you did at the shop? Never. But this isnât bad. And you arenât bad.â
âYeah?â
âYeah.â
His voice is a whisper. Reminds you of a feeling akin to temptation; your mind automatically imagines the susurrating sound near your ear, exhaling the very syllable he just did. Frankly, youâre absolutely tortured by the knowledge of him being this close.
That you could probably touch his face if you rolled over to the edge of the bed, letting your arm dangle, seeking his skin. That heâs in the same room, talking to you this gently, saying things that a girl doesnât hear too often these days anymore.
There it is. The intrusive thought from before⌠prevailing.
And youâre tortured by it. But mostly, by the image of him standing in front of you between the houses just a little time ago, staring at you, pupils flitting back and forth between your eyes and your lips. How he neared you. How he almost kissed you.
You mightâve joked about it then, but deep down, and especially now, youâre intrigued by the idea. Of the fantasy of a what if â what if heâd actually kissed you?
Taking a deep breath, you look to the side, staring at the door and call, âHey, Jungkook.â
âHm?â
âIs it uncomfortable down there?â
âUh⌠a little.â
You shuffle at your spot, turning to the side. âJust thinking. What good does it do if we donât rest well? What are we here for?â
ââŚWhat are you talking about?â
Pause. Quietude. You close your eyes, then open them again.
Youâre never shy; so you donât deem it an advantage for yourself to turn timid now either. You tell him, âCome up. I know you want to. I know I want you to.â
He doesnât say anything; you bite your tongue. Maybe it was a mistake. But then his voice chimes again, wondering, âAre you sure?â
Your answer is immediate.
âOf course. Yes, Iâm sure.â
âOkay⌠okay.â
As he starts to move, you gulp. You make place on the bed, moving to your previous side, pushing the blanket aside in case he wants to slip under it, too. The motions of his silhouette seem uncertain as he makes his way up to you, as if heâs uncomfortable with it.
âI⌠Was I wrongâŚ? Do you not want to?â you make sure.
âWhat?â you hear him say; see his head shake. âAh, thatâs not it. Just want to make sure youâre really okay with it. Iâm not the type of guy toâŚâ
âI know. Itâs fine. I donât think you are.â
âOkay.â The mattress bulges where he lays down before it evens out again. He emits a couple groaning sounds, probably glad to give his back something proper. You turn to him just when he says, âHonestly⌠thatâs a little better, yeah.â
âThought so. Are you tired?â
âDefinitely.â
âBut youâre not sleeping.â
âBecause youâre talking.â
Wrong. There was enough silence for him to nod off before. He was the one who started the conversation at all; you were ready to turn and toss and rest eventually.
When you donât respond, his head turns on his pillow, too; in the darkness that you got used to, you see his eyes twinkle. Both of you know that youâre looking at each other. And heâs kind of close â closer than you thought.Â
And⌠if youâre not wrong, he just inched nearer only a nanomoment ago. He repeats in a whisper, once more accusing, âYouâre talking, thatâs why.â
âThatâs really why, huh?â
âMhm.â
âThe only reason there really is?â
âWhat else could there be?â
You smile, brazen, letting out the courage youâve gathered, âWell, I know what else it is for me.â
âYeah?â
Daring a step further, you graze his shirt featherlightly; you donât know whether he notices. Not until he moves his hand, fingers ghosting near yours.
Waiting until you reveal with sheer, sudden heart palpitations, âI⌠I want you to kiss me. You do, too, donât you?â
He inhales, but doesnât exhale. What does it mean? You donât know.
You donât know what it is until you hear the smile in his words, gentle yet tantalising when he says, ââŚI do.â
âGood. Good. Then kiss me.â
And the rest proceeds without hesitation and without another plea.
His body moves as if on its own accord; he seems possessed, or controlled by a puppeteer. Warm lips lock with yours before you can draw another breath.
They feel soft, full, like tiny pillows, a contrast to the metal of his piercings. And they move gently, so carefully, like heâs still scared of crossing a line despite your permission. But when you lean into him, hoping for more proximity, he blossoms a little. Initiates more.
Oh, he, too, has been waiting for this, hasn't he?
A hand, nearly as warm as his kiss, slithers up to your face, holding you closer to him. The bangs that so often cover his forehead are tickling yours now, his head tilting to give his cute nose more space.
And with that, he deepens the kiss, too. Dares a step further, separating your lips with his, trying things out. He gauges your reaction as the tip of his tongue sneaks its way into the mix, and the moment you do the same, he dives in properly.
Kisses you just a little harder, tasting you, sighing into the movements as if all the weight of the world has dropped off his shoulders. As if heâs relieved, calmed down, resting for the first time tonight.
Yet, at the same time, heâs firing himself up â moving over your body slowly, holding onto your mouth to his best abilities, as if youâd disperse if he let go for too long. As if youâd change your mind.
He cages you in to keep you underneath, not touching your face anymore but shoving his fingers into your already tousled hair. If you were still in your right mind, youâd recognise how insane this situation is. Your younger self wouldâve never predicted such a moment to ever become part of your life.
But it is⌠it is so clearly being played into your hard drive; somehow, you already know itâll remain stuck in your memory: the way heâs kissing you, so thirsty, so insatiable. How heâs sighing, relaxed, yet sporting an audible heartbeat against your chest.
He uses moments of switching sides to breathe but continues right away; the keenness drives you crazy. You touch his shoulders and then wrap your arms around him firmly, making him hasten closer until heâs nearly falling onto you.
What in the heavenly make out sessions is thisâŚ
Itâs nasty, yet sweet. Followed by quick breaths; it takes merely a minute until you feel his lower body grinding into you, his jeans tight around his crotch all of a sudden. And the second you realise heâs hardening beneath them, your body reacts.
Reacts so effectively.
Your lower tummy tickles, dampness pooling below as he pushes into you again, harder this time. You moan, enticed by your goosebumps and the heavy bulge. Solid enough for you to crave him within a momentâs notice.
And it only worsens threefold when he whispers, âFuck⌠Somebody really knows how to kiss, huh?â
âYouâre talking. What was thisââ He so rudely interrupts with another peck, and you laugh into it. âYeah, thisâŚâ
Your last word dissipates like candle smoke; you donât even know why you bother to speak. Your voice is barely perceptible when his teeth remove the short sleeve of your dress, kissing your shoulder and then down to your cleavage.
Itâs easy to remove your dress; itâs light, summer-y â but he doesnât bare you just yet. Plays around at the mounds of your tits until he pushes the neck of the dress down a bit, asking, âMay I take it off?â
Oh, if you could count the times youâve imagined his veiny hands removing this damn dress just in the last fifteen minutesâŚ
âOf course,â you permit, âdo I look like Iâd reject you?â
âMmmh.â The hum is proud, satisfied, vocalised amidst another kiss to your clavicles. âJust making sure.â
Soft, warm hands trail up your leg, leaving a path of another set of goosebumps. You want him to stay right there on your thigh, knead the flesh, press into it, showcase the lust he feels in the beguiling pain.
But instead, he pushes up your dress, fingers ghosting over your ass â and when he doesnât find your panties but only bare skin, he stops kissing you. Looks at you. Makes out the string of your thong a second later â in the dark, you discern the way his lips round in captivation.
Heâs loving this.
He tugs at the string and lets it snap back into place; you gasp even though it doesnât hurt, but it drives you mad when he states, âWow. Very intriguing.â
Leaving it at this for just now, he kisses you again, tongues mingling once more before he releases a sharp, nearly aggressive hiss and mumbles, âHoly fuck. I canât stop.â
âI didnât tell you to stop,â you guarantee.
âGood. Good, good, good.â
The dress surrounds your waist now, stopping below your breasts, and Jungkook journeys down to drag his lips around the spots he hasnât touched yet. As if heâs trying to familiarise himself with all of you, working towards the goal of memorising you entirely.
His teeth scrape at your pelvis just lightly, seemingly contemplating whether he wants to destroy these panties or not â but then decides against it. You wouldnât mind; youâre not showing anybody anything of you tonight but him.
And youâre already such a mess; breathing so irregularly, letting out his name and quiet sighs. He should know he could do basically anything. That youâre ready for him.
But instead, he only curses again, sucking at your skin harshly, nails digging into your hips. And then, from below, you hear him say, âWant you to suck my dick so bad.â He moves up, fingertips on your cheek, rubbing himself against your underwear, and questions, âWill you suck my dick, baby?â
Oh, he didnât justâŚ
Oh, the way the pet name screws with your head is irreversible. You feel sick at the mention, breathing out hard, about to get up at the speed of light to swallow him fully; to the hilt.
But you wonât give him the satisfaction yet; youâve gotten used to the darkness, and seeing the hazy insanity in his eyes spurs you on to play with him a bit more. So you lift your body, giving him hope, but then say, âI have a better idea.â
âAh? Where are you going?â
âWait.â
He quietens. Falls to the side and onto his back as he watches whatever youâre trying to do unfold. You look back at him for just a blink of an eye, but you immediately perceive the hand cupping his clothed dick, moving a bit, up and down.
âOkay. Should work on this first,â you say, straddling him backwards.
You hike up your dress more, baring your back to him, and you instantly hear the breath he releases. Feel the palm touching your spine, grazing it; you imagine huge eyes ogling at you like heâs reached nirvana. You so hope heâs looking at you like this.
âMy GodâŚâ he only mutters, however, proving your point when he opts to get up. But you turn as much as you can, a flat hand pushing him down again, to which he complains, âWhat?â
âI told you to wait, silly. Iâm not going anywhere.â
âYou sure? Youâre being pretty mean right now.â
âIâm not being mean. Youâre just not patient,â you laugh. âGive me a second and Iâll wreck your world, âkay?â
âAh?â
âMhm.â
âThat I wanna seâ oh. Oh.â
Exactly.
Once youâre done pulling off the dress, you shift back, enough for your pussy to align with his gorgeous face. Jungkook instinctively grabs your ass to pull you lower, and you chuckle at the restless gesture.
But you need to focus; and as best and tidily as you can, you unbutton his jeans, zipping them open until you detect his shorts. He raises his hips to help you, and you bite your lower lip, crazed by the sight that awaits you once the jeans are halfway down.
The bulge is big indeed. The imprint is insane; the light from outside allows glimpses, and you salivate, bowing your head to kiss him above his underwear, feeling him stir. And he imitates, blowing against your wetness, his finger â middle one? â curling around the string digging between your ass cheeks.
When he frees your pussy, you feel it. It hits the air in the room coldly, a contrast to his hot breath. A second more and you might drip into his tantalising mouth, just how youâre drooling over the cock you finally set free.
It springs out, veiny under your touch. Hard. Thick and long. Everything good, a fucking ideal package. You scold him, âYouâve been hiding this from me?â
âHuh? I wasnât hiding.â
âNow I realise just how mean you are, man,â you say, shaking your head, spitting onto the slit before wiping it off again with the tip of your tongue. He swears again. âCouldâve had this make me hoarse so long ago.â
âFuck,â he replicates, âstop talking, or Iâll fuck this mouth of yours. You want to be hoarse so bad, then try me.â
âIs this a threat? You really think I wonât let you? Stay right there, littleââ You look again. âBig man. You can do whatever you want, but wait a second, alright?â
âNah. Youâre not the only one teasing. You brat,â Jungkook whispers sharply, delivering a smack to your ass; you gasp. âI justâŚâ
You donât know what he just â you only know that heâs attaching his mouth to your cunt right away, thong pushed aside, diving in with a tongue so eager. You squint your eyes shut, lips parting, calling his name as he holds you there roughly.
He soon wraps his arms around your hips, like a belt, lips intense as he kisses you even wetter. The sounds he eludes are dirty, sinful; and the feeling of his piercings doesnât add to your sanity.Â
You decide to not let this distract you; heâs competitive, you realised, but you are, too. So you lean in, lips wrapping around the tip. Your right hand enfolds his cock, pumping him, tracing every firm vein that protrudes. Heâs so pretty all around.
âShit,â you whisper, hoping he doesnât hear; only continue to work your tongue around the head, setting the nerves alight as heâs doing for you.
You kiss down the shaft, licking and humming to create a sort of vibration. And then, you take him in as much as you can. Despite being large, barely fitting, soon hitting your throat, you try. Hollow your cheeks, bop your head, gifting him your attention.
But itâs hard. So hard becauseâ
God, heâs lapping you up so good.
So hungry. Out to kill you as he releases the prior belt, bringing two fingers to your pussy and thrusting them into you slowly. Mouth and digits; both at once. Thumb against the clenching hole between your ass.
Heâs distracted every now and then, much like you, but he still maintains a steady pace. Cruel⌠so cruel. Those damn fingers propelling into you, harder sometimes before they slow down again. Curling to hit you just right, massaging the rough, walnutty spot.
Oh, Jungkook knows⌠knows exactly what to do.
They donât make men like him anymore.
Your ass clenches when his skills exceed your expectations and he rubs your insides particularly well, mouth just right above your clit as the tongue circles around it. Itâs nearly overwhelming; you could cry with this mouthful of dick impaling your throat.
He feels so good on you. So good in you. You want all of you filled, not just your mouth. So you soon let go with a plop, a string of saliva so lewdly connecting your mouth and his member, and you wipe your mouth.
Tell him, âThis should be enough.â
And he agrees immediately, smacking his lips, as if licking up the remnants of his food, âFuck yes. Enough.â
You want to get into the next position, put in some work, but what you donât expect is that Jungkook is already planning a step ahead. Tapping your ass with his big manly palm, pushing you off of him until youâre crawling on all fours.
Submitted to him. And you donât mind a bit â just for now, just for him, youâll give into this because youâve been craving it. Itâs okay; you vow to yourself that in a while, youâll wreck his shit just as much.
On your elbows and knees, you hear him shifting, the mattress dipping, his knees nearing you and closing your legs in. The palm covering the right side of your ass causes it to jiggle, and when you push your butt towards his pelvis, he praises, âThe way you know what to do without me needing to tell you. How convenient.â
âWell,â you breathe out, âitâs not my first rodeo. But do make it the best⌠okay?â
âNo pressure at all, huh? Iâll try my best.â
You want to react, bring a laugh straight out of your throat, but Jungkook is faster. The reaction comes alright, but not as you wanted it to. But rather in a high-pitched moan, arms quivering when he fists his cock, guiding it to your leaking cunt, and rubs the tip between your pussy folds.
You reckon heâs testing out how eager you already are; you contemplate on telling him. On pleading, on saying something that might drive him to action. You donât mention a single word, though; only let your ass speak once more, steering towards him until he gets the message.
He must have.
Because he clicks his tongue as if to admonish you for your shortage of patience, though only briefly before he surrenders to the itch you cause. Scratching without hesitation now, he finally helps you lose your damn panties and then dips himself into you slowly.
Of course; with a length like his, thereâs no way youâd be able to survive a quick push. Jungkook knows to be cautious, penetrating you sweetly; an oxymoron in a moment like this. Your fingers digging into the sheets reveal as much; thereâs not much going on yet, but youâre already holding onto the soundness of your mind so desperately.
âShit, what the fuck,â you murmur, your turn to let out profanities; youâre sure this isnât your last. âYou scared of something, Jeon? Iâm⌠I have an IUD.â
âScared? No. Youâre not an idiot, right?â he whispers. âYou wouldâve told me if you couldnât do it like this. Much ratherâŚâ He breathes heavily between his words. âIâm taking you in, yâknow? Enjoying â fuck â how wet and warm you are⌠Gonna wreck you raw, though, no p-problem.â
No, your foul words were certainly not the last for tonight; his dick is just halfway through when he stops and another tumbles out of you. He drags the thickness back, then inside again.
Your walls are occupied to their last inch, and you know you could take all of him if you just gave yourself some time â but somehow, his care turns you on even more.
Goddamn, heâs good. All of him â his dick, his voice, his mouth, his touch. Heâs soâ nnghhâŚ
You have never witnessed his fingers do much more than take the pictures you love. Whenever he operates the button with his forefinger, flexing the inked crown above his knuckle, you already know the man has a talent unmatched.
But right now⌠right now you have an entirely different perception of these same digits.
Like, when he leans in a bit, still deep inside you, undoing your bra in a smooth motion. Or when he caresses your back, along your spine, contradicting the touch with a harsher, harder jab now.
And shit, when he pulls your ass cheeks apart, digging in further, fucking through your seeping hole until heâs covered in slick, too. It must look so good to him; incredibly memorable.
Your whimpers are quiet and gentle, matching the way he fucks you, only rising in volume when he decides to push another inch in. You behave; you whine softly; that is until all of a sudden, he pulls back most of his cock and shoots back in, colliding with your ass with a slapping sound.
Yelping, you hold the sheets until your fingers hurt, and he bolts forwards, a hand slamming your mouth shut and muffling your mewls. Way too close to your ear, he says, âSh sh sh⌠my God. Jieun has neighbours, babe â donât spoil her reputation.â
He proceeds to kiss the skin under your ear, taking your arms captive until theyâre pinned to your back. Fingers intertwine messily, holding your limbs in place, and as he frees your mouth again, you laugh â itâs all you can do to not feel too weirded out by the mention of Jieunâs name right now.
You tell him, âUse my panties then.â
âYour panties, huh? Do you want me to?â You nod, but heâs not obliging enough to give into your wishes. Teasing you to no end. âNah. Iâll justâŚâ
Jungkook doesnât finish the sentence; what he does is much more alluring, nearly forcing tears of lust to your waterline. He grabs the back of your neck, urging you to look at him, and just as you register his face close to yours, he kisses you again.
Your body immediately blossoms. You breathe as much as the kiss allows, yielding to his tongue. Let him push you down and into the mattress, imprisoning you under him. And he kisses you⌠kisses you⌠kisses you moreâŚ
Basks in your dimmed moans as he hits from behind again, hard. Sheathes himself inside you thoroughly and with impact; heâs enjoying the fact that you want to yell, but need to restrain yourself at this time of the night.
Because heâs right. You donât want Lee Jieun to earn looks in the morning because of you.
As if provoking you, he blatantly asks, âYou good?â
âYesâ yes!â
âMhmâŚâ
Heâs out of breath; can barely emit another word. But he doesnât waste any moment at all; kisses your neck, bites your earlobe. Pushes his hands under your body to get ahold of your tits. Fucks you into space, lifting one of your hands to your face, entangling his fingers with yours.
You shift up and down the mattress, just a little; the position, with him on you, doesnât allow too many extreme movements, and youâre more than fine with it. Thereâs something about him going unhinged on you like this.
But⌠it does awaken the need to retaliate, too.
So you use the opportunity when he decides to pause, running out of energy, gasping for breath. He leaves you empty and yearning, pulling back and sitting up, and judging from the touch on your tummy, you assume he wants to flip you on your spot.
Instead, however, you turn on your own accord, both palms that he held captive minutes ago shoving at him. He produces a strange sound as he falls backwards, landing on the mattress and onto the pillow with big eyes that almost donât fit his Greek God-esque physique.
Goodness, the damp dark hair. The abs. The pecs. The nipplesâŚ
You might dribble onto his sweaty, shiny skin. And you donât veil your innermost thoughts this time, straddling him as you say, âMy turn. Need to ride you so bad.â
He visibly relaxes; leads his fingers to your hips, thumb drawing patterns on them. His tongue darts out to play with the lip rings, and he eyes you up and down. Heâs taking you in for the first time properly, just as you are him.
Just as your eyes drifted over his muscular body, he now makes stops along the journey â your pussy on the length of his cock. The tits and the perked nipples. The ruined hair, sticking to your collarbones.
You wonder how he likes what he sees.
Probably enough if he can respond with something like, âI wonât stop you.â
Good to know.
So you take a comfortable seat on top of him, still keeping him down, lining up your sex with his. When you welcome him in again this time, you do so fully. No slow torture, no waiting. You claim your throne until your ass hits his hardened balls.
He says, not quite expecting an answer, so you donât give one, âYouâll kill me today, right?â
And then you start. Put in all the effort you can gather. He feels heavenly inside you, the perfectly curved length moving just the way it needs to. His groans and calls of your names sound promising, telling; you suppose youâre doing a good enough job if his eyes roll back like this.
The hands on your hips push into your flesh more, and when you remove one and bring it to your mouth, sucking his forefinger with your eyes set on him, he loses his shit. Starts pumping up from below, meeting your up-and-down ministrations.
âShiâ whatâ do you think,â he attempts, stagnant breathing, âyouâre doingâŚâ
But heâs grunting in ardour, so you donât stop; donât let him take over fully just yet. No â you roll your hips, bend your back, catch a patch of his hair and then angle your body to crash your lips onto his.Â
The kiss weakens his defences. For a moment, you do feel his nails bruising your skin, but another second later, his touch is as soft as a feather. Heâs so ultimately at your mercy that he lets you trace his abs and kiss his pecs.
Lets you get into a crouch, your palms settling below his chest for support. And then⌠then you navigate north and south, repeatedly, fucking him into you with vigour. He throws his head back, but then looks at you again, blinking fast before his eyes squint shut once more.
âThe fuck are youââ he tries, but you start circling his cock again, moving in eight-curves, seeking support in his biceps.
âWhat?â you voice. âNot good?â
âYou fuckingâ kidding me?â His lower lip trembles when he parts his mouth. You see it even with the lights dimmed. âThis is such⌠a good fucking pussy. I was an idiot to push you aside.â
Youâre too dazed to really pout, but you do hear the undertone; ask to clarify, âYouâre just saying that f-for⌠getting my pussy, huh?â
âWhatâ no. Fuck no. Look at me.â His hand reaches out, fingers poking into your cheeks, and he pulls you down to him, makes you meet his eyes. You slow down. âI wouldnât just do this for any pussyâ I⌠not with you. I donât just. I donât just go home with anybody. âKay?â
His words bloom in your chest like a bouquet of flowers. In such a vulgar moment, you shouldnât be feeling like this, but you canât help but acknowledge the warmth spreading throughout your body. Burning up your already aflame muscles.
You want to know more; so you query sneakily, âWhat does this mean?â
âWhat it means?â he echoes, words blurry, as if drunk. âThat youâre beautiful. And⌠honestly, kind of cool. So annoying but so fucking funny andâ hotââ
âI am? Look at this,â you say, still moving but tired; touching his face, his cheeks, his sweet nose, âlook at youâŚâ
âNo.â He grits his teeth. You donât know what comes over him, but heâs inhaling way too deeply, lightly aggressive again as he retorts, âLook at fucking you.â
And with that, he gets what he desired earlier; flips you over, climbing over you. With your shield lowered, you didnât expect this, and now youâre right where you began. And for some reason, the sharp jaw, the furrowed eyebrows, the starved look hits you even harder than before.
The many inches he sports fell out as he took over, but as he plunges into you again with embarrassing ease, something feels different. How he looks at you. How he touches you, pushing your hair back, kissing your lips with such softness.
And how he holds you when you finally see the stars you waited for, his face in your neck, his thumb on your cheek, his palm on your jaw. Kissing your shoulder, delighted as you seek an anchor in his back, tightening around him impossibly as he fucks you through your high and your broken moans.
âJungkookââ you repeat over and over, and in return, he mutters constant, âI know, I know.â
Again and again and again until his sounds become more uncurbed. Only syllables, rumbling, his chest vibrating against yours until he lifts himself up and retracts his cock.
His pupils shake as he jerks himself off, and you know what heâs seeking, quickly getting to your knees, helping out. You replace his hand with yours, sticking out your tongue before you engulf his dick rapidly.
In surprise, he lets out, âOh, fffââ
Shit, how he sounds. And how wicked he feels in your mouth, tasting like you, tasting like him. Wet and slippery, his balls hard when you cup them. And thenâ a mere moment later, heâs shooting ropes of white down your throat.
Youâll never get used to the feeling. You didnât with your exes, didnât with any other guy youâve been with. Itâs sudden, your gag reflex kicking, but you donât want to stop until he has.
Sticky and hot, you let him; look up to him. His jaw glimmers due to the sheen of sweat, and he holds your hand to keep himself upright. Nearly growls when heâs done, and then calms down bit by bit. Pulls out of you. Plumps back onto his ass.
Catches his breath; and once the two of you have relieved your burning lungs, you with your legs under your butt, you look at each other again. A sudden laugh. He lets his head drop onto his shoulder, and then shakes it before getting back on his knees, nearing your joyous form.
The last kiss of the night is endlessly more chaste. No tongue, no making out. Just a couple pecks, a hand around the nape of your neck, noses grazing. Once, twice. And then, heâs smiling again.
You tell him, âCanât believe this actually happened.â
âCrazy⌠right?â
âCrazy, yeah. WeâŚâ You gulp. âWe can leave it right here, though. Guess we were both riled up.â
He nods, humming, looking to the side. âWe could. But we donât have to. It felt too good to forget, you know?â
You gleam and glow; if you could, youâd curl your fingers into fists, screeching like an excited high schooler in her room, acknowledged by a crush. But you only press your lips together, corners twitching up, cheeks hot.
Then, you say, âYou know what⌠I might just agree.â
âGood.â Another one of his stares to the side, through the door of the room. âYou think we should very quickly and very harmlessly use Jieunâs shower? She probably wouldnât mind.â
âI donât think she would. But sheâd certainly know what happened.â
âLeast of our concerns,â he argues, getting up stark naked. He pats your thigh and then tugs at your arm, adding, âWeâll be tidy. And then we can rest a bit and leave. Am too fired up anyway.â
You know things might change again once youâve slipped into your clothes and walked out into the night air. Perhaps the passion was reserved for this very room, actually a result of unbridled lust and tension.
But you think itâs okay. Itâs okay as you giggle in the shower, flirting and bantering.
Because even if you part from Jeon Jungkook and all this as just a saccharine memory, youâre ready to seize just a little more of this stolen moment before reality sets back in.
5:12AM, Him
Whether itâs the numbers glowing on his digital watch or the fact that the two of you didnât rest as much as youâd anticipated after all, he doesnât know.
The residual heat of the past hour has warmed his body and relaxed his muscles; your touches still haunt him, crawling over his skin and sitting on his knees, tempting them to buckle. And your voice, your sounds⌠like a ghost in his mind.
And you urging him to climb the nearby hill with you, surprisingly steep, doesnât help. He doesnât know why youâd choose such a place at such an hour. The occasional forest around you is dark, chirping, and the road is empty.
Perhaps you feel secure in the presence of another; in this sense, itâs even flattering that you trust him this much.
But heâll admit that his still wobbly condition and this stop of the night are slowly bringing him to his limits. The blazer, at least, is already hanging over his arm, giving him more space to breathe.
Youâre piloting the way, careful, navigating with the help of the light beaming from the occasional street lamps. Jungkook sighs in a half-complaint when the road doesnât end, nobody around far and wide.
Youâre similarly out of breath when you turn to look over your shoulder, barely for a moment before you continue to escort him further up. Then, you encourage, âCome on! We just rested. How are you already tired?â
âWoman. Weâve been walking for a pretty long time.â
âUhmmm,â you exclaim, swaying when you pull your hair over your left shoulder, âtell me something. Whatâs your sleep schedule usually like?â
Well, shit.
Jungkook can already tell what youâre referring to, but the counterargument already sits ready in his brain, just in case. Yet, he hesitates. Studies his surroundings to make sure he knows the way back, stalling on purpose, and when you ask, âAnd?â
He answers, âUh. Late. I slept at 7AM just last week.â
âWhat?!â Your voice is high-pitched, in disbelief, and whatever point you wanted to make is stuck in your throat upon the revelation he divulged. âHoly shit, Jungkook.â
âYeah, but like,â he immediately works on justifying, making use of the comeback heâd already thought out, âI donât walk around town, you know? I spend these nights eating or singing orââ
âWoah. You sing?â
âYes, but. I will not sing to you now.â
He catches up with you in one long step, regarding your countenance. Even in the dim light and the pitch dark, he recognises the roll of your eyes, as if to say, âI wasnât even going to ask.â
But instead of vocalising that very overt thought, your answer comes as smoothly as silk, âItâs fine. You sang to me plenty tonight.â
Jungkook nearly chokes on his spit, disguising his surprise as in the hike reasoned exhaustion. His mind needs a moment to fix itself, but when the balance is restored again, he wisecracks, âYouâre one to talk. May I remind you of what you sounded like earlier?â
âYou can. But I do remember myself, thank you.â
Damn it. Youâre a step ahead all the time. He canât even outsmart you the way he wants to.
âWay to diss me. Youâre hardcore,â he complains, âand here I thought you were kind and sweet and all of that.â
Jungkook nearly retracts his statement, because you throw such a perplexed and disbelieving stare back that he shrinks, reprimanded, âCanât I be both? A woman can certainly be both, man.â
âOf course,â he agrees, hands up as if heâs being arrested, âof course. Youâre both, for sure.â
He anticipates more scolding and scowls, but it seems youâre satisfied with the response he gives. You grant him a pleased, lopsided smirk that resembles his own, and then sigh into the night air, long and deep before your breath morphs intoâ
A mixture of a gasp and a shriek.
âWhââ Jungkook blurts, barely registering the movement scurrying from the left side of the forest into the trees right of him. âThe fuck.â
And just as fast as your gasp appeared, it diminishes, too, turning into a throaty laugh. Jungkook listens in to the echo of the rustles, still seeing the bushes move; whether because of the animal that just flit past or the breeze, he canât say.
His eyebrows shoot up when he looks at you, coming down from the quiet chuckle, and he only realises that your elated joy stems from the way heâs standing right now.
He mustâve instinctively dashed forward, an arm in front of your body, shielding it with his. It was just a squirrel, and in all honesty, it is the two of you who are trespassing, disturbing the forest life with your presence at such a time.
Yet, his reaction mustâve been immediate enough to protect you from whatever loomed in the dark, and you seem to like it for some reason. Because as he clears his throat and lets his arm sink, all you comment is a fascinated, content, âWow.â
âUh⌠all good.â
âYes. All good indeed.â
Your voice is tinged with a combination of gratification and tease, as if youâre one utterance away from adding a little, âMy knight in shining armour.â
Instead, you bite your tongue and look around; Jungkook sees what you perceive a mere moment later. The surroundings clear, the forest less dense; on the left side, a vast opening appears, a wide path ending in a⌠cliff?
And behind that, the town.
If there was a soundtrack to his life, heâd probably hear violins playing right now. Reminiscent of the wind, perhaps accompanied by piano keys that sound like the softly glimmering stars above.
The picture is breathtaking. Not that he hasnât been at such a spot before â he grew up in a big, mountainous city.
But since he didnât expect for the hillâs peak to allow such art, heâs a little more overwhelmed than he expected to be.
From behind, he hears you say, âIn any case. Letâs rest here?â
âUh-huh.â
Itâs hard to avert his eyes. All night long, heâs only felt like this once; this marks the second time.
Gratefully, he walks up to where youâre making yourself comfortable, flattening your dress and settling your bag on your lap. You pull a thin, short cardigan out of it, slipping into it. Itâs certainly cooler up here.
And then, you pat the spot next to you, and he lets himself fall with a sigh; itâs been a long night, and despite the restful-not-restful hour you spent at Jieunâs, it feels as though heâs truly easing up just now.
Jungkook puffs out a breath and takes another look. Properly this time, blinking as if this could help his eyes focus better. Gorgeous. He can see the river from here, flowing through the town in curves, like a snake.
He canât see the entire city, but most of it; it goes up and down. Skyscrapers and then cosy houses like the ones before again. Mountains far away and the lights of the amusement park somewhere in the east. Theyâre the brightest of them all.
âWait,â he says; you oblige, waiting, watching as he heaves the camera out of his bag.
He only registers you from his side vision, but he thinks youâre wearing a smile; confirmed when you breathe to speak again, and his eyes drift to you, immediately decoding the pride in your sparkling pupils.
Why do you look proud? Then again, he guesses he would, too, if he showed you something that he loved and you enjoyed it, too.
Thinking about it, he kind of wants to do it someday.
He pulls at his lower lip, releasing it soon, blinking again as if to release the thought. Instead, he listens as you ask, âYouâve never been here before?â
âI donât think so.â
âHidden spot then.â
âItâs beautiful. Look there,â he points to a spot that you carefully follow, even squinting an eye shut; it makes him smile. âThatâs the ferris wheel in the amusement park. Can you see? Wait.â
The camera comes to use when he points the lens at the direction he signalled towards, nimble hands working on zooming in. The picture unfocuses before the lights of the amusement park flicker again.
Itâs late, he thinks; then again, the summer is coming to an end, the last nights used to keep such attractions open late. September will bring forth grey clouds again, leaving behind the prior seasonâs heat. Raining down on him, forcing the leather jacket out of his closet.
He likes it that way.
No offence to the summer whatsoever; but he likes the fresh gust dishevelling his soft hair. Likes it when the rain patters against the window glass so softly. He sleeps better that way, too.
Barely sitting for a moment, Jungkook already gets to his feet, nearing the edge until heâs kneeling on the ground. The distance has only faded by a couple feet, not much of a difference. But the feeling of the city nearing still persists somehow, tickling his mind just right.
He doesnât know how long he squats there against the backdrop of the luminescent sea, but when he comes back to you, youâre still sporting that excited smile, eyebrows high. Your eyes fall to the camera, humming when he says, âLook. There.â
He magnifies the picture, every spot of it good enough to pin against the living room wall. Carefully, he hands you the camera; surprising, because he regards this pricey piece of plastic as sacred. You probably donât know how big of a deal it is that he lets you handle it.
If you did, youâd never let him live it down.
You scoot closer, your temple now nearly touching his. You stare with an interest he hasnât witnessed too often before. People do not care much about pictures of scenery; in the age of media, how could they anyway? When every stock picture is already memorised and used to the point of insignificance?
But you â your mouth parts as you switch around, taking in details.
âGood?â he asks.
âBeautiful,â you sincerely mutter, returning the camera to him. You hold it like a kitten; perhaps you do know what the gesture meant. âThis is exactly why I wanted us to come here.â
The moment is so serene, like balm, and he nods along with your words, calmly conversing. So it takes a heartbeat to truly untangle your words in his mind and tie them with the meaning your intention conveys.
He assumed you were just showing him random spots of the town, to allow him a glimpse into your mind and to crack your true nature. All this time, he thought you wanted to lead him to bright spaces to lighten up his perception of you.
But what youâre doing instead is turn the spotlight towards him and what he loves.
âYou⌠did it for me?â he asks.
You, casually, as if the thoughtful act doesnât flood him with serotonin, reply, âYeah. To capture a couple pretty pictures. You really do love it, so.â
âI do⌠wow, thanks.â He pauses. Looks down to the buttons on his camera, to his hands; then back to you. âYou thought of it all, right? The nice places and the short rest at Jieunâs. Now this.â
âHmm, tried as much as possible so spontaneously.â
âThank you. Really.â
You return his gratitude with a polite nod, leaning away until you touch the backrest of the bench. Jungkook indulges in some more that nature offers, toying with the settings, zooming in just to observe sights from a closer point.
He doesnât notice when you sigh or when you zone off; or when your thoughts shift back to the minutes and hours of the night. He doesnât notice; and in return, you donât know that heâs still thinking about the intention that brought him here; that you were attentive enough to truly show that some people appreciate art.
There arenât only fleeting nights and then forgotten memories. Because this⌠this right here is a core memory.
Because of you.
Are you thinking the same? Are you proud that his enmity has faded, replaced by a tender smile? Satisfied that your efforts were worth it after all â a goal reached that you set for yourself earlier tonight.
Let me show you pretty places until the sun comes up, and if you still hate me by then, I will never talk to you again.
ButâŚ
Heâd love to talk to you again.
However, your mind hasnât quite drifted in this direction; in truth, he honestly canât analyse or interpret you at all, because the question you pose next is far from what heâd been thinking about.
âTalking about pretty⌠uhm. Did you think Jieun was pretty?â
Jungkook blinks. One eyebrow cocks up; the camera drops back onto his lap. He flashes you a squinted look, a confused laugh erupting before he asks back, âWhat?â
âAh, donât lie. Sheâs very pretty.â
âSure? She is.â
Heâs nearly forgotten what she looked like. But beauty is still perceived and remembered â he guesses he found her good-looking.
âAnd sheâs everyoneâs type,â you prod, âwhat do you think, though? If she didnât have a boyfriend, could you imagine liking her?â
Jungkook thinks about it. Not because he wants to, but because you seem to have found an odd interest in whatever attracts him; maybe your questions are leading up to something. So heâll play along.
âHmmâŚÂ Maybe,â he answers.
âSo she is your type.â
Or maybe, youâre trying to get something out of him that you want to hear specifically. You seem so shy about it all of a sudden; not necessarily an adjective heâd assign to you.
And coming from you of all people, he somehow does not find the topic interesting. Itâs weird; he doesnât want to talk about it; he doesnât care about Jieun, either.
So he shrugs his shoulders indifferently, lifting his camera up again. He points it at you, eternalising your surprised expression just when you open your mouth to leave out a shocked, âHey!â
âThatâs what you get for asking such strange stuff.â
âItâs not strange! Iâm just small-talking.â
âYou do not small-talk.â
âIt could be a deeper conversation if you just admitted it.â
He chuckles, turning his body towards you, half his leg on the bench, âAdmit what?â
âThe type thing!â
âSure. I donât just have one type, though, you know?â
The dispute brought your bodies a little closer, your face far enough for him to still identify his surroundings, but near enough for him to see your eyes twinkling. The light is dancing in them. And itâs much easier to focus on it when you silence like this.
Just for a second.
Because you breathe in again ten seconds later, lightly slapping the thigh resting on the bench. The touch is cursory, tiny, nothing to overthink about â but heâd be lying if he said he didnât want it to linger.
In some way, it still does.
You ask, âOkay? What are your types then?â
âDifferent girls.â This time, only one shoulder shoots up. His eyes match his pensive hum. âWhoever suits me. Pretty girls but also nice girls. Especially nice girls.â
âAlright, be honest,â you begin, mimicking his position until your leg lifts onto the bench, knee nearly touching his. Youâre warming up now. Finally spitting the true question soon, âDo you think Iâm pretty?â
Cute.
But heâs not giving in this easily.
He smirks; he feels the dimple on one side of his lopsided smile the moment you look at it. Youâre distracted enough â so he uses the mental absence to attack you with yet another picture.
For a couple blinks, youâre startled â but as he reacts to his own nonsense with a content chortle, proud of his prank, you sigh. His shoulders rise with his sneering joy, head low as he inspects the picture just taken on his camera.
He zooms into your face, mouth open and eyes wide. You do look so pretty, he thinks â better even since you washed most of your make up off. Yet, he canât contain himself when he shows you the screen, telling you, âYou look alright.â
You laugh, rolling your eyes and your gaze to the view; your giggles start quietly, and then mix with his. Beforeâ
They soon become part of a bad harmony as more voices join your very own night. Somebody is nearing. Jungkook hears the laughter already, but the road is curved and dark; so he canât see them yet.
You might not have expected this, because you push closer to Jungkook on reflex; just at the same time as him. He didnât know he had it in him to always stay so alert around you. Ready to throw himself at intruders.
Crazy.
But once the voices grow in volume, the two of you are soon met with a couple walking past. Theyâre in love, because amidst their titter, thereâs another lewd sound. Or maybe, not too bad; playful kisses?
Yes.
The guy â heâs smooching his girlâs cheek, releasing with a, âMwahâ each time. Your initial surprise soon fades and turns into delight; Jungkook sees it in the way your smile returns. And in the furrowed yet amused eyebrowsâŚ
When the couple spots the two of you, they gasp; the girlâs hand immediately bolts to her chest, as if she just encountered a wild boar. But she catches herself soon, apologising, âOh. Sorry. Weâre sorry.â
You respond with an, âItâs okay!â Jungkook shakes his head politely to shrink their worries. Theyâve walked away as soon as they came, but he still hears the womanâs scolding, effect lessened by the still occurring belly laugh, âI told you to calm yourselfââ
As the world quietens again, Jungkook huffs, tilting his head as he deduces, âSo late and yet⌠Not much of a hidden spot after all.â
âIt feels like an ancient hill to me. I donât often meet others here.â You breathe in the wind, then tongue your cheek. âThey probably didnât even notice where they were going. People in love never do.â
âI guess so.â
He guesses so.
Itâs been a while since he fell in love.
Your head bobs once more before you lose yourself in the skyline, sucking in more of the crisp air thatâll grace you in the upcoming months. Fall is upon the town. He inbreathes the peace, too.
His hands operate on their own; one last time, he lifts it towards you, peeks through the lens again, adjusting the focus until the object clicks again. Youâre not looking at him; he caught your side profile, this time not out of mock or tease.
He means it. And you seem to know.
Because when you look at him this time, youâre not mad or irritated.
Only look at him softly, a smile that truly matches the heights you took him on.
READ BELOW!!
the fic isn't over yet â as always, tumblr has a 1k block limit that makes our lives harder than necessary lmao. read the last scene and the remaining 3k words of meraki here đĽ°
#jungkook fluff#bts fluff#jungkook smut#bts smut#jeongguk smut#jungkook x reader#jungkook x you#bts x you#bts imagines#jungkook fic#jungkook
6K notes
¡
View notes
Text
đđŽđŹđ˛ đ°đ¨đŚđđ§.
â˘Â°. *ŕż PAIRING â riki nishimura x fem!reader â˘Â°. *ŕż SYNOPSIS â in which riki is smitten with you and your sharp tongue. â˘Â°. *ŕż GENRE â one-shot, friends-to-???, fake dating, angst, fluff, crack, rich kid au, highschool lacrosse au â˘Â°. *ŕż WORD COUNT â 20.9k (yeah, i went kinda crazy) â˘Â°. *ŕż CONTENT WARNING(S) â violence(fighting), cursing, high school, mc has a shitty ex-bf, cheating(not riki obviously), almond grandma(mentioned), a singular cigarette is smoked, mc is shorter than riki, riki can also pick mc up, suggestive jokes, kys jokes, mc has hair (texture and length unspecified, but can be put up), objectification of girls(not riki tho), mc objectifies boys back, dreamy riki, not suggestive or smutty but mc is absolutely a horndog, mc is her own worst enemy, mc using riki to get back at her ex but he likes it, i did not edit this lmao â˘Â°. *ŕż EXTRA NOTES â inspired by euphoria and my hs experience, riki is a loser and a lover, implied that mc is 18, eunseok(riize) is an absolute asshole in this sorry guys i needed a villain, enha are all in the same grade, mc wears makeup and has a manicure of an unspecified length, mc has sick lore, also shoutout to my hg @1ntaks for digitally holding my hand thru this <3 â˘Â°. *ŕż SOUNDTRACK â busy woman by sabrina carpenter, hiss by megan thee stallion, low by sza, i did something bad by taylor swift, without you by lana del rey, agora hills by doja cat, girls like me donât cry by thuy, only girl (in the world) by rihanna, safety net by ariana grande, snooze by sza
part two ; coming soon
AT THE BEGINNING OF 2024, you lost for the first time in your life.
Finding your boyfriend of two years making out with a girl you know too well as Lee Nayeon, your best friend, on the Carrara marble countertop of your family home that you had trusted her to take care of for eight days while you were in New York was not on your New Yearâs resolution. You had planned to stay to see the Times Square Ball Drop with your mom and stepdad, but you realized youâd prefer to spend it with your boyfriend.
He didnât seem to share the same sentiment, considering he has his tongue down the traitorous bitchâs throat. âAre you fucking kidding me?â
She screams, both of them startled by your appearance and scrambling off of each other. You feel an urge to slam her face into the precious marble they were defiling, but you stay where you are. âAre you fucking kidding me?â
âIt isnât what you think, babeââ
The speed at which Nayeonâs eyes filled with guilty and horrified tears fuels your rage, and behind you, Bahiyyih appears.
âLook whoâs backâoh?â She stops beside you, arm hovering to wrap around you until she sees what youâre seeing. âEunseok? Since when were you back from Stanford?â
âSince heâs been fucking Nayeon, apparently.âÂ
The barbie-haired girlâs eyes widen, and as she looks between the two she notices the same things youâre painfully aware of. Nayeonâs smeared lip gloss, her tears, Eunseokâs undone jeans, and the sparkly residue on his mouth. âOhâŚâ
Nayeonâs whimper as she slides off the counter snaps you out of your daze, âYouâre crying?â The angry tears forming in your eyes go unshed as you walk closer to her, âYou fuck my boyfriend, and youâre fucking crying?â
Anger turns to fury when the boy in question gets between you and her, pleading to let him explain, his hand grabbing your elbow to pull you away, only for you to jerk away, âOkay, I wonât touch you, just let me explainââ
âHow long?â
âWhat? Babe, this isnât-â
âHow long have you been fucking him?â Your question is directed at who you thought was your friend, who avoids looking at you as she silently weeps. Scoffing, you realize you won't get a straight answer and choose to reel in your urge to beat her face in with one of your stepdad's bowling trophies thatâs on display a few steps away. âGet out.â
âBabe, let meââ
The attempts at holding in your temper are lost on you, quickly forgotten as you walk over to the fireplace, grabbing the fire poker hanging up and holding it up. Nayeon lets out a scared, oh my God, while Eunseok tries to calm you down, demanding you put down the weapon. Instead of that, you walk past them, out the front door, ignoring Bahiyyihâs, âNo, no, noââ
Eunseokâs red Mustang sits prettily in the driveway, and you can hear him realizing what you intend to do, but itâs too late for him. You slam the poker down onto the hood of his car, âGet. Out!â
âYou crazy bitch, what is wrong with you?!â He screams, and you find yourself screaming back.
âTake your side piece and get. Out!â You slam the poker down again, and in minutes heâs got Nayeon in the passenger seat and is peeling out of your driveway like itâs on fire.
If rage had a physical human form, you would be it. Clenched jaw, a deadly weapon in your hands, and a white-hot fury in your eyes that promised to make those two regret crossing you.
The amount of junk food you have consumed in the last week wouldâve sent your almond grandmother into an early grave. Your other friends had been visiting as often as possible to keep you from being alone in your thoughts for too long, offering to take you out or go shopping, yet the thought of possibly seeing either of those backstabbing fuckers in public made you sick to your stomach.
Pride didnât allow you to cry, so instead of sadness and heartbreak, which you definitely felt but would never admit to, you felt pure seething fury.
âSo Iâve been thinking,â You take a drag from the cherried slim between your fingers, exhaling towards the sky as you lean against the side of the pool.
From her spot on the lawn chair sunbathing, Belle says. âYou canât kill them.â
âI can, youâre just a party pooper.â
âThe party should not include going to prison for murder.â Her statement makes you roll your eyes, âYou arenât built for prison, babe.â
âWell, that I can agree with,â You sigh, the water shifting around you as you turn to face her, arms resting on the edge, âbut that wasnât what I was thinking about.â
Pausing, you take one last drag from your cigarette before smothering it into the stone, âOne of the things about him that pissed me off to no end was his temper, right?â
Remembering the many conversations and rants had and heard, Belle nods, âMhm.â
âSo what if I date someone I know will piss him off?â
âIf thatâs what you think will help you heal, thenâŚâ She trails off, and you groan.
âWhy canât you just say itâs an amazing idea?âÂ
âGirlâŚâ Sighing, she asks, âI just donât think a third party should be involved.â
âHe already got one involved, so why canât I?âÂ
Making a face that screams, well youâve got a point, Belle then adds, âI think you should find someone who pisses him off but they should be aware of your plans. Donât lead someone on.â
A cunning smile grows on your glossy lips, âIâm not.â
âOh, so you already have someone in mind?â She gathers with a growing smile of disbelief, âPlease tell me it isnât one of his frat brothers.â
You grimace at the thought, âEw, no. The only one of them remotely dateable is Wonbin and thatâs meeting the bare minimum standards.â
Shrugging, Belle offers, âAt least they're hot?â
âHot does not equal dateable, plus I hardly believe any of them would date their friendâs ex anyway.â Shaking your head, you push yourself out of the pool and sit on the ledge to let yourself drip dry, âWhat about one of the lacrosse guys?â
âYou say no to a frat boy but not a lacrosse player?âÂ
âI know, I know, but at least I have eyes on them instead of hoping they're being loyal in another city.â You put a hand above your eyes to block out the sun, âMe knowing the coach kind of helps, no?â
âIf loyalty is your goal then good luck, bitch.â Belle snorts, sipping from the pink bendy straw sticking out of her Dr Pepper bottle, âLacrosse players are mansluts.â
âI know that, butâŚâ You push yourself to stand, grabbing the towel Belle holds out when she hears the sound of your feet leaving the water, her eyes still closed and covered by a pair of Prada sunglasses, âI have a few options.â
âThe only, as you put it, âremotely dateableâ-â she emphasizes those two words with quotations using her perfectly manicured fingers, â-lacrosse players are Jay and Sunoo. Jay is taken and Sunoo friendzones every apretty girl he meets.â
âI donât know, Jungwonâs cute.â You think aloud, placing a hand on your hip, âHeâs just a tight ass.â
âAnd therefore undateable.â She finishes for you. âWhat about the baseball team?â
âEunseok plays, Iâm trying to not be reminded of him.â
Belle hums in acknowledgment, âLet me look at the Lacrosse team's insta.â
You pull the claw clip out of your hair as you wait, patting your body dry until she holds out her phone for you to look at. Taking it with your dry hand, you examine the team photo.
You recognize the majority of them, rolling your eyes at a few familiar ones before your eyes land on one particular member of the team you donât recognize. âWhoâs number 10?â
Handing it back, you walk over to the oversized Hall & Oates shirt youâd stolen from your brotherâs room(he left a lot of his clothes when he moved out, something about âfinding his style). You hear the tap of her nails on the screen a few times before she answers, âSome guy named Niki? Or Riki? He doesnât have any posts on his profile but in the photos heâs tagged in heâs called either of those names.â She gasps, a cackle escaping her lips, âSome of these are his mom tagging him in baby photos, please come look!â
Leaning over, you peek at her screen, âOh my god, I would die.â You canât help but giggle as she scrolls, this womanâs Instagram is a gold mine of childhood photos of this guy. âOkay, I feel weird looking at his baby photos, show me the other ones heâs tagged in.â
âOn it.â Belle affirms, âLetâs go inside, too.â
âOkay, so-â Belle stands before a whiteboard, one that your stepdad used to use before upgrading his office to have a massive one mounted on the wall, a pink dry-erase marker uncapped in her hands as she looks down at her phone for reference. After a quick text to the group chat, a brief summary of your plan was explained when everyone got to your house, and it seemed that everyone was invested. â-are we all in attendance.â
Jongseob is eating cereal in the white tufted chair in the corner of your room, Eunchae is in the bean bag, and Bahiyyih is on the floor between them, lined up like a good audience.Â
âWeâre making a pros and cons list for Riki Nishimura,â Belle announces, writing his name on the whiteboard as âNikiâ between the two names, âfeel free to interject when you have a pro or con to list.â
âCon,â Jongseob raises a finger with his mouth half full, swallowing before saying, âHis nickname is stupid.â
âOpinions donât count, stupid.â Eunchae rolls her eyes, earning the finger from the boy in the chair.
âBut like, why is his nickname Niki?â Hiyyih asks, and Jongseon lets out a nearly intelligible âthank you!â.
âI assume itâs because there's another Riki on the team,â Belle guesses, and the three nod. You sip the Baja freeze youâd had them pick you up on the way to your house and hum.
âMake an âunsureâ column,â you instruct, and she does so, writing ânickname kinda dumbâ under it.
âPro, heâs on the Lacrosse team so heâs fit,â Belle starts, writing it on the board under its labeled column.
âCon, heâs on the lacrosse team.â
A chorus of agreement accompanies it to its column.
âPro, from the photos heâs tagged in and the team photo, heâs at least 6â.â Eunchae adds, Belle nods and writes âtallâ.
âHow can you tell?â Jongseob asks, and she rolls her eyes like his question is the most idiotic thing sheâs ever heard.
âBecause I pass Heeseung in the halls from 5th to 6th period and in these photos, this guy looks a little taller than him.â She explains, and you hold a hand up when Jongseob opens his mouth to insult her.
âCon, no instagram posts.â
âPro, I just found a pic from Jakeâs insta and I can see him in the back. Heâs got abs.â (Thank you, Bahiyyih.)
By the time the sun has set, the whiteboard is packed, the pros heavily outweighing the cons. You had even searched the large group chat you were added into on Snap in freshman year full of girls you barely know who dated around and kept each other informed, and found his name zero times.Â
âI think heâs the one.â You sigh.
Jongseob snorts, pulling the cherry soda vape from his lips and asking, âWhy do you think Eunseok will hate him?â
âHe hates Lacrosse guys âcause he didnât make the team, I figured it would hit a soft spot.â You smile and shrug.
âHold on, the plot thickens,â Bahiiyih announces, eyes on her phone screen. âDo you guys remember that guy Nayeon had a crush on in freshman year?â
A chorus of confirmation causes her to grin, âIâm pretty sure it was this guy.â
You push yourself off your bed to peek over her shoulder at record speed, âNo fucking way. How do you know?â
âI backread in the group chat, and she sent a picture of him, look!â She turns her phone for everyone to see, and from the slightly blurry and oddly angled photo that she obviously tried to take secretly, you can certainly see a resemblance, âAm I hallucinating, or is that him?â
âNo that definitely looks like him,â Belle agrees, turning her head to face you with her jaw slack and a look, âHeâs the one.â
âHow are we gonna convince him to fake date you, though?â Jongseob asks, and you roll your eyes.
âLeave the planning to those qualified, Seob.â
You, all things considered, would call yourself a professional at annoying men. From years of experience before your brother moved out, you learned every which way to annoy him, and more importantly, boys in general. You are also smart enough to understand that his best friend, Jungkook, is your ticket to getting closer to the lacrosse team, aka Riki, even if you have to deal with Jakeâs flirting and Heeseungâs annoyingly beautiful smile, you will get through it purely out of spite.Â
When you get to school extra early the day before the semester is set to start, parking your car and turning your sights to where you knew he took the team to practice in the mornings, and where you knew he would be even if he and your parents got back from New York just last night. âA hoe never gets cold.â You mumble the chant to yourself over and over as you turn off your carâs engine and the warm air stops blowing.Â
You curse rather loudly when you open your door and are met with a frigid breeze that makes your body clench to preserve its warmth. âFuck, fuck, fuck.â
With your school bag on your shoulder and a thick white puffy jacket lined with fleece that keeps your torso warm, you speed walk toward the field, which the student parking lot happens to be in relative close proximity to.Â
The sight of you approaching is enough to stop a good half of the players in their laps around the field, a typical start to Jungkookâs diabolical training regimen. The distraction you pose catches the man of the hourâs attention, and when he turns to face the source, he seems shockingly displeased. With a barked order to keep running thrown at the stopped players, he turns to you again and asks, âWhat are you doing here?â
Your lips part in dramatic offense, âYou seem unhappy to see me and I donât appreciate it.â
Rolling his eyes and pulling two hotpacks from his bag on the ground and handing them to you, he repeats, âWhat are you doing at school so early?â
Shrugging, you shove your hands into your jacket pockets and glance at the team, catching the eye of Sunoo and winking as he passes by. âIâm bored and single. What better way to spend my time than watching lacrosse players train in frozen hell?â
Jungkookâs face tells you heâs far less than impressed, and he seems at a loss for words. You decide to let him in on your plan, not seeing any harm in doing so.
âOkay, Iâm trying to ruin Eunseok's day, every day, by reminding him I have a hotter, taller, and more athletically skilled boyfriend than he ever was or could be,â You start, âAnd Iâm calling in a favor.â
âWhat favor? You donât do shitââ
âOkay then, tell me more about him or Iâll tell my brother about what really happened to his Audi last Christmas.â The Audi in question had a large scuff on the back bumper that Jungkook had paid you three hundred dollars to take the blame for, which while your brother was upset, you knew heâd be far angrier if he knew the truth. Jungkook knew that too.
If the cold wasnât already doing the job, you would say he lost all color in his face. A sweet smile forms on your lips, and you take the moment of his speechless horror to take another glance at the team.Â
When you meet the eyes of the familiar boy in a dark red hoodie with the number 10 on it you feel your face warm up involuntarily. Instinctively, you swallow the nervous lump in your throat, something thatâs never happened to you, and quickly turn back to the coach (not before catching sight of the slight tug at the corner of #10âs plump lips). âSo?â
Jungkook sighs, âWhich one?â
âNumber 10.â
Immediately, the man shakes his head, âNuh-uh.â At the raise of one of your eyebrows, he quickly explains, âHeâs one of my best players, I donât need him being distracted by my best friendâs kid sister.â
You roll your eyes, âIf you have a better option for me, then please, do share.â
âWhat about Jungwon?âÂ
âTight ass,â You say barely a breath later, eyes watching said player jog past, lingering on his backside as he moves away, âIn more ways than one.â
âOkay, stop.â Jungkook says, disgust on his face, âWhat about Taehyun.â
âHeâs Dr. Evil and Jungwon is his mini-me, theyâre both so strict theyâd never agree.â
He makes a face, point heard, before suggesting one last player in a last-ditch effort, âJakââ
âIf the name Jake Sim leaves your mouth Iâm setting your Mercedes on fire.âÂ
His mouth shuts automatically, and he sighs.Â
âSo, tell me about him.â
âWhy donât you go ask?â
You give him a look that read, donât be fucking stupid.
âUgh, fine. What do you wanna know?â Jungkook caves, blowing the whistle around his neck, signaling the team to start the next warmup, pushups.Â
âWhatâs his favorite color?â You ask, obviously pulling his leg considering the grin on your face.
âNishimura!â He immediately calls, and number 10 looks up from his position on the ground. You donât look longer than a moment, your spine straightening up automatically when his eyes meet yours once again, âWhatâs your favorite color?â
You donât look, but you can bet money that he probably looks confused considering your brotherâs best friend tells him to âjust answer the damn questionâ, and then you hear his voice.Â
âBlack.â
Fuck, this is bad. The little shit in you wants to say that black isnât technically a color, that itâs the absence of such, but the thought of looking at him and saying something like that makes your palms go clammy and your heart beat out of your chest. His voice is deep, and with the exertion in it from the warmup, you think you might just have to throw yourself into an active volcano.
âMine is green, coach!âÂ
âI didnât ask, Huening.â Your lips flatten, your hand flying to cover your mouth as you try not to giggle. Instinctively, you look at Kai, whose ears have gone red in embarrassment, and you take pity.
âI like green too, Kai.â You say loudly for him to hear, and his head perks up to look at you.
âI like blue!â Jake pipes in, all too eager to include himself.
âNobody asked, Jake.â Jay grunts, on his hundredth push-up and losing patience.
Jungkook blows the whistle again, âBurpees.â
âYouâre a monster.â You muse, watching the team lose all faith in a heavenly being as they do what he says. Every jump grants you the sight of rock-hard abs, so you're not really complaining.Â
âStop ogling the team, itâs gross.â Jungkook hisses, âWhat else do you want to know?â
âGirlfriend?â
âNot that I know of.â
âType?â
He makes a face, âI donât know. Heâs a teenager, probably anything that breathes in his direction.âÂ
âAge?â
âTurned 18 in December, the team threw him a pizza party.â
âBeginning or end of December?â You ask quizzically.
Rolling his eyes, Jungkook huffs, âWhy does it matter?â
âI need to know if Iâm dealing with a Sagittarius or a Capricorn. Please, please, tell me he isnât a Capricorn.â
âJesus ChristâŚâ Thinking about it, Jungkook answers, âI think it was in the first week?â
A sigh of relief leaves you, âThank god. I cannot stand an earth sign.â
âIâm an earth sign.âÂ
âAnd it took me ages to forgive you for that.â
âOkay, go away.â Jungkook shakes his head, obviously annoyed and desperate to get rid of you.
âBut Iâm notââ
âNishimura.â Dread fills you, and before you can stop him from opening his mouth again, number 10 stands up.
âYeah, Coach?â
âWalk this one to her car.â
Confusion is etched on his pretty face, but he nods, jogging over as you curse at Jungkook quietly enough for him and the lord to hear but not the approaching lacrosse player.
When he stands just a few feet away, waiting for you to start walking with him, you turn to face him and feel a jolt in your stomach. Heâs tall.Â
You already knew this but seeing it with your eyes is a different experience than seeing photos of it. Get a grip, bitch.
Offering him a condescending smile, a defense mechanism to keep yourself from humiliating yourself by showing how affected you are, you shoot your brotherâs friend the finger and begin to make your way off the field.
You pass Riki, not even sparing him a look as you do so, but listening to make sure heâs following. With his much longer legs, it isnât long before heâs walking just slightly behind you, not at your side but close enough for you to sense his presence. When you make it to your car in what felt like awkward silence to you but was probably nothing to him, you heave a sigh of relief when she unlocks and you open the door.Â
Not sitting yourself inside yet, despite the cold and the fact your body hurts from it, you turn to face him.
âThis yours?â He asks. God, that voice again.
You hum in confirmation, âHer name is Manon.âÂ
âNice name.â He compliments, and you tilt your head, looking between his eyes and glancing down to his mouth every so often. He swallows almost unnoticeably, âWhatâs yours?â
Resisting the urge to ask if he truly didnât know, you conclude that would sound far too conceited, and tell him your name.Â
He tries it out, and you can see the tip of his tongue flick across his teeth before he says, âIâm Riki.â
âI know.â You say shamelessly, âYou can go back to practice, now.â
If you didnât know any better, you would think the slight smirk that tugs at his lips is of annoyance, but with the way his eyes look down your face every other second, you know exactly what youâre doing. He blinks, turning his body slightly to walk away, âYeah.â
You wait until his back is to you to slide into your driverâs seat, quickly pulling your phone out to text the group chat.
bitchqueen: guys this is bad
bitchqueen: heâs HOT
bitchqueen: i canât do thisÂ
Glancing back up to see if Riki left, you sigh in relief when heâs nowhere to be found. You look back down when your phone dings. bellenotdelphine: eunseok bought nayeon a van cleef bracelet
bitchqueen: okay bitches im back
myrootcame2005: ur resolve inspires generations
Going back to school wasnât so bad, or at least it isnât as bad you thought it would be. You were the only licensed driver in your friend group, and as such you expected to have a full car every morning, picking up Belle first as she lived down the street, and then Jongseob and Eunchae, who grew up neighbors in a neighborhood you pass on the way to school. Bahiyyih usually gets a ride with her brother, though she does complain his truck still smells like the musky car freshener he spilled back when he got it.
After parking and putting on your shoes that youâd taken off because you hate driving with them on, you had Belle hand you your backpack from at her feet and the four of you exited the car into the frigid weather. âJesus fuck, why is it so cold?â
Belle huddled by you as you sped walked to the school doors, where you finally took notice of the stares directed your way. Ignoring the staring was the easy part, having a freshman walk up to you and ask, âHey, is it true you destroyed your boyfriendâs car with a crowbar?â was hard to avoid.
Belle seems ready to tell them to fuck off but you smile sweetly, âIt was a fire poker, actually, and destroyed is a strong word. Also, who the fuck are you?â
You got in enough trouble with your parents when they found out, these people could at least get the facts right. When the 14 year old boy opens his mouth to answer, you make a face, âI donât actually care.â
Ignoring that encounter, you would say it was a relatively normal day. AP classes already gave you packets and mounds of homework, but with the semester classes you took last year you only had 5 periods of the day before being allowed to go home, perks of being a senior, you guess. The fact almost every class you had was an AP class was a definite downside, though.
The only AP class you didnât have happened to be Medical Microbiology, which you had dreaded to take but it was the same teacher you had last semester for A&P who loved you enough to exempt you from the final without you having to submit the form like everyone else, and luck was on your side it seemed because while you were seething to find that Nayeon was in your 5th period class, the sight of the seating chart and the name labeled next to yours made you decide to postpone ingesting whatever deadly chemical Mrs. Wilson had in her locked cabinet.
Nishimura, Riki
The short curly-haired woman seemed overjoyed to see you, of course, and like clockwork you handed her a small pink box containing her favored cookie from the shop down the road, earning yourself a nice sidehug.Â
You know a way to a teacher's heart, which had made your high school experience better than most could imagine, though Mrs. Brooks from Pre-AP English freshman year was a cunt and you gave up on making her like you within the first month. Sitting down at your seat, which happened to be somewhat close to her desk, you were looking down at the packet sheâd left stacked on the table by the door for students to take from as they came in when you felt a tap on your shoulder.
Growing up with a brother gave you a good understanding of how boys worked, and when you saw no one in your periphery, you looked to the opposite side, seeing the familiar lacrosse player. You dread small talk, though when the late bell rings as he sits down, you thank the heavens you donât have to.Â
Moving your hair off your shoulder, you took a pink mechanical pencil from your matching pencil case as Mrs. Wilson started speaking.
âHey.â He leans ever so closer, whispering to get your attention, âCan I borrow a pencil?â
The raised eyebrow you send his way makes his raise his own, and you roll your eyes, grabbing one of the orange ones you never used and handing it to him, when you notice his look between the two pencils, you say, âCanât risk you taking one of my good ones.â
He rolls his eyes this time, but starts writing his name with it anyway. At first, he uses his right hand, but ten minutes into the lecture about the staining process, he switches hands.
It isnât annoying until he starts intentionally brushing your elbow with his own, and you know itâs intentional because when the word youâre writing comes out jagged and you look at him, he has a smug look on his face while avoiding meeting your eyes, snickering softly when you erase the word you deemed too ugly to continue writing. You turn in your seat, facing away from him and rotating your paper with you as you cross one leg over the other, it was easier writing this way anyway.
With your new angle, you can see Nayeon glancing over every now and then in the corner of your eye.Â
Now, to say your reputation wasnât ruined but in fact reinforced by everyone finding out about what you did to Eunseokâs car, was a factual statement. You didnât like the term âanger management issuesâ which is what the therapist your mother made you see last year used to describe your behavior.Â
In your humble opinion, Jaclyn Delvacchio deserved the bruise you left on her brow bone and is honestly lucky you didnât get a good enough hit in before the history teacher pulled you off of her, maybe she shouldâve kept her mouth shut about Eunchaeâs braces.
Then, there was Kaley Graham in your freshman year, a sophomore who told you to stay away from your then-situationship, Eunseok, to which you responded to her threats by grabbing her head and slamming her face into the window of an active classroom. You thought the photos of her face smashed against it were funny, the school and your suddenly-present father did not.
So really, youâre already labeled a crazy bitch, violent, âuntameableâ(as you'd heard uttered by boys you wouldn't touch with a twenty foot pole). You might as well act like it.
When the bell rings 45 minutes later, you breathe a sigh of relief, finally time to go home.
You donât notice heâs waiting for you until youâve gathered your things and taken your keys out. He leans against his desk, waiting for you with observant eyes that land on the key-fob in your hand before moving up to your eyes. âFree period?â
You nod, âas are the next two.â
He whistles low as the both of you walk out, âI didnât get any free periods, youâre lucky.â
âLacrosse?â You ask, and he nods with a small grimace.
âAnd I failed Chem last year, so Iâve got to take it again.â He sighs, âIâm not great with all the math.â
âAP?â You ask innocently, and he snorts.
âGod no. Regular.â He states, raising a brow as he adds, âDid you take AP?â
You hum, nodding, âYeah.â
âSo, if I come to you with a radiation equation, would you help me?â He asks in a way that almost feels teasing.
âItâs called a nuclear equation, and I suppose I could be persuaded.â You stop in front of the double doors at the front of the school, and from how others are rushing through the halls you assume the bell is going to ring soon.
âCould I try to persuade you after lacrosse practice? Iâm gonna be late for Chem.â He says, though his tone is anything but worried, just like the smirk on his face.
âThereâs a cafe next to the nail salon down the road, I might be there when lacrosse practice is over.â You hint, before turning to leave without another word.
After texting the group chat about the plan to meet up with Riki after his practice ends, you felt good. Flirting came easy, especially when you wanted something, which obviously was the case with him, but you werenât oblivious to the fact he was flirting back.Â
hueningbarbie: damn u act fast
bitchqueen: i'm just a girl who knows what she wants and gets it ;)
hongchae: do you think heâll agree?
bitchqueen: if he doesnt i think jake is my only other option
bitchqueen: killing myself means i let them win
bellenotdelphine: jake is NEVER the only option
bellenotdelphine: hang in there queen
You sit in a worn out booth facing the big wall of windows lining the front of the hole-in-the-wall cafe. Part of you regrets choosing it considering Gloria, the old lady who always takes your order and brings you your food, seemed all too excited when you said you were waiting for a boy that wasnât Eunseok.Â
You try not to look up every time you see a car pull into the strip center of cafes and food joints, only glancing when you see a black Jeep pull into the parking spot next to your car, quickly acting like you werenât looking when the familiar lacrosse player hopped out of it with wet hair and the same sweatshirt with his jersey number and name on it.
It isnât until he slides into the booth across from yours that you look up from the menu you werenât even reading, âHow was practice?â
He sighs, leaning back into the booth and you feel his shoe brush yours, âCoach had me on offense,â he says, rubbing his side with a wince.
âWant some tiger balm?â You ask nonchalantly, reaching into your purse to pull out the small container of it you keep to help with the pain you get from looking down and taking notes, not to mention scrolling through social media, too.
He takes it with a whispered please, and you try not to watch as he moves his hand under his shirt to rub it in. Bahiyyih was right.
âAny drinks, mija?â Gloria appears beside your booth with a knowing look on her face as she looks between you two, âand you?â
âDr Pepper, please.â You order with a smile, and she affectionately rubs your arm with a nod before looking at Riki, who repeats you.
When Gloria walks away to get the drinks, Riki seems curious, âI come here a lot.â
Nodding, he says, âI figured. Whatâs good, here?â
âOh, everything is good. Do you recognize anything on the menu?â When he shakes his head, you try not to act offended, and say, âThe enchiladas are really good, but if youâre picky I would get the tacos.â
âMm, Iâll get an enchi-â he struggles to mimic your pronunciation of the word, and you laugh quietly.
âEnchiladas?â You ask with a cheeky smile, and he scrunches his face up in shame, âItâs okay, itâs hard to say.â
âYouâre good at it.â He states, not an opinion, a fact.
âI am.â You agree, and the smile on his face is enough to send your heart into your throat. Get. A. Grip. âLike I said, I come here a lot.â
âSo, what do I have to do to persuade you to help me pass Chem?â He asks after Gloria sets down your drinks and takes your orders(sending you a hidden wink as she turns to walk into the kitchen), and you realize now's the time to bring up your plan.
âSo, I actually have a proposition for you.â You admit, and he leans forward a little, curious to hear it. When you say it, albeit a slow and awkward version of what you intended to say as the nerves got the better of you because of that damn look in his eyes, you swear you almost see his face drop a little.Â
âSo you want toâŚfake date? To make your ex jealous.â He sounds unsure, and you quickly shake your head.
âNot jealous, I kinda just want to ruin his day...everyday.â You state, âIâm the crazy bitch, youâre the hot athlete. Match made in heaven, right?â
He seems to take the âhotâ comment well, crossing his arms and tilting his head, âSo, what are the rules? If weâre dating, do we have to go all out or just spread the word?â
âSpreading the word only works for so long,â you say, pleased by his question, âKissing is a bit much, especially since itâs only been a few weeks since I dumped him. If we move too fast everyone will think youâre my rebound. We should take it slow.â
âSoâŚâ he thinks for a second, âHolding hands?â
You hum in agreement, âGet me flowers, too.â
âWhatâs your favorite kind?â The question shouldnât throw you off, but it hits you rather suddenly that youâd never been asked that by a guy, especially not Eunseok.Â
âLilies.â You say, âAnd babyâs breath.â
He nods, taking a mental note of that just as Gloria comes out with your food. The enchiladas were a win, he devoured them like he hadnât eaten for years, though there was a pause in the process when he insisted on trying the salsa you had poured generously over your own food, which was far too spicy for him, to your delight.
You exchanged numbers outside of the restaurant after paying(he had picked up the bill before you could grab it), and as you were putting a name to his number, he leaned down and pressed a kiss to your cheek.Â
Laughing at the look on your face, he subtly motions behind you, and when you glance back you find about five girls no older than 16 piled into a Corolla and staring, but snapping their eyes away and hiding when you meet their gazes.
Turning back to him, you swallow the sudden lump in your throat when you see heâs already looking at you.
âGood catch.â You cough, ignoring the smug smirk growing in his face, âIâll text you.â
âOkay.â He says, waiting for you to move away before he does, and you find yourself sucking in a deep breath and turning to get into your car.
âSo he agreed?â Belle asks from the passenger seat of your car, âI told you, teenage boys are easy.â
You pull into your parking spot in the school lot, pulling down the ugly parking pass they make you hang from the rearview mirror that you always tuck back up when you leave because it's an eyesore, âWe tried to work out the technicalities last night but I fell asleep on the phone.âÂ
Eunchae gasps as if scandalized, âYou fell asleep on the phone with him? Thatâs so cute.â
You groan, âI know, itâs embarrassing!â Getting out of your car, you try to withhold a groan when you immediately spot Jake practically skipping over, a cheeky grin on his face. Shit.
You donât hide your displeasure when he calls your name, shooting a giggling Belle the finger before turning to give him attention you know youâd regret, âYou and Niki?â
âIs that any of your business?âÂ
He starts giggling, the grin on his face widening as he starts hopping around like an excited puppy, âNo way! You gotta tell me how he fiââ
âJake!â A girl from the cheer squad calls his name from across the courtyard, and he whirls around to wave with a flirty smile.
By the time he turns back to you, youâre already walking away with the girls. âWeâre talking about it in 2nd!â
âNo weâre not!â You call back, waving your hand dismissively. Eunchae snorts, hooking her arm with yours as the three of you walk through the entrance. Jongseob had come in early with his other friend group for club prep, so his presence is sorely missed.Â
âDo you think heâll get you flowers?â The junior on your arm asks, and you shrug.
âI mean, maybe.â Your answer makes Belle roll her eyes.
âManifest it, orâŚâ She stops in front of your 1st class of the day, ready to drop you off, and a grin overtakes her face, âBitch.â
You step closer to see when she sees, and at your assigned seat is a bouquet of the same flowers you told Riki you liked, pink and white lilies with baby's breath sprinkled in. Habitually, you bite your lip to withhold the smile, sliding your arm out from Eunchaeâs and walking in.
The girl who sits next to you, Hikaru, has an almost fox-like grin on her face as she sees you finally arrive. She says a few things that you hum in response to as you pluck the tiny folded card from between the blossoms, opening it and allowing Belle and Eunchae to peek over your shoulder to read it with you. âShut up!â Belle practically squeals.
For: Pretty
âGod.â You sigh, closing the note and grabbing the bouquet from Eunchae who had picked it up to smell them, âI wonder where he got these.â
âI donât know but they look expensive.â Belle muses with a grin and you hum in agreement with a smile.
A text tone dings from your phone, a familiar one that makes you groan. When you look at your screen your jaw clenches and shifts.
spermdonor: lunch? we need to catch up.
You suspect your mom told him about how you get off early now, cursing the woman mentally as you send back a simple thumbs up to her ex-husband.Â
Between 1st and 2nd period, you had put the bouquet in your car to avoid walking around with it, and youâre so very thankful you did with the annoying grin on Jakeâs face as you sat across from him in College Algebra.
âYou and Niki.â He repeats with a cheeky raise of his brows, his grin unaffected by the look of utter distaste on your face at his presence.
âWhat about Riki and me?â You ask monotonously, clearly unimpressed with the prompt. Â
âYou guys datinâ?â He asks cheekily, clearly already aware that you went on a âdateâ, but wanting to hear it from you.
âIf I say we went on a singular date will you leave me alone?â You ask with a sigh, using your knuckle to massage your temple.
Jake shakes his head with a shit-eating grin, âNot a chance.â
You groan softly as the bell rings, and the sigh of relief is quickly smothered with your hopes of escaping this period without having to answer a question as a familiar substitute walks in, Mr. Morrell, a nice old man who usually just lets everyone do their own thing. Heâs your mortal enemy now, youâve decided.
The moment he announces those wretched words, âfree dayâ, your fate is sealed.
Jake is snickering like a freak, leaning over his desk as if you arenât just a few feet away from him, âYou and Riki.â He giggles, and you look at him as if heâs possessed and it disgusts you.
âPlease, leave me alone.â You say with a bit more emotion than your last few words.
Jake is too busy giggling like a little girl to listen or even hear what you said, nearly cutting you off as he asks, âWhere was your first date?âÂ
âThe Mexican place next to the nail salon down the street.â You answer monotonously, just wanting to get it over with at this point.
âDid he pay? He paid.â Jake asks then nods to himself as he says the last statement.
âYes, he paid.âÂ
âOoo, did he kiss you? Nah, Nikiâs way too pussy to do thatââ
You cut him off with an invisible twitch of your brow, âHe gave me a solid kiss on the cheek.â
Itâs as if youâve broken the already clearly leaking dam of pure giddy delight. Heâs practically squealing with a breathy and high-pitched ânaur way~â, whipping out his phone you assume to text their group chat. Heâs bouncing in his seat, and you make a face as you pull your desk an inch away from his desk to stop feeling the movements.
You open your coloring book you bring with you to classes when you have no other work, you have other work but youâd rather not do that while Jake giggles and grills you.
The rest of the period is filled with him asking questions you either answer shortly or choose to not answer at all. (âDo you think heâs the one?â)
You of course could not see was that across the campus Riki was hiding his phone in his lap wanting to sink into a hole and die as Jake spams the team group chat like a live tweet of his, though strongly condemned by him, weirdly thorough interview like your barely started kind-of-relationship is his favorite sitcom.
âThank you, lord.â you sigh as the bell rings, freeing you of your torment as you grab your gathered and organized bag to pull over your shoulder and hasten out of the classroom before Jake can get you. (Yes, like a boogeyman.)
It seems you canât catch a break as you find out Park Sunghoon is in your 4th period. Park Sunghoon, jersey number 23, goalkeeper of the Decelis Demons. Also, youâve decided, another mortal enemy.Â
You donât even know how you hadnât noticed him all semester or the semester prior, given how awkwardly talkative he is. Sitting beside you with a cute but unsettling smile, holding out his hand like he was meeting a celebrity, which you werenât exactly complaining about but the smile was weird. He was almost just as bad as Jake, if not worse simply because he freaked you out a bit. Seriously, why is someone so beautiful so fucking weird. His moles look like constellations but something about his vibes unsettle you.
It isnât like you donât have weird friends, youâve watched Jongseob stuff fifty chile-coated gushers into his mouth purely because Eunchae told him he couldnât. Weird usually isnât the issue, except it is in this scenario.Â
Escaping him and getting to go to your teacherâs aid period was like a shining of heavenâs pure light on you. You find yourself grading papers in the back of the classroom while your freshman-year Latin teacher plays Hercules in New York on the projector, a purple glitter pen in your hand as you go through the stack of exams.
âHey,â one of the freshmen a cluster of desks away calls to you in a semi-hushed voice, halting the movement of your glitter pen and directing your attention to them, âyour boyfriendâs waiting at the door.â
âI donât have a boyfriendâ, parts your lips before you suddenly remember that Riki exists and halt before it can leave them. Looking to the closed door of the classroom, you find the boy in question peering through the small window in the door, and raise an inquisitive brow.
He only waves at you, a clear signal he wants you to come out and talk to him, part of you wonders why he knew where you were but memories of the phone call the night you both agreed on the whole âfake datingâ thing, exchanging school schedules and discussing preferences, come back to you and you nod lightly.
Mrs. B looks up from her laptop as you cap the glitter pen, âDonât be gone too long.âÂ
Shooting her a smile and a small âyes maâam, thank youâ, you get up from the desk and shoot the snickering freshmen a weak glare as you walk to the door, opening it just enough to side step out of the room and shut it behind you.
âHey.â is the first thing he says, his voice is deep despite its softness, mindful of the other classes going on in the language hall as well as the other teens clearly trying to get a good look at him as the door closes behind you.
You say it back just as softly, âHey.â
He smiles just a bit, a boyish quirk of his lips that has your heart picking up, get a fucking grip, bitch. âIâm sorry about Jake and Sunghoon.â
The mention of them has you pressing your lips together with a nearly-sympathetic smile, âItâs okay.â
âNo, theyâreâŚa lot.â He chuckles softly, though his words are still genuine, âI donât want you to get scared away.â
Something in your heart flutters, âDonât worry about it.â You say with a soft laugh that has his eyes darting to your smile. âSunghoon wasâŚweird, but I already knew that Jakeâs a pest, soâŚâ
He laughs at your words, head shaking slightly, âStill, Iâm sorry about them.â
âItâs fine, really.â You say with a shake of your head. A student exits the Spanish class down the hall, pausing at the sight of you and Riki before walking in the direction of the bathrooms.Â
Riki spares them little more than a brief glance over at the sound of the door shutting behind them before his gaze is back on you. God, why is he looking at me like that, you think just before he speaks again, âDo you bowl?â
The question catches you off guard, and you tilt your head and ask, âLike do I know how or do I do it often?â
âBoth.â
âKinda and no.â You answer, âWhy?â
He brings a hand up to rub the back of his head, your eyes darting to the way the sleeves of his t-shirt stretch to accommodate the movements of his arm and a few veins are visible up his arm, âSome of the guys and I were going this weekend, IâŚfigured Iâd ask.âÂ
His words are finished with a bit of hesitance that you have little time to linger on as you question with a slight laugh, âDid they ask you to bring me?âÂ
You see a slight pink tinge to the tips of his ears as his elbow drops yet his hand lingers on his trapezius, creating yet another visual that has you wanting to repeatedly slam your forehead into the wall beside you. He shakes his head slightly, âNo, I, uh, wanted to bring you.â
The words are said with a soft laugh like heâs a bit embarrassed with himself, and you find your teeth catching your bottom lip to hold in the despicable grin that you know should not be growing on your face right now. You just broke up with your long-term boyfriend, wake up.
If Rikiâs eyes dart to your lips, you donât see it as you glance to the door of your class. âThenâŚyeah. Iâll come.âÂ
Your answer has his lips forming a pretty grin that he quickly covers up with a bite of his bottom lip and a nod, taking a step back as he prepares to leave, âCool. I can pick you up, yeah?â
Yeah, you can. You nod, âJust text me.â
âYeah, Iâll text you.â He finishes with another nod, and you giggle softly at his repetition. His eyes soften at the sound, another thing you donât notice as you see the student returning from the bathrooms, glancing your way every so often as they approach the closed Spanish class door.Â
Riki sees them too, and as they look over again, he leans down to press his lips to your cheek in a quick but sweet kiss, âSee you next period.â
He shoots you a swift wink as he backs up again, and you put it together that he kissed you because of the third party in the hall. You exhale a soft response as he turns to jog off, clearly not meant to be gone from class as long as he has been, âYeah.â
As soon as he turns the corner and youâre alone in the hall, you close your eyes for a long blink to bring yourself back to Earth. A soft curse leaves your lips as you turn back to the door to re-enter the Latin class, heart racing and hands slightly clammy.Â
Clammy.Â
The fact that a boy is making you feel so damn juvenile with the way you canât help but react to his words and face and voice and eyesâ
The walk to 5th period fills you with a sense of dread before you remember who else is in that class. Mrs. Wilson greets you happily as she sets up the activity for the day on the projector, which alerts you to the fact someone is standing by your seat who doesnât belong there.
Riki has a look of confusion on his face as he looks up at Nayeon, clearly a bit confused by whatever is leaving her lips. The teacherâs greeting alerts the both of them to your presence in the doorway, where you paused at the sight of her. The corners of Rikiâs lips quirk up at the sight of you, but Nayeon looks like sheâs about to puke.
You donât even speak. Something about the sight of pure panic in her eyes gives you a boost of serotonin but the fact that sheâs standing in front of your âboyfriend's desk, speaking to him. Oh, youâre pissed.Â
Yes, you are aware he isnât actually your boyfriend and the two of you hadnât even discussed publicly referring to each other as such, but the principle still stands. You want to punch her face.
Unfortunately, Mrs Wilson would be quite upset if you slammed Nayeonâs head into the whiteboard, and you like your teacher too much to debate starting a fight in her class.Â
Your eyes follow Nayeonâs every move as she hastily removes her hands from where they were on his desk, avoiding your burning stare as she moves to her own seat.Â
Walking to your desk, you smile at Riki as if what just happened has zero effect on you despite the burning fury in your gut, and sit down beside him. âHey.â
Your soft greeting has him saying it in kind, shifting in his seat to lean back and see you better, âYou know her?â
His question has you tilting your head in a faux innocence, âMhm. Why?â
Riki has a slight knowing look on his face as he watches your reactions, âShe had a lot to say about you.â
âWhat did she say?â You ask as if itâs a simple question, like you arenât dying to know and anxiety isnât clawing at your chest making it harder and harder to make your hands not shake.Â
He shrugs with a purse of his lips, a slightly cheeky smile forms on his face as he asks, âYou jealous?â
A scoff leaves your lips and your eyes roll before you can even think to hold the sass back, âJealousy implies sheâs better than me in some way.â You say with a defiant cross of your arms, âand she is not.â
âThen whyâd you glare so hard?â He asks, clearly amused by both your words and body language.
You think, why did I not tell him about Nayeon?
The answer? Eunseok and Nayeonâs little affair had more of an effect on you than you would like to admit. Anxiety claws at you everytime you even imagine Nayeon interacting with Riki, and the fact that you just walked in on her saying something to him that your pride wonât allow you to ask him about just makes it all so much worse for you.Â
The truth is that the irrational part of your brain, the one that often wins the battles against its more logical other half, made the thought of Riki knowing you were betrayed by your best friend all the more sickening to imagine. Itâs embarrassing. Humiliating.Â
âI wasnât glaring.â You argue, and Riki raises his brows as if to say âreally?â before he huffs softly in amusement and the bell rings.
âYeah, you were.â He says with a lingering curiosity in his gaze before he looks to the board as Mrs Wilson starts class. Your first instinct is to argue, to be stubborn like you always are, but the lingering anxiety in your chest makes you want to never speak again just to find some kind of peace.
The entire time you take notes you arenât truly absorbing any information, your brain is stuck on every possible thing that Nayeon could have said to him and how youâre gonna find out without directly asking either of them if possible.
You feel sick and heâs not even your real boyfriend.
Oh, fuck.
Between realizing you want Riki and remembering that you have to go to lunch with your father, you simply didnât have enough time to achieve as much mental preparation as youâd like before lunch. The Italian restaurant you find yourself sitting inside with a menu in your manicured hands is a relatively âfancyâ establishment, at least if the $35 fettuccini alfredo was anything to go by.
Your dad is the one paying, so you arenât all that mad about the prices considering the look in his eyes is enough to ruin your enjoyment of the basket of breadsticks between the two of you. If you thought it would make a dent in his bank account youâd order another plate of mozzarella sticks just to spend his money, but the satisfaction just wouldnât be there.Â
Punching his face might feel better.
âAm I gonna have to put you in anger management again?â His anger is hushed and composed, but the shift in his jaw and the patronizing look of disappointment on his face belied his composure. Always being hyper-aware of how people view him is one of the things you hate about your dad. His attitude takes a higher spot on the âWhy You Hate Your Dadâ pyramid, though.Â
âYou canât âput meâ anywhere.â You bite back as you dip the breadstick in your hand into the small bowl of marinara, âEunseok deserved it.â
âYou donât get to decide what people deserve.â He argues, still so patronizing.
The feeling of being talked down to is one you're all too familiar with when it comes to your father. The man canât accept his own faults, one of which being how shit of a father he was and is. You roll your eyes as you take a bite of your breadstick, half-drowning his words out with your own and the other half remembering every single thing coming from his lips to throw back in his face next time he cries about how you never reach out to him.Â
âEunseok is a smart and successful, young man. And you throw it all away forââ
Ah, you almost forgot how much more your father likes your ex than you. Offering him internships, a place at his firm when he graduates, none of which heâd ever even mentioned to you. You wouldnât ever work for or with your father, but the fact he had never spoken a word about any chances to help you gain experience like he did your ex was as infuriating as it was unsurprising.
âI didnât throw shit away.â You snap, âHe cheated on me, you keep skimming over that detail, father.â
âIâm not skimming over it, itâs irrelavent.â He exhales, trying to calm his slightly raised voice, âAnd you know I hate it when you call me that..â
âIrrelevant? Oh, Iâm sorry, should I have stayed with a boyfriend that sleeps with my best friend?â You scoff, sipping your Dr Pepper, âAnd if you wanted me to call you dad, you should've acted like one.â
âHey.â He warns, yet you only roll your eyes. âReaching out goes both waysââ
âI know you did not just say that to me.âÂ
ââand I am your father, so you speak to me with respect.â He finishes, voice raising slightly in frustration before he settles it back to a more composed volume.
âNo.â You shake your head, âThatâs not how shit works.â
âYes,â He bites back sternly, âIf you want me to keep funding your life youâllââ
Normally, you let your father say whatever it is he wants to say, tell him you really donât care what he thinks and then for about a month he doesnât text you. Then itâs âI want to improve our relationshipâ and âI feel like youâre drifting awayâ. Today was not a normal day, however.
âThen cut me off.â You say with a shrug, âYou canât hold that shit over my head like I ask for the money you send, which you only send because you know youâre a shit father and you feel guilty.â
He doesn't respond, his jaw shifting, so you continue.Â
âAnd considering the fact that you are a cheater yourself, why the fuck would I listen to a word you say when it comes to my own love life?â You ask, not really caring that you arenât exactly speaking quietly, âEunseok deserved a fire poker to the face, and I used it on his car instead. Which is what Mom should have done when she found you with the nanny.â
âQuiet down, youâre making a scene.â He hisses, and you tilt your head and look around as if you give a single fuck. âI already took care of Eunseokâs car, which will be taken out of your allowanceââ
Your eyes narrow at his words, âYou paid to repair his car?â
Your father doesnât skip a beat as he continues, ââYes, I did. And you donât get to throw the biggest mistake Iâve ever made back in my faceââ
âYes, I do.â
ââNo, you donât.âÂ
âYes, I do.â You argue back stubbornly, continuing before he can speak over you again, âAnd you paid for Eunseokâs car, the same boy who fucked one of my best friends for months while actively dating me and you donât see a single problem with that?â
âHis parents were discussing pressing chargesââ
âThatâs when you tell them to go fuck themselves.âÂ
He sighs at your words, clearly sick of your temper (which you inherited from him), âYou need to start handling your emotions better, youâre graduating this year.â
âI have literally witnessed you throw a chair in anger, get someone else to say that to me.âÂ
He seems ready to respond, when the waiter comes with the food, and you speak before he can, politely asking if you can get a to-go box for it instead. Your father doesnât seem to have the guts to speak as the waiter glances between you both unsurely before nodding, âOf course.â
He takes the dish back and the moment he is out of ear-shot, your father says, âWe arenât done talking.â
âI am.â You shrug, clearly not willing or planning on sitting here any longer than you have to.
The waiter is back out with your to-go container wrapped in a bag that has mint-chocolates inside as well as a complimentary box of breadsticks that youâll probably eat while crying your eyes out later. You ignore the stern orders from your father to sit back down, thanking the waiter with a polite smile and promptly walk out of the restaurant.Â
The tears of frustration start falling the moment youâre in the safety of your car, a soft curse leaving your lips as you put the bag of food in the passenger seat and pull out of the parking lot, turning âthis is me tryingâ by Taylor Swift all the up as you drive the highway back home. You ignore the texts from your father, as well as the calls.
Youâre at the red light before turning into your neighborhood when Rikiâs caller ID shows up on the screen of your console, and you debate even answering, but wipe your eyes and clear your throat as you press the green answer button, âHello?âÂ
Your voice is more stable than you expected it to be, and Riki responds in kind, âHey, I just got out of practiceâyou okay?â
âMâfine, whatâs up?â You say with an attempt at a sneaky sniffle, the thought of him knowing youâre crying is too humiliating. Part of you is disappointed he somehow could tell that something was up. The other part of you, the vulnerable and hurt teenage girl with daddy issues and a yearning to be listened to and understood, begs to just break down.Â
He doesnât seem to buy it, you hear the sound of keys jingling and then a car door opening and shutting, then heâs speaking again, âYou sure?â
The light turns green, and you finally turn into your neighborhood, âIâm fine.â Itâs almost a snap, one you instantly regret as you quickly say, âSorry, justââ
âItâs okay,â He assures, and you feel even more guilty, more tears threatening to fall as your bottom lip trembles again. Youâre pulling into your driveway as he continues, âWanna talk about it over lunch?â
âI just got lunch with my dad, actually,â You say with a soft, bitter laugh, voice wavering and a soft curse leaving your lips the moment it does, âFuck, sorry, this is just weird.â
He seems a bit panicked by the way your voice only turns more tearfilled as you apologize, âHey, donât worry about it, seriouslyââ Thereâs a sound like a knock on the other end, and you hear him whisper something like âgo awayâ before heâs continuing, ââsorry I teased you earlier today, I, uh, thought I made you mad so I was calling to make up for it.â
A soft sob leaves you as you laugh with it, âIâm not mad about that, but I did wanna talk about it,â You sniffle, âAbout Nayeon, I mean.â
âYou donât have to, I was just messing with you.â You can imagine him shaking his head slightly as he speaks, âShe didnât really say much, just asked if we were dating.â
âWhatâd you say?â You find yourself asking.
He hesitates before answering, âYeah.â
It sends a weird hot jolt to your stomach and your worried lips turn into a girlish smile that you quickly wipe off your face, âThatâs okay, yâknow. Iâm pretty sure my friends have been telling everyone youâre my boyfriend, so the whole âtaking it slowâ shit is out the window.â
He chuckles on the other end and it flips your stomach like a fucking pancake, âGreat, Iâm not that type anyway.â
(Thereâs a feral voice in the back of your conscience that screeches like itâs a beast gnawing at the walls of its enclosure.)
Your teeth catch your bottom lip and your eyes shut like youâre trying to come back to Earth and not hang up out of pure flustered reflex. You force out a response, âJust means we have to make it more believably genuine.â
âWhatâs your plan, pretty girl?âÂ
Oh, you want to bang your head into the steering wheel. âDo you mind coming over? I wanna discuss it in person but I just got home.â
You jaw slackens in shock at your own words, looking into the rear view and mouthing at yourself; Bitch, what the fuckâ
âYeah, sure. Whatâs the address?â His response is so natural and unperturbed the catastrophizing your brain has done in the last second slips away and you silently scream.
A second later you respond like normal, âIâll text it to you.â
âOkay, Iâm on my way, then.â
When the two of you hang up after a few more words, you realize what you have done and quickly turn off your car, grabbing the food and your purse and hastening into the open garage, struggling with the doorknob and pressing the garage door button before entering.Â
Your room isnât messy, per say, but your duvet is covered in cat fur, and you donât even know if Rikiâs allergic to them or not. âGus, can you move, please?â You ask your cat as you begin to pull the duvet off your bed but he remains unmoving on the end of your bed.
He blinks at you slowly, and you sigh.Â
After taking too much time carefully moving the duvet from under your cat and hurriedly tossing it into the laundry room while grabbing your spare to put on the bed instead, the doorbell rings.
With one(at least three) last look in the mirror to check your appearance, still in the outfit you changed into for lunch with your dad, you open the large iron front door.
âHi.â You greet softly with a slight smile, and Riki has one himself that almost looks shy.
He bites his bottom lip and says back, âHi.â
As you let him in, you look down at the door handle, waiting for him to step inside before shutting it behind him.
As his eyes move to assess his surroundings with slow steps, you catch up to him, grabbing his sleeve and pulling his hand from his pocket as you tug him along toward your room with unhurried steps. He lets you, though you hear the chuckle under his breath.
âThatâs Gus. I hope youâre not allergic to cats.â is the first thing that leaves your mouth as you pull him into your cleaned room(though youâll have to un-ass your closet later), and he gasped softly.
The voice that comes out next is higher in pitch and softer as he hesitantly approaches your loafing cat, who sniffs his fingers for a second or two before headbutting them. You witness Riki practically melt as he coos at the feline that happily receives his pets.
âWanna guess his full name?â You jest, and he hums, looking over at you curiously but not halting his petting of Gus. âGazpacho.â
Riki looks elated by the information, grinning so prettily you want to use the vintage lotus lamp on your nightstand to beat your head against, and he softly goes back to cooing, âHi, Gazpacho.â
A giggle laugh leaves your lips that you quickly cover with your mouth and a quick avert of your gaze, eyes landing on the whiteboard against your wall. The fucking whiteboard.
âOh, fuck.â leaves your lips before you can stop yourself but youâre already moving to grab the object of your doom, âDonât look, close your eyes.â
Your demands are met with pure boyish defiance, and his eyes follow your movement to your closet door, opening it just enough to toss the whiteboard inside and quickly shutting it. âYou saw nothing.â
He slowly pulls away from Gus with a growing suspicious smirk, âIâm scared to ask.â
âItâs just a whiteboard, nothing of consequence written on it, or anything.â You say with a purse of your lips.
âA whiteboard?â He questions with a tilt of his head.
You nod, moving away from your shut closet door and taking the opportunity to change the subject, âMy stepdadâs a physicist.â
âOoh, thatâs cool.â He says with a thumbs up, taking the moment to move his eyes around the room as he had been distracted by the cat, âThis is a nice house.â
âThank you,â You respond softly out of instinct, âMy momâs a big lawyer too, soâŚ.â
âAh, right, I think Jake mentioned that once.â He nods, sitting in the bean bag(youâll have to break the news to Eunchae later).
You hum, sitting on the edge of your bed beside Gus and petting him, âWhat do your parents do?â
He has a slightly shy grin on his face as he says, âThey own a pretty big dance studio.â
âThatâs super cool.â You compliment with a tilt of your head, âDo you dance?â
If you could audibly coo at the redness blooming on the tips of his ears as he nods slightly you would, but you settle with a giggle that has him squeezing his eyes shut in embarrassment, âI do, yeah.â
âI did ballroom for like, ten years.âÂ
Itâs as if youâve revealed a hidden treasure, and he asks, âDo you still know how?â
You immediately hold up a defiant hand, âI am not showing you, and itâs been years.â
He whines, hands moving to clasp pleadingly, âAww, câmon, Iâll take you to my familyâs studio and show you mine.â
This piques your interest and you ask before you can think about it, tone playfully flirty, âTaking me to meet your parentâs so soon?â
He chuckles softly, voice still so low, âLike I said, I donât like slow.â
It takes a few more minutes of pointless chatter(and many more flirty remarks that make you want to scream into your pillow) before you get to the core of your problems today; Nayeon.
âOkay, wait, soâshe and your exâŚwere together?â He reiterates to better understand, and you nod, and he then asks, âIn your house?â
âWhy do you think I took the fire-poker to his car?â You shrug, and he has a half-grin on his face.
âI thought that rumor was exaggerated.â He admits, giving you an appreciative once over like heâs impressed, âYouâve got a temper, huh?â
âIâve never overreacted in my life.â You say with a slight raise of your hands.
He nods with a slight smirk as if he absolutely believes you, ââCourse not.â
âAnyway, she had a major crush on you in freshman year, literally fantasized about your wedding and everything,â You blissfully expose, âAnd I already had my eyes on you so it all worked out.â
He nods with a hum and slight smirk, âI see, so Iâm sweet revenge.â
âThe sweetest.â You playfully flirt, and his eyes turn into shy crescents.
âSo, who were your other options?â He asks after a few seconds to let the pink on his cheeks fade, and you grin.
âJealous?â You mimic his tone from earlier in the day and he rolls his eyes.
âYeah, I am.â The admission falls naturally from his lips and your gut flips, âCurious, too.â
âJungkook didnât want me to choose you.â You respond with a tight smile.
His eyes widen, âCoach knows?â
âHeâs got an idea.â You respond with a slight shrug.
âDid he suggest anyone else?â
âJungwon,â You answer easily, snickering softly when he groans and throws his head back, âbut heâs a tight-ass, heâd never agree.â
Riki snorts, and with a shrug says, âYouâre pretty, I think heâd come around.â Your raised brow has him quickly changing the subject with a curious tilt of his head, âYou already had your eyes on me, though?â
His question is cheeky and paired with a matching grin that makes you roll your eyes and fight nervous giggles as you say, âI never said that.â
âReally? âCause I heard you say it.â He seems much too determined to not let you move on from the subject but your mother loves to compare you to a mule in regards to obstinance.
âI donât know what youâre talking about.â You shrug innocently.
He leans forward slightly in the beanbag, his elbows resting on his knees, and that grin of his only widens. âYouâre a terrible liar.â
âAnd youâre annoyingly persistent,â you counter, but thereâs no real bite behind your words. You stand up, moving toward your desk under the guise of rearranging things that donât need rearranging, mostly to avoid his knowing gaze.
Riki tilts his head, watching you with amusement. âYou know, if youâre trying to throw me off, itâs not working.â
You glance over your shoulder, trying not to crack under the weight of his attention. âThrow you off from what? Iâm just tidying.â
âRight. And Iâm just here for the cat.â
âGood. Gus loves the attention,â you quip, folding your arms over your chest as you turn back to him.
âBut Iâm not done yet,â he says with mock seriousness, shifting in the beanbag like heâs settling in for the long haul. âWhatâs so bad about admitting youâve been into me? I mean, look at me.â He gestures to himself in a way thatâs more playful than cocky, but you still roll your eyes so hard itâs a miracle they donât get stuck.
âWow, humble too,â you shoot back, but the warmth in your cheeks betrays you.
âHey, just stating facts. Canât help it if you have great taste.â He pauses, letting the silence stretch just enough to make you squirm. âBesides,â he adds, his voice dipping lower, âyouâre kind of making it obvious now.â
Your hands find your hips in defiance. âHow, exactly?â
âOh, I donât know,â he muses, standing up slowly, his movements deliberate as he closes the distance between you. âThe way you got all flustered when I asked if you still know how to dance. Or how you wonât look me in the eye right now.â
You refuse to back down, lifting your chin as you meet his gaze. âIâm not flustered. And Iâm looking at you right now, arenât I?â
He smirks, leaning just a little closer, his tone teasing. âSure you are. But youâre still not answering my question.â
You blink innocently up at him through your lashes and you swear you see his eyes dart below your nose. âWhat question?â
Riki lets out a soft laugh, a mix of exasperation and amusement, as he shakes his head. âYouâre impossible, you know that?â
âIâve been told.â You shrug, trying to look nonchalant, but the proximity is starting to get to you.
He watches you for a moment, his smirk turning into something softer, though no less mischievous. âAlright, fine. Iâll let it go. For now.â
âOh, how gracious of you.â Your sarcasm earns you a grin as he steps back and flops dramatically into the beanbag again, sprawling like he owns the place.
âGotta keep you on your toes, donât I?â
âMore like get on my nerves,â you mutter, though the twitch of your lips gives you away.
âSame thing.â He winks, and you hate how charming he looks doing it.
The smirk he gives you as he leans back has your stomach doing somersaults, but you refuse to let him see you sweat. Instead, you turn your attention to Gus, pretending to be more interested in your cat than in the boy currently making himself at home in your lifeâand your head.
As Riki lounges back in the beanbag, his eyes drift lazily around the room again, lingering on the neatly arranged desk and the wall beyond. âYouâve got a pretty organized vibe for someone who just tossed a whiteboard into a closet like it was a bomb.â
You freeze mid-pet, your hand hovering above Gusâs head. âYouâre still on about that?â
âI mean, itâs a whiteboard. What kind of secrets could it possibly hold?â His tone is teasing, but the glint in his eyes says heâs not letting it drop.
You debate lying, but the little smirk playing on his lips tells you he wonât believe you anyway. âNothing important. Just⌠research.â
âResearch.â He repeats with an arched brow, âLike, âsolving world hungerâ research or me research?â
You groan, dragging your hands down your face. âI hate you.â
âNow I really have to see it.â He starts to rise, and you spring to your feet, blocking his path to the closet.
âRiki, no.â
âRiki, yes.â He steps closer, towering over you slightly, his grin widening as you try to stand your ground.
âDonât make me sic Gus on you,â you warn, pointing toward the loafing cat.
âGus and I are best friends now. Heâd never betray me.â Riki gestures toward the cat, who yawns dramatically like heâs staying out of it.
âTraitor,â you mutter at Gus, which earns you a laugh from Riki.
âCâmon,â he cajoles, his voice dropping into that infuriatingly soft tone that makes your heart do weird flips. âWhatâs the worst that could happen if I see it?â
Your resolve wavers, but the idea of him actually reading the whiteboard is too mortifying, âIâll have to kill you.â
His grin only widens at your threat, his dark eyes glinting with amusement. âWow, straight to murder, huh? Didnât realize you were so passionate aboutâŚwhateverâs on that board.â
âYou have no idea,â you mutter, crossing your arms in an attempt to look intimidating. It doesnât work. Rikiâs grin turns smug, like he knows he has the upper hand.
âNow I really need to know.â He leans closer, and the proximity sends your heart into overdrive. You can practically feel the heat radiating from him as he tilts his head, his voice dipping into a teasing drawl. âWhat if itâs, like, a shrine to me or something?â
The gasp you let out is equal parts offense and panic. âYou think way too highly of yourself.â
âI donât know,â he teases, tapping his chin as though deep in thought. âIâve heard people do wild things when theyâve got a crush.â
âBold of you to assumeââ
âYouâre avoiding the question again.â He cuts you off, smirking as he steps back just enough to lean casually against the end of your bedframe, his arms crossed. âWhatâs on the whiteboard, really?â
You hesitate, the words sticking in your throat. Thereâs no way youâre admitting to the utterly ridiculous pros and cons list your friends talked you into. Not yet, anyway.
âItâs⌠study stuff,â you finally say, your tone lacking conviction. âSchool projects, maybe some physics equations. Boring things you wouldnât care about.â
âPhysics equations?â he repeats, clearly unconvinced. âYeah, because I look like the kind of guy whoâd buy that excuse.â
âHey, Iâm trying here,â you snap, which only makes him chuckle again.
âI can tell. Youâre terrible at it.â His grin softens slightly, the teasing replaced with something that feels a little too close to genuine. âRelax, Iâm just messing with you. You donât have to tell me.â
You blink at him, surprised by his sudden shift in tone but immediately suspicious of it. âReally?â
âSure.â He shrugs, though thereâs still a playful glint in his eyes. âBut now I have leverage. Youâll owe me later.â
âOwe you for what?â you demand, but the smug look on his face says you wonât get an answer you like.
âFor letting you off the hook, obviously.â He straightens and gives you a wink before heading back to the beanbag like he didnât just upend your entire equilibrium. âDonât worryâIâll think of something good.â
You stare at him, your jaw slightly agape, as he makes himself comfortable again. Gus hops onto his lap, clearly picking sides, and Rikiâs attention shifts back to your cat like nothing happened.
âYouâre infuriating,â you mutter, though you canât quite keep the fondness out of your voice.
He glances up, his smirk softening into a smile thatâs entirely too charming. âAnd you love it.â
You hate that you do.
The week passes by with a dreadful speed, and after four whole days of anxiety-induced stomach aches, migraines, and a few breakdowns in the dark privacy of your room at midnight, it is the weekend.Â
It is the weekend, and Belle, Hiyyih, and Eunchae bear witness to a minor crash-out.
âIâm gonna puke.â You mumble, sitting on the ottoman at the center of your walk-in closet with your face in your hands as the older two walk around you, going through your options for an outfit.
âKeep that shit in bitch,â Belle says without looking away from the clothes hanging in your closet, pointing a finger blindly at you in warning, âYou puke, I puke.â
Eunchae moves towards your hunched form from her spot on your bean bag(which she moved into your closet to sit on), snickering softly as she sits beside you and brings her hand to rub circles on your back. âThere, there.â
A part of you wants to snap at her that she isnât funny, but the act is weirdly comforting so you let her continue. Bahiyyih speaks from where she is in front of your shoe shelf, âWhy do you have so many shoes?â
âMy mom gets sent them monthly by some guy she was a lawyer for a while ago,â You exhale as you drop your hands into your lap, eyes still closed as you contemplate opening them ever again, âShe hates wearing pumps now so she gives them to me or regifts them.â
âWhat if you wear these?â Hiyyih holds up a pair of Louboutins, and you open your eyes to see before looking at her like sheâs crazy.
âNot only is it bowling and Iâm gonna have to change shoes anyway, but Iâm not wearing a So Kate for something that isnât even a date, Hiyyih.â
She pouts her bottom lip as she puts them down, and Belle pulls a top from the collection of them hanging in your closet and holds it up in question towards you. After a few seconds of staring at the article of clothing, debating if you remember looking cute in it or not, you nod and she tosses it into the âmaybeâ pile.Â
Two seconds later, youâre hunching over and blindly grabbing a pillow near you to scream into.
Eunchae pats your back again, her snickering turning into full-blown laughter. âFeel better now, drama queen?â
You lift your head just enough to glare at her over the pillow. âNo.â
âGood,â Belle says, tossing another shirt into the âdefinitely notâ pile without even showing it to you. âBecause if you puke or scream again, Iâm calling your mom and telling her youâre being insufferable. She might take those Louboutins back.â
âThatâs not funny,â you mumble into the pillow.
âItâs a little funny,â Hiyyih chimes in, holding up a sequined crop top like itâs the Holy Grail. âOkay, but seriously, what about this? It says âIâm fun,â but not, like, too fun.â
Eunchae tilts her head at it. âIt also says âI moonlight as a disco ball.ââ
You groan, sitting up straight and snatching the crop top out of Hiyyihâs hands. âWhy is this so hard? Itâs bowling! I should just wear sweatpants and call it a day.â
Belle spins around with the precision of a K-drama villain. âDonât you dare. Do you want to show up looking like his cousin who just rolled out of bed, or like the mysterious, unattainable enigma that you are?â
âUnattainable?â you ask with a hesitant furrow of you brows.
âYeah, unattainable, as in: unattainable by anyone else but him,â Belle clarifies, like itâs the most obvious thing in the world. âYouâre playing the long game, babe.â
âYou say that like this is some kind of psychological warfare,â you deadpan.
Belle shrugs. âIt kind of is.â
Eunchae raises a hand like sheâs in class. âBut what if heâs bad at bowling? Like, gutter ball after gutter ball bad? Do you let him win or destroy him?â
You pause, genuinely considering it. âDestroy him, obviously.â
âBold choice.â Hiyyih nods approvingly, tossing a pleated skirt into the maybe pile. âWhat if youâre bad, though?â
You gasp. âThatâs not even an option.â
Belle smirks. âSo confident for someone who hasnât touched a bowling ball since middle school.â
âYouâre supposed to be helping me, not roasting me!â You grab the nearest pillow and launch it at her. She dodges with ease, laughing as it smacks into the closet door behind her.
âRoasting you is my way of helping you,â Belle retorts, unfazed. âItâs called multitasking.â
Eunchae picks up the discarded pillow and hands it back to you, patting your head like youâre a distressed pet. âThere, there. At least youâll look cute while you embarrass yourself.â
âWhy are all of you like this?â You drop your head back into your hands, half tempted to cancel the whole thing.
âBecause we love you,â Belle sing-songs, pulling out a denim jacket that you forgot you even owned. âNow shut up and try this on. Weâre on a schedule, ho.â
You sigh, begrudgingly taking the jacket as the three of them continue their chaotic brainstorming session around you. Itâs not helpful in the slightest, but somehow, it makes you feel a little less like throwing up again.
By some miracleâor maybe just the collective force of Belleâs bullying, Eunchaeâs comfort, and Hiyyihâs endless suggestionsâyou finally land on an outfit. The moment you pull the halter top over your head, the three of them fall silent, which is either a very good sign or a very bad one.
âOkay, thatâs cute,â Belle finally declares, hands on her hips like she personally designed the top. âItâs giving effortless, but still hot enough to make him sweat.â
âItâs super cute on you,â Hiyyih chimes in, tilting her head as she appraises the outfit.
âIt is,â Eunchae adds, grinning as she slides off the bean bag to circle you.
The cropped halter top clings just right, the rich color complementing your skin tone and making you feelâŚhot. Paired with the baggy jeans that sit low on your hips, the whole look is casual, but not too casual. You glance at the mirror, adjusting the jeans slightly and eyeing the way they pool at the hems over your socked feet.
âAm I pulling this off?â you ask hesitantly, smoothing the fabric of the top.
Belle snorts. âIf heâs not staring, Iâll be personally offended on your behalf.â
Eunchae pretends to swoon dramatically, throwing herself back onto the bean bag. âThe mysterious unattainable enigma strikes again.â
âOkay, but shoes,â Hiyyih cuts in, crouching by the pile of options at your feet. âYouâre wearing sneakers, obviously, but which ones? The Nikes or the New Balances?â
You glance down, debating for a moment before pointing to the Nikes. âTheyâre cleaner.â
Belle raises an eyebrow. âBarely. When was the last time you cleaned your shoes?â
You glare at her, picking up a sneaker and threatening to launch it her way. She holds up her hands in mock surrender, moving to pull a jacket from the rack as she says, âMake sure you bring a jacket, though. Itâs cold as shit.â
âOr she can not bring one and Riki can lend her his.â Eunchae suggests with a cheeky grin.
Belle promptly tosses the jacket into the back of your closet.
You roll your eyes but canât help the small smile tugging at your lips. The nerves are still there, bubbling under the surface, but with your friends aroundâand an outfit that actually makes you feel cuteâyou start to think that maybe, just maybe, tonight wonât be a complete disaster.
riki đ: im here
âWeâre seeing you off,â Belle declares, handing you the Prada bag she just stuffed your lip combo into. Hiyyih trails behind her, spritzing your neck and wrists with your favorite perfume.
The dread must be plastered all over your face because Eunchae immediately starts snickering from where sheâs leaning against the doorframe. âWe just wanna see his reaction.â
âTo me or to you guys making kissy faces at him from the porch?â you deadpan.
The chorus of giggles that erupts from your three friends is all the answer you need.
âOh, come on,â Belle says, looping her arm through yours as she drags you toward the front door. âWeâll behave.â
âYou behaving is a scientific impossibility,â you mutter, trying to resist, but sheâs got the strength of someone fully committed to the bit.
âHold on,â Eunchae pulls something out of her hoodie pocket she mustâve forgotten was there until just now, uncapping the small bottle and holding it in front of your lips, âOpen.â
You obey with a slight furrow of your brows, and she sprays it into your mouth, giggling when you flinch slightly in surprise and grimace at the strong mint taste. Eunchae grins, unzipping the bag on your shoulder just enough to slip it in before closing it, âTo prevent food breath.â
The moment Belle opens the front door, your breath catches at the sight of Riki leaning casually against the passenger side of his Wrangler, hands tucked into his pockets. The golden light of the setting sun highlights the faint smirk on his face, his jewelry glinting as he shifts.
"Lord have mercy," you mutter under your breath.
You didn't expect him to show up in sweatpants and a hoodie, but you weren't prepared for this either. The necklaces layering his collarbones and the glint of piercings--does he have an eyebrow piercing?âare almost too much. You quickly shove down the spiral threatening to start and glance back at the three traitorous girls behind you.
Their kissy faces drop immediately, though Eunchae barely suppresses her laughter.Â
With a playful shove to Hiyyihâwho stumbles into the porch pillar but resumes her antics without missing a beatâyou flip them all a perfectly manicured middle finger and step off the porch.
As you walk toward him, you swear the faintest blush tinges his ears. He waves briefly at your friends before straightening and meeting your gaze.
"You look good," he says, voice low and easy.
"I know." Your response is swift and confident, though the smile on your face is warmer than intended.
The moment is interrupted when the backseat window of his car rolls down, and Jake's grinning face is revealed. Your smile drops.
"Why is Jake in your car?" you deadpan, your smile dropping.
Riki groans, dragging a hand over his face. "Dude, I told you not to be weird."
Jake looks offended. "I didn't even say anything!"
"Seeing your face is enough," you reply flatly. Jake pouts dramatically while you shoot Riki an accusatory glare. "You could've warned me."
"If I did, you would've come out frowning," Riki whines playfully. "You have such a pretty smile."
From the backseat, Jake's obnoxious "ooooh" echoes, accompanied by giggles that make Riki's blush spread down his neck. Still, he keeps his composure enough to open the passenger door for you.
"What a gentleman~," Belle teases loudly from the porch.
Eunchae waves at you, practically bouncing with glee. You shoot Belle a glare, mouthing "kill yourself" as you accept Riki's hand and climb into his lifted car.
"Bye, Manchae," you call, snapping your attention away from him as he closes the door. You're too aware of his cologne and the lingering warmth of his hand. He looks way too good.
Riki salutes your friends playfully before circling to his door. Through Jake's open window, you hear Hiyyih shout, "She likes Dr Pepper!â
"And winning!" Eunchae adds.
"And tongue," Belle finishes just before the window rolls up.
You cringe. Riki's amused laugh is confirmation he definitely heard that. "I hate her so much," you mutter, pulling the sun visor down to touch up your lip gloss to dostract yourself.
You're halfway through the motion when you notice Riki hasn't started driving yet. Turning, you catch him just as heâs looking back at the road, his hand on the gear shift. (Thereâs something attractive about the fact he drives stick.)
Jake's giggle breaks the silence. "Oh, shut up, Jake," you snap, not necessarily to defend Rikiâthough it only makes Jake laugh harder. âWhy couldn't your other friends bring him?" you grumble, swiping the gloss over your bottom lip.
"He's my neighbor," Jake says cheekily.
"I would've made him walk," you reply, clicking the gloss shut and shoving it back into your bag. "Or Uber."
"That's just cruel," Jake protests, but you shrug.
"Sucks."
Riki snickers and nods. "Okay, he'll Uber next time."
Jake looks appalled. "Bro."
"You're annoying me too," Riki replies, barely glancing back as he rests his hand lazily on the gear shift.
You pointedly ignore the way his rolled-up sleeves expose a line of muscle up his forearm, a vein standing out as he moves to grab his phone charger. "Play your music," he says, holding the cord out to you.
Jake gapes. "Bro, you never let us play our music."
"That's because you guys have shit taste," Riki says without hesitation.
Your lips twitch, a sliver of pride blooming in your chest.
You connect your phone, Sabrina Carpenter's Taste filtering through the speakers. Jake perks up. "Oh, I actually like this song."
"You better," you reply, humming along as the music plays.
Riki bobs his head lightly to the beat, his usual laid-back energy soothing you as the drive continues.
"Who else is bowling with us?" you ask, turning the music down slightly.
"Jay, his girlfriend, and Heeseung," Riki answers casually.
You hum in understanding and turn the volume back up, inhaling the soft musk of his cologne mingling with your perfume. The scent is annoyingly pleasant, calming in its own way.
By the time he pulls into the parking lot and finds a good spot, the sky has dimmed to a deep navy. Riki is out of his seat in a flash, jogging around to open your door before Jake even unbuckles himself. His hand lingers on yours as he helps you down, his fingers interlocking with yours naturally.
Jake trails behind you two as Riki leads you toward the neon-lit entrance, the muffled sounds of bowling balls and laughter drifting through the glass doors.Â
Jay, a pretty girl you are pretty sure was in your art class in freshman year, and Heeseung are standing near the entrance, and you wish you could hide behind Riki from their gazes that immediately find your intertwined hands.
You send a smile to the only other girl reflexively, and she sends the prettiest one back. She grins excitedly as the three of them meet your trio halfway once you enter the door that Riki holds open for you to enter first.Â
(You wonder if these are manners his sisters and mother taught him or a previous girlfriendâwait, no you donât.)
âI told you it was her!â She smacks Jayâs arm, and he winces with a soft laugh, clearly used to his girlfriendâs antics. Her approach is welcomed as she explains, âHe was saying Riki was lying.âÂ
âAbout?â You question curiously, an easy smile on your glossy lips.
She giggles as she answers, âYou being his girlfriend.â
âOkay, thatâs enough.â Riki says lowly, clearly embarrassed by the subject as you snicker at his misfortune.
âIâm Gaeul, by the way.â The girl states with a giggle as she pulls you from Riki with her elbow hooked with yours, and you barely glance back at your âboyfriendâ, whoâs being patted on the shoulder by Jay. âTheyâll handle paying for everything, letâs get some snacks.â
âOh, okay.â You say softly before smiling with her, delighted that she brought up food before you had to ask Riki about it. You arenât ashamed of eating, or shy about doing so in front of him, but having another girl who also seems to prioritize food was immensely comforting to the anxiety in your gut.Â
She grins as the two of you step into line at the concession counter, âIâm also glad I got you away from the boys for a second, theyâre soâŚâ
âBoyish?â You finish, and she laughs softly.
âYeah.â
âGirl to girl,â You start, moving up in line with her, âI donât think Iâm gonna be good at bowling.âÂ
She gasps joyfully, âI suck!â
You laugh at her clear excitement that sheâs finally not alone in that aspect, âBut that means the boys are better than us.â
She rolls her eyes at the mention of them, âRiki and Heeseung are the really good bowlers,â Thereâs one more person between you two and the counter now, âI love my boyfriend, but he and Jake suck compared to those two.â
âI donât want to lose to Jake.â You sigh, âIt just doesn't seem ethical.â
âRikiâll handle him.â She snickers softly, âYou should've seen him at practice when Jake and Hoon messed with you.â
Your interest is piqued, but the person in front of you finishes paying for their food and you are forced to put your questions aside as she begins ordering and you realize you donât even know what you want.Â
Youâre skimming over the menu above when your phone dings in your purse.
riki đ: what size shoe do u wear?
Quickly typing an answer, you glance between your phone and the menu, and Gaeul turns to you, waiting for you to add to the already sizable order with how much the four athletes can eat. âOh, I can pay for myselfââ
âRiki already venmoed me enough to spot you,â She interjects with a soft giggle, and you feel your cheeks burn.
âOh,â You let out before shaking your head and looking at the waiting cashier, âA large drink and a basket of cheese fries, please.â
Gaeul hands you the stack of cups sheâs handed, and you startle slightly when a hand and arm appear in your vision, plucking the cups from your hand. When you look over your shoulder you find a smirking Riki, âI got this. Go sit.âÂ
You huff softly, fighting your smile that threatens to grow even wider, âI can fill up my own drink.â
âI know, but I wanna do it.â He states with a nod like itâs the most natural thing in the world, and you canât do much more than glare weakly. He only chuckles softly as Gaeul finishes paying and realizes heâs with you, âGo. Dr Pepper, right?.â
You look away from his cheeky smirk with a shift of your jaw, and you lose the fight against the grin now on your face, âI hate you.â
He only huffs softly in amusement as you walk away with your arms crossed, making your way to where you spot Heeseungâs orange hair. Thereâs a pair of green bowling shoes beside another bigger pair that are red placed on the bench seating, and Jake has a grin on his face the moment you sit down to put them on.
âI am not above hitting you in the head with a bowling ball, Jake.â You say as you pull the white sneakers off your feet to put on the bowling shoes, not even soaring the Australian boy a glance as his mouth shuts, clearly rethinking speaking.
Heeseung snorts, âShit, you are violent.â
You look up from your bowling shoes at the Lacrosse captain, whoâs grin drops and he quickly looks away, acting like he wasnât just laughing. Jay shakes his head with a laugh, âThank you, for shutting them up.â
You give him a smile with a scrunch of your nose, âMy pleasure.â
The moment Riki and Gaeul return, youâve barely gotten your shoes tied. Youâre still shooting looks at Jake, whoâs pretending to look anywhere but at you while Jay wheezes softly into his hand. Riki raises a brow, setting a tray of drinks and snacks on the table. âWhat happened now?â
âShe threatened Jakeâs life with a bowling ball,â Heeseung informs him with amusement still clear on his face.
Riki pauses mid-sip of his drink, glancing at you with a mixture of amusement and disbelief. âAlready? We havenât even started the game yet.â
You shrug innocently, tugging the laces on your bowling shoes tighter. âHe looked like he deserved it.â
âI didnât even say anything!â Jake argues with a whine, and you roll your eyes.
âYou had that stupid look on your face.â
âNot defending him, but thatâs just what Jake looks like.â Jay interjects with a finger raised to make a point, and Gaeul smacks his hand lightly with a disapproving shake of her head despite her snickering.
Riki sits beside you, handing you a large cup full of what you assume is Dr Pepper that you immediately taste to prove your theory, humming happily and smiling as you thank him. His smile mirrors yours as he begins to put on his own bowling shoes, and you grab your purse, which you had initially placed to your left, from between the two of you to place it elsewhere.
âHere,â He says softly, grabbing your purse from you to put on his other side with his jacket, which he had shed at some point between entering the building and sitting down, and you mutter a soft âoh, thank youâ that has his soft smirk widening just a bit before he focuses back on tying his shoes.
Youâre somewhat thankful that they seemed to have agreed on teams instead of each of you having your own scoreboard, though seeing every âxâ between your â5â points was embarrassing enough.Â
Gaeul seems wholly entertained by the gutter ball she just achieved as you cheer for her from your seat between Riki and Heeseung, too distracted by the fun of the game to see the goosebumps on your arms. Youâre leaning forward to pluck a fry from the basket of them on the table when you feel a warm something draped over your shoulders.Â
Riki is standing for his turn before you can even react, but across the table Gaeul turns to hide her face in Jayâs shoulder to poorly muffle the high pitched squeal she lets out. You ignore the heat rising up your neck, catching the fry between your teeth to slip your arms into the jacket sleeves.
Jay and Gaeul seem to be the only team playing purely for fun, because Jake and Heeseung are neck and neck with you and Riki on the scoreboard and your âboyfriendâ looks less than pleased about it.Â
Itâs near the last round when Jake scores a miraculous nine points that you mentally prepare to accept defeat, looking up at Riki who had just gotten back with your refilled cup, âHorrible news.â
He raises his brows, looking at the scoreboard and cursing under his breath. Itâs your final turn, and while you hadnât completely embarrassed yourself with your subpar bowling skills you probably werenât good enough or lucky enough to score anything higher than six points. At the moment, HeeJake is in first place.
Gaeul is cheering you on with her back against Jayâs chest, and Riki leans down, resting a hand on the edge of the table beside you, his face just close enough to make your heart race. âNo pressure,â he says softly, smirking. âBut if you lose, weâre never hearing the end of it.â
You roll your eyes, trying to act unimpressed. âGreat pep talk. Truly inspiring.â
He snickers softly, straightening back up as you stand with dread clear on your pretty face. Heeseung pipes up, âGive her a good luck kiss, Romeo.â The glare you shoot the Lacrosse captain only makes him snicker with his hands held up in mock-surrender, âWas just a suggestion.â
The feigned smile you give him has your fake boyfriend plucking your drink from your hands (how did he knew you had an urge to throw it at Heeseungâs face, youâll never know), and his hands move to your shoulders to walk with you to edge of the lane to grab a pink 7lb bowling ball.
Rikiâs grip on your shoulders lingers, and he leans down slightly to murmur near your ear, âJustâaim in the middle.â
You glance at him over your shoulder with a withering look, choosing to ignore his proximity, âLike that isnât what Iâve been doing.â
âCould've fooled meâow! Okay, okay,â Heâs still laughing despite rubbing his chest where your punch landed, much too cheeky for your liking but his smile is tooâŚsomething for you to want to wipe it off his face, âYouâre better than Jake.â
You shoot him a skeptical look, but itâs hard to ignore the encouragement in his eyes. Taking a deep breath, you grip the heavy pink ball tightly, positioning it at your waist. Riki steps back, hands on his hips, his smirk still in place.
âAlright, show us what youâve got, baby.â
âOh, shut up.â You grumble softly, shooing him away to get his heart-fluttering grin out of your face, and as you pull his oversized sleeves up your arm to keep it from getting in the way you give yourself a mental pep talk.
Donât lose, bitch.
It doesnât help that your nails make putting your fingers in the three designated holes a struggle, and the moment the ball is released into the lane, veering left toward the gutter before God herself takes control and it curves back toward the center and slams into the center pin, you cover your face.
Strike!
Gaeul practically shrieks in excitement as the pins scatter, âYes, girl!â
You blink, lashes fluttering as you process the cheering as well as groans from Jake, and you gasp, âHoly shit!â
Rikiâs joyous laughter is infectious and warm, and you let out a soft shriek that fades into giggles as his arms wrap around your waist and he lifts you off your feet in a hug, âHell yeah, baby!âÂ
The moment your feet are back on the ground, Gaeul is before you with her hands up for high fives, practically bouncing in excitement for you. Itâs practically second nature to you as you match her energy, too high on your miraculous win to notice Rikiâs hands lingering on your waist.
Another thing you fail to notice in your moment of joy is a familiar couple just a few lanes over, one party too distracted by the ruckus to pay any attention to the game her boyfriend and his friends dragged her to join.
She watches you smile and laugh as Riki helps you out of your bowling shoes, and her eyes follow you as you walk toward the restrooms with the light blue Prada bag she had always wished you would give her. It isnât fair.
You sigh softly as you place your bag on the sink in front of you, unzipping it to grab your lip combo to touch up in the mirror before going back out. As you uncap your lipliner with a muffled click, you hear the bathroom door open but donât think much of it at the moment.
It isnât until you look into the mirror, leaning forward slightly to see your lips better, that you see who it is.
âCan I help you?â You ask her reflection with a tilt of your head, tone less confrontational than it should be, but youâre trying to keep your good mood and Nayeonâs face is threatening to ruin it.
She scoffs softly, yet keeps a safe distance, âDo you even like him?â
You look away from the mirror to really look at her, ignoring the satisfaction that her slight flinch brings you, âExcuse me?â
âYou moved on fast.â Nayeon states, and you scoff with a smile of both fury and amusement at her audacity, âIs it even real, or did you use daddyâs money to get him to date you?â
The tilt of your head should have been a sign for her to shut her mouth, but she continues when you donât respond like usual, âBut I guess moving from one guy to another is just like you.â
Sheâs just trying to rile you up, itâs obvious.Â
You shake your head with a soft and bitter laugh, looking back at the mirror to continue what you had intended to do, the lip pencil gliding over the edges of your lips and the pad of your ring finger blending the harsh edges.Â
Her jaw shifts in the reflection as you cap your lip-liner and exchange it for your lip gloss, and you send her a condescending smile, âYou done?â
âYou bitchââ Her words are cut off by another person entering the bathroom, and as you swipe the gloss over your lips, you pause when you see itâs Gaeul.
She glances at Nayeon, but her main focus is on you as she says, âReady to go?â
You hide your confusion at her question with a pretty smile, closing your gloss and stuffing it back into your bag before you walk to her, shoulder checking the audacious bitch on your way out, âYep.âÂ
Gaeulâs arm hooks at your elbow as you both exit the bathroom, and you sigh in relief at being out of that situation before you remember your prior confusion and she explains without you needing to ask, âYour ex is at our table antagonizing Riki, I figured if heâs here she would be too.âÂ
Your brows furrow and you quickly pick up the pace of your stride with fury souring your mood once again. When you turn the corner, your gaze zeroes in on Riki, whoâs leaning back in his seat seemingly unbothered by whatever it is that Eunseok is saying to him, and Nayeon hastens past you to join her boyfriendâs side.
Eunseokâs eyes land on you the moment his girlfriend puts herself on his arm, and they follow you as you approach Riki without even a glance his way until he speaks, âYou move on fast.â He snorts, soft and bitter, âDidnât expect you to open your legs so fast considering how long it took you to put out.â
You ignore him, though the anger in your gut is boiling hot as your gaze moves to Riki, who you find is already standing now, his jaw shifting yet no other sign in his body language that heâs as pissed as his narrowed eyes say he is. Jay, Heeseung, and Jake all watch, though from their body language you can tell theyâre not exactly about to stand by if your âboyfriendâ decides to throw a well-deserved punch.
His gaze moves to yours the moment your hand finds his, softening as your fingers intertwine with his and you mutter, âLetâs go.â
He nods wordlessly, his willingness only pissing Eunseok off more as he laughs mockingly, and you feel Rikiâs hand tighten around yours, âAlready got him trained, huh? He like how mean you are?âÂ
âI do, yeah.â Riki responds for you with a smug smirk, âSheâs got a hell of a bite.â
The second meaning to his words isnât lost on you, and you find the way Eunseok bristles at the comment amusing enough to not get mad at Riki for it later considering the two of you obviously hadn't done more than hold hands. (You hear Jake choke on his drink, too.)
âBro, itâs your turn!â Calls a familiar male across the bowling alley, Sohee.Â
You take the moment of brief distraction to shoot a pointed look at Jake, who gets up from his seat to play peacemaker with Heeseung.
Jay seems to motion for Riki to leave while theyâre distracted by the two, and you shoot Gaeul an apologetic glance that she receives with a shake of her head and a look that reads âdonât be sorryâ as Riki leads you out of the building.
The moment the frigid air hits you, you tug the sleeves of his jacket down your arms again and shiver slightly. âHeâs such a dick.â You sigh softly, âIâm sorry.â
Riki shakes his head as the two of you stop just a few paces outside the entrance, âDonât apologize.â His hands move to rub at your arms to help you warm up, and the sight of both of your breaths visible in the cold has you moving to take his jacket off to give to him, but his hands cover yours the moment they start pulling at the open zipper. âIâm okay.â
âRiki, itâs cold as shit.â
âAll the more reason for you to keep the jacket.â He argues back with a soft smirk, âReally, I practice in the cold every day.âÂ
âYouâre active, then. Not standing around,â You fuss, and he tilts his head slightly in acknowledgement before a cheeky smirk grows on his face.
ââYou worried about me, pretty girl?â
âOh, stop it.â You groan with a poorly concealed warm laugh, and he catches your hands as you weakly swat at his chest, pulling you closer. âRiki.â
Your soft mutter of his name has his eyes shutting and his head falling back with a soft groan escaping his lips, âYouâre so mean, baby.â
âIt isnât fair to you.â He doesnât seem pleased by your statement, shaking his head and leaning forward to press his forehead to yours.
âJust a kiss.â He pleas softly, his nose brushing yours and you inhale sharply, âJust one.â
His words flip your stomach inside out, and as you sigh his name again he leans in.
âOh shit!â The sudden exclamation has you and Riki both startling away from each other, Jake grinning like a maniac at the doors with Heeseung, Jay, and Gaeul behind him. âFuck, did I just ruin a moment?â
You groan, turning away from them to begin walking to Rikiâs Jeep, arms crossed to protect yourself from the cold and your mind in utter shambles becauseâ
What the fuck?
Jake gets a ride from Heeseung home according to Riki, who had unlocked his car for you to get in while he said goodbye to the others. A part of you regrets not saying goodbye to Gaeul, but the thought of spending another second under their gaze at that moment felt suffocating.
The silence in the car is loud. Not awkward loud, but loud enough that every glance out the window and every shift in your seat feels amplified. Rikiâs hands stay firmly on the wheel, his fingers drumming against the edge of the leather cover as he fiddles with the turn signal.
âSo,â he starts, his voice casual but slightly strained, âyouâve got a mean bowling game for someone who swore theyâd lose.â
You glance at him, catching the way the passing streetlights make his jawline look sharper. âThatâs because I hustle. Low expectations are a great strategy.â
He huffs a small laugh, his lips twitching into a smirk. âGuess Iâll keep that in mind for next time.â
You lean back against the seat, trying to ignore the fact that your heart still hasnât settled since that moment at the alleyâthe one where his face was too close, his breath too warm, and you almost forgot this whole thing was fake.
âSo⌠next time?â you tease, arching a brow. âHow much more mortifying teasing can you handle?â
âDepends,â he says, keeping his eyes on the road. âHow long does it take to make your ex think he lost the best thing that ever happened to him?â
Your laugh comes out before you can stop it. âItâll probably never happen, I just like to see him squirm.â The weight of his words sits in the air between you, heavier than it should be. You turn to look out the window, feigning interest in the row of darkened houses you pass by.Â
âYou know,â he says after a beat, his voice quieter now, âI donât think theyâre worth this much effort. Your ex and⌠her.â
You blink, surprised at his shift in tone. âWell, thanks for that motivational speech, Riki. Really helps my self-esteem.â
He shakes his head, glancing at you briefly. âThatâs not what I meant. I just mean⌠if they couldnât see how good they had it with you, thatâs on them. You donât need to prove anything.â
The sincerity in his voice catches you off guard. You open your mouth to reply, but the words donât come. Instead, you study him in the dim light, wonderingânot for the first timeâwhy he agreed to this in the first place.
âWhy are you doing this, Riki?â you ask softly, your voice barely above a whisper.
He hesitates, his fingers drumming lightly against the steering wheel. âI told you, I need you to help me pass Chem.â
You narrow your eyes, not convinced but also not ready to push. âYou havenât even asked for help past me giving you my old notes.â
He smirks again, but it doesnât quite reach his eyes this time. âTheyâre just that helpful. Donât overthink it.â
And maybe you donât, because overthinking means dissecting the way heâs looking at you now in the faint glow of the dashboard, like he knows something you donât.
The car slows to a stop in front of your house and you fiddle with the hem of your halter top, trying to figure out how to say whatâs been sitting heavy in your chest since the bowling alley. âRiki,â you start, your voice softer than usual.
He hums in acknowledgment, already looking at you.
You take a steadying breath. âI donât think⌠Iâm ready for a real relationship.â
That gets his attention. His hands shift in his lap, his expression unreadable. âOkay,â he says after a beat, his tone cautious. âWhereâs this coming from?â
You shift in your seat, suddenly finding the dashboard very interesting. âItâs just⌠youâve been really good to me this past week, and I feel like itâs not fair to you. I mean, youâve made it pretty clear how you feel, and I donât want to lead you on orââ
âHey.â His voice is calm, steady, and it makes you pause. âYouâre not leading me on. I knew what I was getting into.â
âYeah, butâŚâ You trail off, frustration bubbling up because the words in your head wonât come out the way you want them to. âItâs not just about you. Itâs about me, too. I donât think Iâm ready to deal with⌠all of this. Not after everything with him. Itâs too much.â
He doesnât say anything right away, which somehow makes it worse. The silence stretches, and youâre about to apologizeâagainâwhen he finally speaks.
âSo, what do you want to do?â
âI think we should stop,â you say, hating how small your voice sounds. âThe fake dating, I mean.â
He nods, almost imperceptibly. âIf thatâs what you want.â
âItâs notââ You stop yourself, biting your lip as your eyes burn. âI just⌠I donât want to hurt you. You deserve someone whoâs all in, and I canât be that right now.â
His lips twitch into a faint, almost sad smile. âYouâre thinking too much about me again.â
You frown, confused. âWhatâs that supposed to mean?â
He shrugs lightly, his eyes moving away from you briefly before they settle back on yours. âIt means youâre allowed to put yourself first, you know. Iâm a big boy; Iâll survive.â
âButââ
âNo buts.â He cuts you off gently, an easy smile still on his face. âIf this is what you need, weâll stop. No hard feelings.â
The simplicity of his response hits harder than you expected. Itâs so Rikiâquietly selfless, always willing to go along with what makes you happy.
You hate how much you suddenly want to reach across the console and kiss the life out of him. But you donât. Instead, you swallow the lump in your throat and force a smile.
âThanks, Riki.â
His smile doesnât quite reach his eyes. âAnytime.â
You watch him exit his car, circle around the front, and open your door for you while holding a chivalrous hand out just like before. A part of your heart aches with the knowledge heâs still doing this despite not technically having to, and you smile softly as you accept his help. His hand doesnât linger in yours as it did before, though.
The walk to your front door is silent, and he halts just before the step onto your porch, his hands in his pockets, you pause before approaching your door, turning to him. With the few inches that the porch gives you, meeting his gaze is easier. âTonight was really fun, ignoring the end of it,â
He chuckles softly, âGlad you had fun, pretty girl.âÂ
If he didnât mean to let the name slip he doesnât show any signs of panic or regret, only meeting your nearly-level gaze with warmth.
Thereâs a moment before you turn your body only slightly towards the front door, âGoodnight.â
His hand catches your elbow gently as you begin to turn away from him, pulling you back yet giving you time to pull away if you so desire, and you donât.
His lips meet yours in a kiss thatâs softer than you imagined itâd be. His hand moves to your cheek yet pauses just before his skin touches yours, lips sweet and slow against yours.Â
Itâs over before you can kiss back like you want to, his lips parting from yours with a soft smack that makes your stomach flip.Â
âGoodnight.â He bids in a low mumble, barely an inch from your lips when the words leave his and he takes a step back with a soft smile that makes your heart twist painfully, âSee you Monday.â
You can only nod, forcing a slight smile and turning to punch in the door code with shaky hands and a heavy, aching heart.
part two. COMING SOON!
Šheedeungism : do not rewrite, copy, repost, or translate any of my works without my permission.
#enhypen#nishimura riki#nishimura riki x reader#niki x reader#ni ki#ni ki enhypen#ni-ki x y/n#highschool au#fake dating#ni-ki enhypen#ni-ki drabbles#enhypen x reader#enhypen fanfiction#longform fanfic#enhypen x y/n#riki đŠˇ#enhypen fluff#enhypen fic#riki nishimura x reader#riki nishimura x y/n
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
BECOMING MRS. SIM
Title: Becoming Mrs. Sim
Pairing: Boss!jake x F!secretaryreader
Genre: Romance, drama, contract-to-real marriage
Summary: To ensure his position in the company, Jake proposed to you in front of his dad. What started of as a fake marriage, slowly turns into real romance with a bit of drama.
Contents warning: Cursing, mention of 'kys', implied sh, may or may not make you puke due to the fluff, suggestive, mention of third party, a tiny bit of angst (like as big as one virus)
Word Count: 16k
A/n: Ngl, this is the first time I wrote so much for a fanfic. Even I was surprised I managed to go passed 10k lmao. Anyway, I hope you enjoy reading it ^^
Taglist: @sumzysworld @dreamiestay @heeverseblog @originalladymilkshake @bookloversomuch @laurradoesloveu @niniissus
â
"We need to find you a wife."Â
There you go - a sentence that Jake has been waiting to hear from his dad.Â
Jake was born with a golden spoon in his mouth. Despite being wealthy, he chose to live just like the others. He would prefer to do a lot of things by himself. He finds satisfaction in it.Â
Sim family is known to have one of the largest businesses in Asia and the examples for others. So, when Jake has finally reached 'the age', it's natural to expect him to become the next successor.Â
Jake has an older brother. However, he chose to venture into different field, leaving Jake as his dad's only hope to take over the company.Â
But, in order for his dad to grant the status to Jake, he has to get married. It was his dad's main condition.
His dad had always been living with the principle of behind every successful man, there is his wife. According to his dad, being married motivates him to be better both personally and career-wise so that he can provide more for his wife and his children.Â
On the contrary, Jake believes in independency. No, it's not that he hates love or relationship. In fact, he was in a relationship back then. Unfortunately, things happened, and they drifted away from each other. Nobody really knows about it and Jake wished to keep it that way.Â
"Is it really necessary, dad," he asked his dad.Â
"Of course. Getting married and loving your wife with all your heart will help you in gaining people's trust better - rather than be single. You will appear more... capable and trustworthy."Â
"But-"Â
Just as Jake was about to say something, his dad cut him off by placing a file on the coffee table between both of them.Â
"This is Kim's eldest daughter. I heard that she graduated from fashion designing with good result. Personally, I think that she is a perfect woman to be your wife."Â
Jake looks at the file and at his dad with a raised brow.Â
"Really? A blind date?"Â
Mr. Sim just shrugs his shoulder. "Well, it's not like you will ever introduce anyone to me, right?"Â
Jake leans his back against the couch and let out a deep sigh. God, one thing he doesn't like is going on a blind date which is arranged by others without his consent.Â
He don't like it when people tell him to do stuff that he doesn't want to do. It makes him feel like he is being force to do things. Last thing he wants is to hurt an innocent woman.Â
As Jake is in deep thought, there's a knock coming from outside Mr. Sim's office.Â
"Come in," his dad said.Â
You turn the knob and enter the room with a tray of coffee cups in your hand. You bow your head slightly at both Jake and Mr. Sim before walking towards the table and place the cups on it.Â
"Is there anything else I can do for you, Mr. Sim?"Â
Jake's dad shakes his head at you. "That's all for now. Thank you, Ms. Y/LN."Â
You bow your head for the second time before walking away from both of them. But just as you were about to turn the knob, Jake calls out your name.Â
"Ms. Y/LN."Â
You turn your head to him.Â
"Yes?"Â
Jake flashes a small smile to you.Â
"Can you come here for a while, please?"Â
Your head tilts slightly but still turning your heels around and walk towards Jake.Â
"Yes, Mr. Sim. May I help you?"Â
A few seconds passed by before Jake looks up at you with a wider smile. He then turns to his dad.Â
"Dad, actually, I'm planning to marry Ms. Y/LN."Â
"WHAT?!"Â
Both you and his dad said in unison. As if on cue, both of you also look at each other with eyes widened.Â
"I-"Â
"Y/n..."Â
Jake cut you off by calling your name softly, making you turn to him with the same widened eyes.Â
"I'm sorry I had to propose to you this way when I already had plan to surprised you. I promise I'll make it up to you, okay."Â
You and Jake are not really strangers. Both of you went to the same high school back then and reunited when you first entered the company as Mr. Sim's - his dad's - secretary.Â
The difference is that both of you barely talk to each other. You only know each other's name, and that's it. So, when Jake suddenly confessed to his dad that he wants to marry you, it makes you dumbstruck.Â
"I never knew you and Jake are dating, Ms. Y/LN."Â
You turn your head to Mr. Sim and open your mouth to say something. But nothing seems to come out.Â
"I asked her to keep it private since it had only been a few months since we got together."Â
Jake told another lie. You turn to Jake to say something. But, before you can do anything, he reaches out to hold your hand and flashing a soft smile to you.Â
"But every time I'm with her, I felt nothing but love, warmth, and comfort. That's how I know she's the one for me."Â
God, if you didn't know any better, you would have said that he's telling the truth. Anyone would coo at how adorable Jake is despite he is telling a lie. That is how good all of this is.Â
To tell the truth, you have always found Jake attractive just like other girls. Although both of you have never talk to one another, you did observe him from time to time.Â
Just like any other schools, there will always be at least a heartthrob - and Jake happened to be one of it during high school along with his other two friends.Â
As much as you would like to mind your own business, you can't help your eyes to look at him from afar. Every time he's around his friends, he will always have that big happy smile that can melt any hearts around him.Â
You find it cute and adorable at the same time. But that was it. He was only your eye candy back in high school.Â
Yet, here you are, in his car as his out-of-nowhere fiancĂŠ.Â
After he - somehow - proposed to you in front of his dad, he asked for Mr. Sim's permission to bring you out for the day, saying that he wants to make it up to you.Â
Of course, being the loving understanding dad, he allowed it without knowing that it was all just a scam.Â
"Where are we going, Mr. Sim?" You asked.Â
"Somewhere other than the office." Jake gave a simple answer.Â
Just like that, both of you are back in the silence. You turn your head to look out the window as Jake continue to focus on his driving. As much you want to say something, you feel like it's best to give each other some space.Â
You don't know how long have passed by but the way the cityscape suddenly changed into beach view proved to you that Jake has brought you somewhere far. Probably an hour or two.Â
Jake slows down the speed as the car reaching to its destination. He pulled the hand brake and turn the gear into 'P'. He let out a deep sigh before unbuckling his seatbelt and open the door.Â
You watch as Jake exits the car and walk towards the sandy area. After a while, you decide to follow him. You open the door and walk towards the man, standing beside him.Â
You were about to speak when suddenly Jake cut you off.Â
"I'm sorry."Â
You just keep quiet, allowing Jake to continue his words.Â
"I'm sorry I pulled you into this mess. I dislike the idea of anyone forcing me to date, let alone get married."Â
"Then, why didn't you say so?"Â
Jake bites his lower lips. "I can't. I know I'm the only heir that my dad has left. If I didn't take over, God knows what will happen to the company."Â
You turn towards Jake. "Then, why me? Am I not being forced to get married with you?"Â
Jake's eyes soften at your words. You're right. He did force you to do something you don't want to when he himself hate when someone did that to him. Â
What a hypocrite.Â
"Y/n. I know we don't really know each other that much. But I need your help. Just this once. After I become the CEO, we will discuss the next step. Is that okay?"Â
You look into Jake's eyes. This is the first time in your whole life have you seen him looking so desperate. His demeanour used to be confident. It's almost as if he got everything under control.Â
But today, today is different. He looks like someone who is willing to do anything just so he could keep his title. Just the thought of it makes you scoff lightly.Â
"Okay, I will help you just this once. You owe me big time, Mr. Sim."Â
You held out your hand for Jake to shake.Â
"You won't be disappointed, Ms. Y/L/N."Â
Flashback:Â
Finally, lunch hour, students' favourite time of the day. As usual, Jake would spend his time with his best friends - Jay and Sunghoon.Â
"Should we go on a trip during summer?"Â Sunghoon asked.Â
"What about Jeju?"Â
"We've been there a lot of times, Jay," Jake said.Â
Jay poked his rice using the spoon as a pout formed on his face.Â
"But I like it there. The view is beautiful."Â
Jake and Sunghoon looked at each other before laughing together.Â
"You're so cute when you're sulking," the youngest among them teased.Â
As Jay and Sunghoon were having their normal banters, Jake's eyes fell upon a girl. A girl in her ponytail, eating her food with her friends around her. From time to time, she would engage with the conversation as well by joining them or simply laughed at her friend's joke.Â
Jake saw her for the first time when he was walking out the infirmary. He was not feeling well that day, so he decided to take a rest. Â
Coincidentally, she was walking towards the infirmary as well. She stopped on her track when she saw him.Â
"Are you okay," she asked.Â
Jake nodded his head at her. "I'm good."Â
She smiled softly at him. "That's a relief. Take a break when you need it. Don't push yourself too much. You deserve some break."Â
She walked away after conveying her message, leaving Jake at the hallway.Â
Ever since then, he would see her almost everywhere at school. Wherever he went to, she would be there as well. It was as if fate was trying to match them together.Â
"You're staring again," Jay said as he nudged Jake's shoulder.Â
"You should really just talk to her at this point."Â
Jake shook his head lightly. "No, I like it like this. It's better like this."Â
Sunghoon let out a sigh and Jay shrugged his shoulder before both of them continue eating their foods.Â
Jay, Sunghoon, and Jake had always been together ever since they were little. Yet, ever since Jake met her, it was as if a new side of Jake appeared right before their eyes. Surprisingly, it only appeared whenever the girl was around. Whenever you were around.Â
Jake claimed that it was him admiring someone. But to Jay and Sunghoon, it was definitely more than that.Â
âÂ
âI never knew this day would come.âÂ
You just smile at your dadâs words as you continue to eat your food with Jake beside you.Â
Two weeks after the so-called-proposal that Jake pulled in front of his dad, both of you decided to visit your parents to lay out the message. Well, technically you told Jake to meet your parents. If they approved of him, then youâre good to go.Â
âThank you, uncle and auntie, for allowing me inside this beautiful house of yours.âÂ
Your mom let out a soft laugh. âOur house is small compared to yours. It is our honour that you are willing to come to our house instead.âÂ
True to your momâs words, you were not born with golden spoon. Compared to Jakeâs family, yours are more of in the middle class. Your family didnât gain as much as Simâs family, but it's already more than enough.Â
âHow do you find the foods, Jake?âÂ
Jake looks up to your mom and flashes her a happy grin.
So cute, just like a kid, you thought to yourself.Â
âItâs so delicious. Itâs true what they said. No foods can ever be compared to a motherâs cooking.âÂ
Everyone including you laugh at his words. You missed being in this environment. So warm, so full of love and affections. No, you donât have bad blood with your family. You were just rarely home due to your work. Â
But now that youâre here, you arenât going to miss a chance to spend more time with your family as much as you can.Â
As the night came, your dad and Jake decided to spend their time together at the backyard of your house, giving you a chance to spend time with your mom.Â
Your dad sips on the coffee that he made earlier.Â
âWhy did you choose Y/n?âÂ
Jake turns his head to look at the elder man beside him. With a small smile on his face, Jake lifts his head to the sky.Â
âY/n is a nice woman. She cares for others a lot. She would do anything to make everyone around her happy. She will give her 100% towards something that matters to her.âÂ
Jake lets out a soft sigh, almost dreamily.Â
âBefore I know it, I want to be with her. I want to be there for her. I want to do things for her. I want to care for her. I want to protect her.âÂ
Jake swallows his saliva, trying to maintain his composure in front of his soon-to-be father-in-law.Â
âSo, you want to marry my daughter just because she is nice?âÂ
Your dadâs question makes Jake look at him, who is already looking at Jake. Jake smile to himself before shaking his head.Â
âNo, I did not ask for her hand simply because she is nice. I want to marry her because she makes me better as a human being. Everything seems smooth every time we are together. Before I know it, I canât imagine myself with anyone but her. She is the only woman I want to have a future with. No one else, but y/n.âÂ
Your dad considered his words carefully. He then put his hand on Jakeâs shoulder.Â
âY/n⌠she is our only child. She had always done things by herself. There are times where we would feel worried for her. Well, up until now, we still are. So, when she brought you back home, her mom and I felt better. At least we know that she wonât be alone forever.âÂ
Jake just smiles at your dadâs words. Oh, how would he feel if he knew our marriage is only for a while, he thought.Â
âThank you, Jake, for looking after our angel. She is everything to us. I hope you feel the same as well.âÂ
Jake just nods his head at your dadâs words before both of them drink the coffee from their own cup. Â
Making you as his everything; will Jake be able to do that?Â
Â
Flashback:Â
Jake had lost count on how many drinks he had tonight. As he tried to reach for another one, Jay hit his hand, making him groaned in pain.Â
âWhat the fuck is wrong with you, Jake? You looked like a mess.âÂ
Jake just scoffed at Jayâs words. He looked up at his friends and gritted his teeth.Â
âEasy for you to say. You didnât go through what I went through. It hurts. It fucking hurts.âÂ
Sunghoon sigh for the nth times for the night. Both him and Jay had been trying to understand Jake's situation. But the only thing Jake revealed was that he broke up with his girlfriend. That was it. He didnât say how nor why. No matter how many times they asked him, he kept his mouth shut.Â
âI really love her, guys. I donât think I can live without her.âÂ
Jay rubbed his forehead, trying to calm himself down from exploding to the drunken man. The words âheâs my friendâ keep on chanting in his head. He was about to open his mouth, but Sunghoon cut him off.Â
âDie then.âÂ
Jake looked up at his friendâs words. His eyes widened, surprised at the sudden reaction.Â
âThe fuck did you just say to me?!âÂ
Sunghoon shrugged his shoulder. âYou said you canât live without her. So, go on and die. Itâs easy.âÂ
Jakeâs eyes that were filled with tears turned into anger. He stood up from his seat and grabbed Sunghoonâs collar, making everyone including Jay surprised.Â
âYou think you are better than me?!âÂ
Sunghoon held Jakeâs hand with his before smirking at him.Â
âI am. Iâm not the drunk one here.âÂ
Jakeâs hand turned into a fist. God, he hated Sunghoon at this moment. He fucking hates the guy in front of him. He was about to punch Sunghoon, but Jay managed to stop it by pushing his fist away and broke off his grip from Sunghoonâs collar.Â
âEnough! Both of you, out!âÂ
They stared at each other angrily before walking out of the premise with Jay following behind. Â
Minutes have passed since they were sitting outside of a convenience store. Not long after, Jay walked out of the store with canned coffees and a water bottle in his hands. He gave one of the coffees to Sunghoon and the water bottle to Jake.Â
The three of them continued to stay in silence before Jake decided to break it first.Â
âSorry. I shouldnât lash out to you.âÂ
Sunghoon pursued his lips. âIâm sorry too. It was immature of me trying to stir you up.âÂ
Jay just looked at both of his friends with a smile. This is the friendship that the three always had. Countless of fights, countless of apologies. Itâs hard sometimes, but this friendship is important to them, and they knew they need each other.Â
âI just⌠I donât know if I can love other person the way I love her.âÂ
Jay reached out to pat his friendâs back.Â
âYou will bro. You will. Trust me.âÂ
Jake just nodded his head, too tired to even say anything at this point. All he knew was that he loved his now ex-girlfriend with all his heart. He gave her everything that he could give. Time, presents, everything.Â
Yet, it still ended this way. Four years of relationship, ended just like that. Jake really thought that she would be his forever. Well, he thought wrong. Maybe itâs time for him to focus on himself. He had been focusing on others for too long. He deserved his own peaceful time.Â
âAh, right. We heard that y/n got into your dadâs company as his secretary.âÂ
Sunghoonâs words interrupted Jake from his own thoughts. Jakeâs brows frowned at the sudden mention of your name.Â
âYeah, why?âÂ
Jay who was silent suddenly sat up straight on his chair and looked at Jake.Â
âReally?! Y/n is working with your dad? The y/n?âÂ
Jake nodded his head slowly.Â
âYeah. Itâs almost a month now if Iâm not mistaken.âÂ
Jay let out a relief sigh before patting Jakeâs shoulder.Â
âThatâs nice. You get to work with the one you admired before.âÂ
Right. You were the woman that he admired up until the end of high school. After both of you graduated, you and Jake parted ways, following your own dream. Itâs not like both of you had special connections anyway. The interactions that you had with him were not enough for both of you to be considered as a friend.Â
But now that Jay and Sunghoon mentioned about it, Jake was reminded of the first day you stepped into the company.Â
He would never admit in front of his friends that he actually got excited when he saw you walking into the office. It had been so long since he last saw you.Â
You looked more mature than when you were in high school. The outfit that you had on was professional, yet it made you look beautiful. As beautiful as Jake remembered.Â
You might slowly lose your teenage features, but you still managed to turn Jakeâs head effortlessly â just like when both of you were in high school.Â
âÂ
Three months after the proposal and a day after the wedding ceremony, you found yourself entering an unfamiliar house â Jakeâs house. It's official. You are now Mrs. Sim Y/n.Â
You look around the living room. You did not expect his house to look neat and cozy at the same time. With all the furniture being white in colour, it made the interior looks more spacious than it already is.Â
You never thought of him as a guy who would pay much attention to the interior. He looked like the type of guy that might hire any designer and let them do their magic. Â
"Having fun?"Â
You whip your head to the voice behind you. There he is, standing in all his glory, your - now - husband.Â
"You have good eyes."Â
Your compliment makes Jake's lips curl up into a smile. A smile that you used to see since high school.Â
"Thanks."Â
He walks towards you. Before you could do anything, his hand reaches for yours and he bring it up to his face, enough to look at the ring on your finger.Â
He looks at how it sparkles with a small smile before kissing it softly, a small gasp escapes your lips but not enough to reach Jake's ears.Â
âThank you for marrying me, y/n,â he said sincerely.Â
Your heart soften at his words. Unconsciously, you rub his hand that is holding yours since earlier.Â
âItâs nothing. Besides, it will only be for a while, right?âÂ
Jake just hums softly at your words. Of course, he didnât forget about it. Heck, he was the one who came up with all of these. Contract marriage â and it will last up until he got his title as the CEO.Â
"Just so you know y/n, although it is only for a while, I will still perform my duty as your husband until the end of it."Â
You look into Jake's eyes, trying to see if there is any hidden agenda. But all you can see is honesty and sincerity.Â
Jake is known as a man of his words. He is not someone who would turn away from his promise, let alone lying. Heck, he doesn't even know how to lie.Â
You've seen his attempts to lie during high school and it always ended with him stuttering and his cheeks slowly turning crimson. His lips jutted out into a cute pout, resembling a puppy sulking.Â
Everyone was telling you that âyou're so lucky to have him as your husbandâ, not knowing that this marriage has its own expiry date. Sooner or later, both of you will put this into an end. You know that.Â
And yet, you can't help but feel a little tug on your heart when Jake said the last few words.Â
Refused to let your emotion to get the best of you, you flash him a small smile.Â
"I will do my best as Mrs. Sim as well while it last."Â
Ever since then, Jake and you have done nothing but keep your words.Â
Every morning before going to work, you would prepare him breakfast and eat together with him. Then, both of you would go to the office together. When both of you are done with your job, he would wait for you in the car to go back home together.Â
After youâre done with your shower, you would prepare dinner while waiting for Jake to finish washing up. Then, both of you would sit together and have dinner while having a small talk in between.Â
During the weekends, Jake will ask you if you have any plans. Sometimes you would tell him that you want to go out, sometimes you just want to stay at home.Â
If you chose to go out, he would go with you, spending his time and money for you the entire day. Not gonna lie, you've made countless attempts to pay for yourself. But Jake will always be two steps ahead from you. Guess it's the perks of marrying the Sim Jaeyun.
If you decided to stay at home, he would be there as well. Sometimes he would help you cooking â or more like purposely disturbing you. When you are reading a book, he would join you with cup of teas in hand.Â
Before you know it, you and Jake have become closer and more comfortable with each other. What used to be only standing side-by-side turns into walking together while holding hands. During grocery shopping, he would stand behind you and push the trolley together with you in front of him while walking through aisle by aisle. When you are watching a movie in the living room, he would lay his head on your lap and ask for your attention â just like a puppy would.Â
Everyone with eyes is envious of your relationship. Both of you totally looks like a happy couple. Itâs as if the world belongs to both of you, and only to both of you.Â
Honestly, you would say the same thing to yourself as well. Jake had been nothing but a loving caring husband. He takes good care of you, always be there for you. Heâs really the man of his words.Â
However, there are times where he can be an annoying ass. Such as right now.Â
You are putting on your make up to go out with him and heâs just⌠there, staring at you since God knows when. It was something that he would do every single time youâre getting ready be it to go to the mall or to the office. As you are finishing your touch on your blush, you let out a soft sigh and turn your head to him.Â
âYes, is there anything I can help you with, Mr. Sim?âÂ
Jake just shakes his head lightly. His lips curl up into a small smirk.Â
âNothing. Just admiring my beautiful wife.âÂ
There he goes again, teasing you. These past few weeks, he had been calling you names and giving you compliments. And he would say it with affections. Every time he did that, your heart beat for him.Â
God, am I in love with this man?Â
You roll your eyes, trying to hide the fact that he made you shy. Thanks to your blush as well that he wonât notice that your cheeks turn red because of him.Â
âEnough with that, Jake. Letâs go. Weâll be late.âÂ
Jake bites his lower lips to avoid grinning too widely. Obviously, he knows how he makes you feel. You are not the only one who have been watching him since high school. He also did the same to you. Probably a tad bit more than you did â and you donât need to know that.Â
So, he would know how you look when youâre happy and upset. He knows the difference between your real and fake smile. He knows about it.Â
He might not say it out loud but ever since he told you he would do his part as your husband; he didnât think it will be this far. At first, he thought he would just provide for you and thatâs it.Â
But he was wrong. The more he spends his time with you, the more he knows the real you. The more he talks to you, the more he craves for your affection. He used to sleep on his side the first few days after marriage. Now, he canât imagine not having you in his arms at night. He might not even be able to sleep if you were not there for him to hug.Â
He knew it would be easy to get married to you. You wonât cause him troubles. You wonât stress him out. You know how to take care of yourself. You know how to do things on your own.
But he didnât expect that it would be this easy for him to be himself around you. He didnât know it would be easy for him to accept you into his new life. Most importantly, he didnât know that he could love again like how he used to.Â
Actually, scratch that. He loves you more than he used to love anyone in his life. That speaks volume. If Jay and Sunghoon are here, they would give him the âI told you soâ look.Â
I love y/n. I really love this woman with all my heart.Â
âY/n?âÂ
You and Jake were walking with your arm around his when suddenly a voice called out for you. You turn to your back, and your jaw dropped instantly at your sight. Without second thought, you let go of your husband and run towards the person.Â
âSunoo! What are you doing here?âÂ
You pulled Sunoo into a hug, and he reciprocates by wrapping his arms around your waist. Your husbandâs eyes widened at the sight.Â
Did she forget she has a husband?! Jake thought to himself.Â
You released Sunoo from the hug so that he can reply to you better.Â
âI was just walking around. Didnât expect you to be here as well.âÂ
You nod your head at him. After a few seconds, you turn to Jake and call him using your hand gesture.Â
Jake walks beside you. His eyes shooting hole into Sunooâs face as his jaw tighten.Â
âI know youâve met him before, but this is Jake, my husband.âÂ
You introduced the man to Sunoo and lands your head against your husbandâs shoulder, completely oblivious at how pissed Jake looked right now.Â
Unlike you, Sunoo as a man, can see how jealous the man in front of him is. I mean, which husband wonât be jealous when his wife hugs another guy right in front of his face. Smiling to himself, Sunoo politely held out his hand towards Jake.Â
âHey, we met at the wedding but Iâm Sunoo, y/nâs friend.âÂ
Jake didnât say anything but shakes Sunooâs hand, for the sake of you. He pulls his hand away almost instantly, making the other manâs lips curl into a small smirk.Â
âWell, Iâll leave you two lovebirds behind. Donât want to interrupt the date. See you when I see you, y/n.âÂ
Sunoo pats your arm and give Jake a courtesy nod before walking away, leaving you together with your husband.Â
You were about to say something when Jake beat you to it.Â
âIs it fun being friendly with another guy in front of your husbandâs face?âÂ
You blink your eyes at the sudden burst of jealousy from Jake. You study his face properly. His cheeks are red as a result of him trying to hold back his anger. His lips forming a pout, the same one that youâve witnessed since high school.Â
Jake looks so adorable right now that he makes you snort lightly.Â
âOh? Is my husband jealous?âÂ
Jake squints his eyes at you before turning his head away.Â
âAny husband would hate to see his wife being all over a guy other than him.âÂ
He is jealous, you thought to yourself. You were about to console him, but before you could say anything, Jake decided to walk ahead of you, purposely leaving you as a sign of protest.Â
His action makes you scoff. Despite his height being taller than you and not to mention his status higher than you, he still acts like a kid. You shake your head before chasing after him.Â
âWhere are you going~â you asked him teasingly.Â
âAway from you.âÂ
You let out a soft âoohâ before continuing to chase after him. When you are within the reach, you hold his hand, stopping him from his track. Although his body is facing you, his head is still facing the other side.Â
You bring his hand to your lips and leave a soft kiss against his knuckle. You can feel him stiffen at your sudden action, but he still refuses to face you. You let out a soft sigh before your lips curl up into a smile.Â
Itâs usually the husband you have to persuade his wife, but now, itâs the other way around â and you are not complaining about it.Â
âYou donât have to worry about it, Jake. Iâm not his type.âÂ
Your words manage to make Jake faces you. His brows that were frowning earlier become deeper as he heard your sentences.Â
âWhy? You are beautiful. You are nice. Anyone would want you. How can you not be his ideal type? Does he think that heâs better than y-âÂ
Jakeâs mouth was stopped by your finger against it. If only heâs not upset with you, he might as well kiss it. But his ego got the best of him, so he just stands there silently.Â
âItâs not like that. What I mean to say is⌠women are not his type.âÂ
Your husband nods his head when you explain-Â
âWait. So, Sunoo isâŚâÂ
He doesnât need to complete his sentence when youâre already nodding your head, knowing what he was about to ask. Unconsciously, Jake let out a loud sigh of relief. He thought that someone was about to sweep you off your feet. Â
Well, even if Sunoo did, he knows he will make sure to bring you back into his arms one way or another.Â
Jake looks at you who is now smiling innocently at him.Â
Fuck, how can she look so adorable.Â
Refused to back down, he clears his throat and pinch your nose lightly, making sure it wonât hurt you. You scrunch your nose at him. You were about to pinch his cheek as a revenge, but he managed to stop your hand.Â
He then leans his face close to yours.Â
âBut I still donât like how you left and hug him in front of me. Donât do that again, alright.âÂ
Your lips form a pout, but you nod obediently at his words. Of course, you should know that no matter how close you are with your guy friends, you must remember that you have a husband to take care of.Â
âOkay. Iâm sorry for leaving you and hug him like that.âÂ
Jakeâs lips curl up into a smile, hearing your apologies. He takes your hand that was in his earlier and kiss it lovingly. Your eyes turn to the other side, an attempt to hide away your shyness. Jake just chuckles lightly at your actions before planting another kiss on top of your head.Â
âShall we get going now?âÂ
âÂ
Two months later, you and Jake are attending the companyâs annual gala night. However, this gala night is special because it is also the night that Mr. Sim, your father-in-law, will pass down the responsibilities as CEO to his son.Â
Although you are excited for Jake, you canât seem to throw away the thoughts that your marriage will come to an end. Yes, both you and Jake are happy with each other. Happier than you had been in your life. But it still doesnât change the fact that he got married to you just so he could gain the title as his dadâs successor.Â
A tap on your shoulder wakes you up from your thoughts. You look to your side, just to see your husband tilting his head slightly.Â
âWhat is this? Are you thinking about other man than me?âÂ
He squints his eyes at you like how he would usually do. You hiss at him and hit his shoulder lightly.Â
âWhy should I think about other people, when my husband is with me?âÂ
You wrap your arm around his as your other hand rub against the spot that you hit earlier gently. Jake smiles softly at you before pecking your forehead softly, making sure not to ruin your make up and hairdo.Â
You and Jake continue to greet the guests. From time to time, you would join in their conversation but mostly you let Jake do the talking.Â
Suddenly, the hall light shuts down and a spotlight shine at the centre of the stage. There, stand Mr. Sim on the podium, getting ready to deliver his speech. Everyoneâs attention diverts to the man.Â
He clears his throat and run his eyes across the hall.Â
âGood evening to everyone. I would like to thank all of you for your time tonight. I believe we already know the purpose of tonight considering that we did this every year.âÂ
Everyone including you laugh at Mr. Simâs greetings.Â
âAs mentioned, we held the gala night annually without fail. Personally, itâs a way for me to appreciate everyoneâs effort in making this business grow bigger each year.âÂ
The hall is filled with claps.Â
âBut tonight is different than before. Unlike the previous gala night, we are not only here to have fun. It is also the night where I will make an important announcement that will change the company into a better one.âÂ
You look to your side, just to see that Jake is fidgeting and gulping nervously. You smile to yourself before leaning to his ear.Â
âYou will be fine, Jake. Iâm here with you.âÂ
Jake turns to look at you, who is already smiling at him. Just like that, he can feel his anxiousness slowly tone down. Itâs funny how before this Jake is so opposed to getting married just for the title.Â
Now, he understands why his dad said what he said to him before. True to his words, behind every successful man, thereâs his wife. Jake never thought that he will see the day where thereâs a woman behind him.Â
But with you supporting him directly, he believes that he can go through all the challenges and difficulties that he will face in the future. No matter how hard it is, heâs willing to go through it as long as you are with him. Â
Just like that, from this moment, Jake vow to himself that he will never, ever, let you go.Â
âLadies and gentlemen. Without further ado, I present to you, the Simâs new successor, Sim Jaeyun.âÂ
The sound of claps filled the hall once again for the night. A spotlight pointed to Jake. He looks around the hall with a proud smile and bow his head politely. Before he walks up the stage, he turns towards you and hold your hands. Without second thought, he brings your hands and place a long kiss against it, making everyone looks at both of you with awe.Â
You nudge your hand lightly against his lips, making him look up at your crimson red face.Â
âFaster go,â you mouthed at him. He grins widely at you and flash you a wink before letting go of your hands and walks up onto the stage.Â
You just watch the view in front of you with a proud smile. Your husband is hugging your father-in-law so tightly. He is so proud of his own son, just like how he is proud with Jakeâs older brother when he saw how successful he had become.Â
âCongratulations Mrs. Sim for your achievement.âÂ
A voice said beside you, making your head turn to the owner. Turns out the owner of the voice belongs to Sunghoon as he stands next to you.Â
âYou must be so proud of him.âÂ
Another voice said on your other side, and you know it belongs to Jay. You just shake your head lightly at both of their remarks.Â
âOf course Iâm proud of him. But I didnât do anything for you to congratulate me.âÂ
Jay looks at you for a short while before turning back to the stage. Both of his hands are in his pocket as he watches Jake giving his thank you speech.Â
âNo, you deserve the wish as well. In fact, we must thank you for everything that youâve done for Jake.âÂ
You frown slightly at Jayâs words. You donât quite understand what he meant by that. But, as you were about to ask, Sunghoon cut you off.Â
âYeah, heâs a better man now, because of you.âÂ
Despite your confusion, both of the menâs words still manage to soften your heart. Before you know it, tears escaped your cheeks. That was the nicest thing someone has ever tell you. You didnât know that you needed until tonight.Â
Being recognized by Jakeâs best friend just hit a certain spot in you. You made a mental note to ask about it later. But for now, you decide to focus on the manâs speech.Â
â⌠And to my wife, know that I will not be able to do this without you. You have been nothing but my strength and my support. You were there through ups and downs. I thank you so much. You are my woman and will always be my woman.âÂ
Everyone howls at Jakeâs words and the two men besides you whistle proudly. You just shake your head while letting out a chuckle and clap your hands. Jake is so silly. Your husband is so silly â and you will never ask for anything better than this.Â
After the end of the speech, you and Jake continue to talk to the guests with his arm circling around your waist the entire time. They all congratulate both of you for Jakeâs achievements in becoming the new CEO. It is safe to say that the night went smoothly.Â
But nothing in this world is perfect, right?Â
âCongratulations, Jake.âÂ
There, standing in front of you, a beautiful, mesmerizing woman in a gorgeous emerald green dress. She looks so breathtakingly beautiful to the point that your jaw drops slightly at her presence.Â
Unlike you, Jakeâs smile falls upon seeing her. He clenches his jaw and tighten his grips against your waist. He forgot that her parents were invited to the gala by his dad. So naturally, she would be here as well.Â
âThanks, Yunjin.âÂ
The womanâs smile widens at the way Jake called her name. Her eyes then shift to you, who is still lost in her beauty. Yunjin let out a chuckle.Â
âHi, my name is Yunjin, Jakeâs friend.âÂ
Bullshit, he thought.Â
You blink your eyes for a few seconds, trying to wake up from your own daze.Â
âAh, I see. Iâm y/n, Jakeâs wife. He never mentions that he has such a beautiful friend as you.âÂ
Yunjin looks at Jake for a few moments before letting out another chuckle. Her cheeks are now a bit red from your compliment.Â
Her laugh also sounds beautiful like her, you thought to yourself.Â
âPlease don't say that. You are more beautiful, y/n. Besides, itâs been so long since we last met each other as well,â she said before her eyes fall upon Jake once again for the night, just to see that Jake is already looking at her.Â
Your eyes turn to look at Jake and Yunjin back and forth. Jake is staring at her with an expression that you donât quite understand, while Yunjin is looking at him softly, exactly like a woman missing her partner.Â
Thatâs when it clicked in your head. Youâve heard that Jake had a girlfriend the first day you joined the company. If your guess is right, Yunjin is his ex-girlfriend. Saying that she is just a friend is a way of her being considerate of your feelings.Â
You donât know what happened, but deep inside, you know that there are some unfinished businesses. You felt it through the tension that is slowly building up between them. Not even the sharpest knife can cut through it.Â
Before you know it, your gaze drops to the floor. Clearly, you are upset with the situation. But who are you to say anything. They had their own past. It was all just an old story. It was his past.Â
Thatâs what you keep telling yourself.Â
âWell, I better get going. You guys must have a lot of things to do.âÂ
Yunjinâs words manage to pull you into reality.Â
âSee you around, y/n.âÂ
You try your best to smile sincerely, doing your best to show that none of these are affecting you.Â
âSee you around, Yunjin.âÂ
With the same previous smile on her face, she nods her head at you before once again turning to face Jake.Â
âJake.âÂ
She called out his name, but the only thing he did was nods his head towards her as his eyes turns somewhere else, refusing to meet her eyes.Â
Yunjin then walks away from you. You didnât know how long it had been but the sigh that you let out indicating that youâve been holding your breath for quite a while now. Your heart beats so loud as if itâs about to jump out of your body.Â
You swallow your saliva to calm yourself down before excusing yourself from your husband, saying that you need to go to the washroom.Â
Just like that, Jake is left alone in the middle of the hall. He frowns at the situation. Fuck, he said to himself. He should have handled it better.Â
Jake knows that you are upset. Going to the washroom was just a way for you to walk away from the previous commotion. As if meeting his ex-girlfriend is not the worse part of the night, his best friend came to him, probably to lecture him.Â
âWhat happened, Jake,â the older one asked.Â
Jake bites his lower lips.Â
âShe came and greet usâŚâÂ
âAnd?â Sunghoon encouraged Jake to continue his words.Â
âAnd I didnât know how to react to it. I thought that if I said something, I might⌠I mightâŚâÂ
I might lose control and y/n might hate me for it, Jake continued inside his mind.Â
Jay drapes his arm around Jakeâs shoulder, pulling him into a side hug in hopes it can at least comfort him after what just happened.Â
The guys know that itâs not easy for Jake to communicate with his ex, considering that they had a good time together just for it to end all of a sudden. But they canât also invalid your feelings.
As a wife, they knew you must have figured out that they had something going on back then. Itâs understandable that you would be upset over it even though it already ended long time ago.Â
âI donât know whatâs going on between you and Yunjin, but I want you to remember that you have y/n now. One thing I can see from her is that sheâs loyal and sincere. Sheâs a woman, your wife. Whatever you want to do, consider her feelings as well.âÂ
Jake nods his head at Sunghoonâs words. He inhales deeply and exhale, trying to calm himself down. He puffs out his cheeks as he collects his inner thoughts.Â
âDo you think I can be a good husband to y/n?âÂ
Jay and Sunghoon steal a glance to each other before their lips curl up into a smirk.Â
âItâs up to you, man. But I think you have always been waiting for her. Ever since high school, youâve wait for her. Now that sheâs in front of you, why not grab your chance?âÂ
Jake looks up at Jay as the older one encouraged him to move forward. Jay nods his head at Jake.Â
âAnd a little birdie told me that she is also waiting for you at the balcony just outside of the hall,â Sunghoon said as he pointed the place with his face to Jake.Â
Jake scoffs at himself. He canât believe he is down bad for you. The fact that his best friends had been his witnesses made him feel even more dumb than he already is. He then pulls both Jay and Sunghoon into a hug.Â
They hug the man back and their hug last for quite a while. It was at this moment that reminds Jake once again just how important Sunghoon and Jay are in his life. His ride or die. The one who would be there to give him facts, no matter how hurtful it is. The one who would give motivations for him whenever he needs it. And he would gladly do the same to them as well.Â
Jake let go of his friends. With a deep breath, he walks towards the balcony where you are leaning against railing.Â
Although your back is facing him, he canât deny the fact that you look glowing in your white dress. The way your head tilted slightly to the sky, allowing the moon to shine its light to you. You look better than his dreams.Â
With careful steps, he walks towards you.Â
âWhat are you thinking, princess?âÂ
You turn your head slightly at the voice, before facing forwards again.Â
âNothing important.âÂ
âThen, why do you look like a damsel in distress, my lady?âÂ
The closeness of his voice startled you. You didnât realize when it happened, but his arms are already on your side, trapping you against the balcony. Slowly, you turn your back towards him. Your eyes move from down and up to his face.Â
Youâve always thought Jake as a handsome man. But right now, he looks even better than before. His face is so close that you can see the length of his eyelashes. His nose that would occasionally bump into your head and cheeks as he leaves pecks here and there. His lips⌠the same lips that would kiss you everywhere but your lips.Â
The last time you felt it against yours was when you were pronounced as husband and wife. It was a short one, but you can still feel it tingling against yours. You would do anything just to feel that lips once again.Â
However, you know you canât. Not when he was about to divorce you right here, right now. Mustering your courage, you look into his eyes. Although your tears are threatening to escape, youâre trying your best to hold it in by burying your nails into your hand.Â
âJake, congratulations. Youâre finally where you want to be now. Youâve been working so hard to prove that youâre worth it. Now, you got it.âÂ
Jakeâs eyes soften at your words and his grip weakens. You sniff before continuing your words.Â
âThank you for being a husband for me. A real one at that. I didnât know anyone would do anything for me aside from my parents. There is not a single moment where I regret having you as my husband. Thank you for everything that you did for me. I will cherish all the memories until the end of my life.âÂ
As you finished your sentence, the tears that youâve been holding back finally roll down your cheeks. You have said everything that you want to say. Whatever happens after this, you will accept it with all your heart. When Jake decides to stop everything with you, you will have to be ready to let him go.
Jakeâs hands move up to cup your face. You close your eyes at what about to happen.Â
Do it. Iâll be fine. I can take it.Â
You can feel his thumbs brushes your tears away, but then you feel his lips against your forehead. You open your eyes and look up at him, just to see him looking at you with a loving smile. His tears run down his cheeks, mirroring yours. Jake takes a deep breath. He then looks at you again with the same smile.Â
âLetâs end this.âÂ
He said it. He finally said it. The words that you were waiting to hear from him. He said it. You thought that you could handle it, but your reaction proves you wrong.Â
You burst into crying in his hands. Every emotion that youâve been holding back are showing itself. You are not okay. You will never be okay. Call you selfish, but you want to be with him always and forever. You need Jake, even if he didnât need you.Â
Or so you thought.Â
âLetâs stop pretending, and love each other for real.âÂ
His words managed to make you look at him with your eyes widened. The expression of your face clearly shows Jake that it was not what you expected to hear tonight. You thought that he would divorce you. After he got the position as CEO, he would put this to an end. Thatâs how it should be.Â
You try to breath properly. Looking at how difficult it is for you to calm down, he moves one of his hands and rubs your back while his other hand caressing your cheeks softly. Jake inhale and exhale along with you, in hopes for you to follow his breathing pattern.Â
When youâve finally calm down, you blink your tears away from your eyes, trying to see Jake in a clear view.Â
âBut you told me that you would end this marriage after you get the title.âÂ
Jake looks at you for a few seconds before letting out a soft laugh. He didnât miss the pout that is forming on your face, making you look like a little girl crying for her lollipop. He shakes his head.Â
âI may have implied that, and Iâm so sorry.âÂ
Your eyes never leave Jake as you wait for him to continue his words.Â
âI thought that whatever we had between us will merely be another fleeting moment. But the more Iâm with you, the greedier I became. What started of as pretending, I want it to be real. All of the moments that I had with you was everything I could imagine. Hell, it was better than my imaginations. You made it so easy to be with you. To cherish you. To care for you. Before I knew it, I want you all to myself.âÂ
Jakeâs arm that was on your back quickly circles your waist, pulling you close to his body. Slowly, he leans to your face, just enough for his lips to brush against yours.Â
âYou are my lady. You are my woman. You are my wife. You are mine, and Iâm not letting you go, ever.âÂ
You gasp at his words. You canât think straight after what you just heard. Who knows a guy like Jake can also be this romantic towards someone. Even more towards you. You, who just happened to study in the same school and work in the same place as he is. There are thousands of women he could go for, and yet he chose to settle down with you. At this point, you can die happily. Â
âSo, what do you say, Mrs. Sim? Are you in for it, or you want to run away? But just so you know, I will chase you to the end of the world if you choose the latter.âÂ
Your eyes search for his, just to see that heâs already gazing at you with sincerity, passion, and a hint of something youâve never seen before. The guy that youâve been watching and only watching are in front of you with his arm clinging onto your waist protectively.Â
You know that if you try to say anything, your voice will betray you. So, you opt for the easier choice â nodding your head, indicating that youâre saying yes to him.Â
The corner of Jakeâs lips curls up into a small smirk before he claims your lips with his. After holding back for so long, he finally has you in his arms as his one and only. Good things always come to those who wait. Jake might have to study more about the philosophies considering that it had been proven real to him.Â
The kiss that both of you shares are filled with a lot of passion and affections. All the restrains that you and Jake put onto yourself are now broken. His hands are now rubbing on your side as he turns his head to the other side, deepening the kiss. You let Jake lead the kiss as you circle your arms around his neck to prevent you from falling.Â
You are not surprised that his kiss will make you weak at your knees. You have always known he would be a good kisser. But you didnât expect that he will kiss you as if his life depends on it.Â
A moan escapes from you when Jake purposely bites your lower lips. Both of you pull away slightly to take a breath. Looking at Jakeâs expression, you finally understand the meaning behind his gaze earlier.Â
As for Jake, he is staring at you. You look more beautiful than you already are with your lips slightly swollen because of him â and he takes pride in it. He was planning to tease you when he bit you earlier. He didnât know that you would make a sound that could awakened something in him. He knew that he wonât be able to take it if he didnât control himself, so he put your kiss into a halt.Â
Jake brushes his nose gently against yours, making you look up to him. His hand moves up to caress your cheek once again.Â
âAll the time spent of me looking at you from afar back in school, I knew itâs going to be worth it.âÂ
Your cheeks turn bright red at his words, but it didnât fail to make you frown in confusion.Â
âLooking at me? You were looking at me the whole time?! I thought I was the one doing that to you?âÂ
Jake chuckles at your words before placing a soft peck against your nose.Â
âYou werenât the only one who have great eyes.âÂ
He winks at you, making you laugh along with him. You didnât know that he was doing the same thing that you did to him. Maybe you are fated for him, just like he thought when he met you for the first time.Â
âI love you, Mrs. Sim Y/n.âÂ
âI love you too, Mr. Sim Jaeyun.âÂ
Both of you stay in silent, just admiring each other before Jake decided to break it.Â
âSo, shall we go and continue this somewhere else? I donât think I can hold myself longer.âÂ
Your jaw dropped at his words before hitting his chest. He winces in pain and rubs the spot before turning to you and steals a kiss on your lips. He then picks you up bridal style and bring you back home, where you will be spending time with him all night long, skin-to-skin.Â
âÂ
It had been months since Jake was announced as the new CEO of the infamous Simâs company. The business starts to grow even more. A lot of international clients are interested to work alongside with Jake. He is compatible, responsible, and most importantly, he knows what he wants, and he knows he will get it.Â
But of course, you were there with him the whole time. Ever since you and Jake confessed to each other, both of you are becoming more and more clingy and loving towards each other. Nevertheless, you know the difference between professionalism and personal, considering that you are now working as your husbandâs secretary.Â
You tried to deny his offer a lot of times before, saying that it will be a talk of the office if she becomes his secretary. But knowing Jake, he wants to make sure that you are with him all the time. Well, he wishes for you to be with him every time.Â
Until he has a business trip to attend to.Â
âAre you sure you donât want to follow me? You can rest there,â Jake tried to persuade you for the nth times to follow him to the trip. His lips keep on placing kisses to yours with his arms around your waist, an attempt to melt your down.Â
âBut you will be working, my love. I donât want to go anywhere without you. It will feel incomplete without you by my side.âÂ
Jake groans softly at your words, but he canât deny it as well. You are telling the truth. He will be working all day and will only come back at night. If he were at your shoes, he would refuse to go as well. Whatâs the point of going on a trip with your spouse if you canât spend time together properly.Â
But it doesnât change the fact that Jake is still sad, thinking about not having you with him for three days straight. Naturally, a pout forms on his face, showing that heâs still upset.Â
You let out a soft sigh as you look at your husband. You then stand on your toe and kiss his pout away.Â
âLetâs put it this way â the sooner you take off, the sooner you will be back with me. Does that sound better to you?âÂ
Jake just nods his head obediently, once again resembling a puppy. He then pulls you into a tight hug.Â
âI love you, Mrs. Sim. Remember that, okay?âÂ
The corner of your lips curls up into a smile as your rub your husbandâs back up and down.Â
âI love you too, Mr. Sim. Always and forever.âÂ
Both of you let go of each other, yet your hands are still intertwined with one another. The sight makes you chuckle a bit.Â
âYou need to go. Donât want you to miss the flight.âÂ
Jake nods his head once again. After leaving kisses on your head, down to your forehead, eyes, nose and lips, he finally walks into the gate, waving his hand at you. You wave back to him with a reassuring smile on your face.Â
Once he is gone from your sight, you start to miss his presence. This is the first time you had to separate with him ever since your marriage. He was always there with you, whether to comfort you, love you, or even annoy the hell out of you.Â
But as his wife, you know he needs your full support for him to move forward and bringing you along with him on this journey. You need to be in your optimum energy to help him achieve his dreams.Â
That is why you are currently in the bakery nearby your house. You canât be energetic if you are hungry. You were scanning through all of the options when someone called your name from behind.Â
âY/n?âÂ
You turn to the owner of the voice, just to see Yunjin, looking effortlessly beautiful like she always does.Â
âI never thought I would bump into you here. Are you alone?âÂ
Her question bothers you a bit, not going to lie. But you remind yourself that it was all in the past. Jake is yours, and only yours.Â
With a genuine smile, you look up at her. âYeah. Jake is on a trip for a few days. Iâm just running a quick errand.âÂ
Yunjin nods her head at you. Her eyes soften at the sight of you.Â
âJake is so lucky to have a wife like you. So beautiful yet so diligent.âÂ
You look down at Yunjinâs sudden compliments. Your cheeks are slowly turning into crimson red. It makes it impossible for Yunjin not to find you adorable.Â
âAh, how about we hang out whenever we have time. Hereâs my number.âÂ
Yunjin holds out her business card. You look at it. Huh Yunjin, the owner of YJ Fashion House. You knew Yunjin is an amazing woman, and her status just increase her level in your head. You take the card and keep it safely in your bag.Â
âSure. Thank you for the offer Yunjin.âÂ
She just nods her head to you. As you were about to bid her goodbye, she put you into a halt.Â
âOh also, can we take a picture together? Iâve been dying to have one with you ever since we met that day.âÂ
Your eyes twinkles at the thought of a brilliant woman such as Yunjin, wanting to take pictures with you, who are just merely a secretary to your husband. You then nod your head at her, giving her your approval.Â
She grins widely, showing how happy she is. Using her phone, she flips the camera so that you and Yunjin can take a few selfies.Â
âI will send the pictures to you later. It was nice meeting you again, y/n.âÂ
âIt was nice meeting you as well, Yunjin.âÂ
Just like that, both of you part your ways to your own destinations, not knowing that a storm will be coming your way soon.Â
âÂ
After three full days of dealing with works, Jake finally returns to your arms during the weekends. At first, Jake insists to bring you out. But you donât want him to force himself as he needs rest.Â
So, during the weekends, you decided to just stay inside and pamper Jake to the fullest. Of course, being the clingy needy husband he is, he don't mind it at all. For two days straight you pay attention to him and only him, and he did the same to you.Â
No talking about work. Just small talks from time to time. Most of the time though you spend your time with Jake snuggling and cuddling you. You love the fact that he is not afraid to show his vulnerable side to you. He may look like he got it together in front of people, but with you, heâs still a kid stuck in a grown-up body.Â
But of course, that doesnât last longer. There are times when he wants more than just be close to you â and he did just that. You donât know how you can handle it considering that his drives are quite high.
Just like that, the weekends passed by quickly and you are back to being his secretary once again. As usual, you would inform his schedule and relay messages that you received on behalf of Jake while he was away. The files that are in need of his actions had been laid out neatly on his table.Â
âCan I get you anything, Mr. Sim?â You asked after youâve finished conveying everything that he needs to know.Â
Jake hums softly. âCan you tell Mrs. Sim that she looks ravishing today?âÂ
You roll your eyes at his remarks as he flashes an innocent smile at you.Â
âI will let her know, Mr. Sim. If thereâs nothing, I will make my way.âÂ
You bow your head respectfully before sending him a playful wink and walk out of his office. Â
Jake being Jake decides to follow you â specifically your butt â with his eyes until you are out of his sight. This have happened countless times before. If he ignores the professionalism between both of you, he knows he would have you in his office any time he wanted.Â
Without wasting any more time, Jakeâs hands move across the files and papers on his tray. He lets out a soft sigh looking at the amount of works that he needs to review. Well, he did ask for it so he canât say anything about it.Â
But what really catches his attention is a brown envelope, sealed perfectly. The only thing written on the envelope is Jakeâs name. He takes the envelope and turn it. There, he could see the word âprivate and confidentialâ.Â
He tilts his head to the side. He doesnât recall any agreements that he needs to sign that is confidential. With a shrug of his shoulder, he unseals the envelope. He inserts his hand into it and take out what seems to be pictures.Â
His curiosity changed into anger as fast as lightning at the view in front of him. His eyes are brimming with tears, threaten to fall. With shaking hands, he pressed the intercom and called you into his office.Â
He doesnât sound good. Youâve known him long enough to know that he is upset just by his voice through the speaker. Without a second thought, you knock on his door and enter his office when he approves of you.Â
You look at his state with a frown. His face is hidden behind his arms that was connected as he clasps his hand together. If you could make a guess, you would say that he looks miserable. You were about to ask him, but he decided to speak up first.Â
âWhat were you doing when I wasnât around?âÂ
Your frown grows deeper at his question.Â
âI was at the office in the morning and went back home in the evening. I didnât go anywhere except for grocery stores to buy a few stuffs for our home.âÂ
Jake scoffs at your last two words. Our home.Â
âOur home, where you were fucking someone else in our bed?âÂ
Your jaws dropped at his words. This is unfair. Did he really think that low of you? That you would simply having fun with other guys when heâs not around? This is ridiculous.Â
One thing you canât stand is when people falsely blaming you on something that you didnât do. Slowly, you can feel yourself getting fired up.Â
"You, out of people, accused me of cheating on you?"Â
Jake lifts his head up to look at you. His eyes are red from all the crying that he did before you stepped into the office.Â
"Well, explain these then?"Â
Jake threw the pictures in his hands on the table. You bend down to get a better view of it. In those pictures, it was you and a man, tangled to one another in various positions.Â
Your eyes widened at the images in front of you. You knew it wasn't you. Although it was your face in there, but you didn't do all of that. You would never betray the trust of the man in front of you. You didnât even think of betraying him in the first place.Â
But how, how can the woman in the picture looks a lot like you, when you know you have never slept with any man other than him.Â
"I don't know about this Jake, but I swear I have never done all of these. Please, believe me."Â
Your eyes are glistening with tears as you look at him, begging for him to trust you.Â
But you know it was no use. The way he looks at you is no longer like how he used to. It was filled with love and affection ever since the day both of you said, 'I do'. Â
Now, it was as if whatever he felt for you has vanished. The only emotion that he could feel is numbness and emptiness. He thought that you would be different than others. Turns out you're just the same.Â
You're just another woman, staying by his side just for the benefits.Â
Without saying anything, Jake grabs his blazer and walks out of the office, leaving you standing in the room, crying your heart out.Â
This isn't what you imagined how it's going to be. You thought everything would be fine the moment Jake kissed you that day. That you would finally experience your first and true love.Â
You didn't expect for all of these to happen. Your mind suddenly drifts off to the night of the gala. Were you and Jake not supposed to have your happy ending? If only one of you end this marriage like how it should, would any of this still happened?Â
Right, this all happened because of you. You selfishly want to be in this marriage despite knowing that it has to come to an end. You have no one to blame but yourself.Â
You thought that you finally had him for yourself. The man that you have always been attracted to. The man that never fails to make your heart feels full. You were stupid enough to believe that.Â
As you are left alone in the office, you thought to yourself, âI shouldâve let my fairytale remain as a fairytale'.Â
âÂ
âHuh, itâs surprising to see that you are not drunk. Guess you really changed.âÂ
Jayâs disclaimer receives a glare from Jake. His expression clearly shows that he is not in the mood for jokes or anything stupid.Â
âAnd what do you mean by that?âÂ
âWhen you broke up last time, you almost got into a fight with me,â Sunghoon answered on behalf of Jay.Â
Jake turns to Sunghoon before letting out a scoff.Â
âIn my defence, you started it.âÂ
Sunghoon raise one of his brows. He decides to ignore the remarks to avoid any arguments... again. He raises his glass to his lips and drink from it.Â
âSo, what is it this time?âÂ
Jake sigh at Jayâs question. He contemplates whether to tell his friends the truth or not. His friends on the other hand, knows him too well.Â
Despite getting hurt or betrayed, Jake had always been selective in giving out details about his personal life. For him, itâs supposed to be kept in minimal. Whatever happened inside the house, stays inside the house.Â
As much as his friends respect him for that, sometimes they wish that Jake could open up just a bit, so that they can help him in any way they feel necessary.Â
âLetâs just say that our marriage is getting too... crowded.âÂ
Jay and Sunghoon look at each other. It wasnât that direct, but itâs not indirect either. Everyone has their own interpretation. In this case, Jake seems to imply that there is a third party involved in their relationship.Â
However, Jay and Sunghoon found it hard to believe because you donât look like someone who would go out there and cheat on a man that truly love you for who you are. But then, they might be wrong as well.Â
âAre you sure y/n would do that to you?âÂ
Jake shrugs his shoulders at Jakeâs question. He lifts his glass to his lips and gulp down the remaining liquid.Â
âAs much as I would like to deny it, Iâm not sure if I can do that with the evidence that I have.âÂ
Sunghoon nods his head in understanding manner. He then pats Jakeâs shoulder and flash him a small smile.Â
âYou do what you got to do man. Weâll be here for you, always.âÂ
Jake replies Sunghoon with a smile. Heâs truly blessed for having such understanding best friends. He might not be lucky in love, but he knows he won lottery with friendship. So, itâs okay.Â
Heâs going to be okay.Â
Heâs going to be okay.Â
I'm going to be okay.Â
When Jake enters the dark room, suddenly everything feels empty. It feels like his life is crumbling down again. The thought that he kept repeating like a mantra before vanished just like that.Â
He knows he canât possibly go back home. Not with his current state. He needs to get away from all of these. He wants to forget about everything.Â
Unconsciously, he walks towards his office desk. The pictures were still scattered like how he left them earlier. The pictures are enough to ignite his anger. He has never felt so deeply disappointed in someone before.Â
He thought that he knows you enough to not be suspicious of you. But he never knew that youâre just another wolf in sheepâs skin.Â
Jake picks up one of the pictures. If only he could get hold onto the man in the picture, he knew he would beat him up until no one could recognize him ever again.Â
Maybe he shouldâve ended their relationship according to the original plan. Jake sighs to himself. He has no one to blame but himself. He trusts you too easily. In the end, he is the one who got fooled.Â
He examines the picture one last time for the night as heâs thinking of a solution to all of this.Â
When he finally found an answer, the corner of his lips curls up into a smirk. Bingo.Â
âÂ
Hundreds of calls, thousands of messages, and you still havenât heard anything from Jake.Â
You know that he needs some time to calm down. Yet you canât help but to feel worried for him. The least you want to know is where would he spend the night and if heâs eaten anything.Â
But there is nothing you can do. You must let him be for the night. To be fair, no one would be okay if out of nowhere thereâs a picture of your partner being intimate with another person â let alone tons of pictures of it.Â
Your tears had dried down from all the crying that you did earlier. As soon as Jake stormed out of the office, you made the decision to empty out his schedule for the day, claiming that he was on sick leave.Â
As for you, you requested to take a week leave and informed Mr. Sim â your father-in-law â about it. You didnât say for what but by the look on your face, he could guess there is something going on between you and Jake.Â
âThings are bound to happen. Take a break. I promise you it will be fine. Sooner or later, it will get better.âÂ
You smile at his words. You are not sure if you and Jake will ever be fine after the incident but at least your father-in-law's words managed to bring up your spirit.Â
As much as you are still upset about everything, you want to get everything right. You will make it right again.Â
You are sitting on the couch in the living room with a picture in your hand. You managed to steal one of it from the pile in Jakeâs office earlier.Â
Biting your lower lips, you lift the picture to your face so you can see it more clearly. Thatâs when you notice something different about the picture.Â
Without second thought, you grab your phone and dial a number. After a few rings, the receiver picks up the phone.Â
âHey, can we meet up tomorrow?âÂ
âÂ
âSo, what do you think?âÂ
Sunoo hums to himself and look at you. He hands the picture that you gave earlier.Â
âYouâre right. Itâs edited. Most probably AI.âÂ
You tilt your head in confusion.Â
âAI?âÂ
âArtificial Intelligence. It was programmed to help human in various ways â workforce, study, music â you name it.âÂ
You nod your head before a frown form on your face.Â
âBut what does that have to do with my case?âÂ
Sunoo smirks to himself. He pulls out his phone and type something on his phone before showing you a picture. You take his phone and identify it. You donât know why but the picture looks very familiar to you. It was as if you have been there.Â
Thatâs when it clicks in your head. You look at the personâs face closer and you see that the person resembles Sunoo but heâs wearing the outfit that you used to wear back in college.Â
âIsnât this my picture? Why does this look like you?âÂ
Sunoo smiles at your reaction.Â
âThatâs also an AI. I just chose a picture of my face and replaced it with yours. It didnât copy my face 100% but the resemblance is there.âÂ
His smile fades away as he leans forward to you.Â
âThe same thing with your case. Whoever edited it must have your picture as well. Yes, AI can be helpful to us. But some people use it for other purposes â framing, blackmailing, humiliation. At the end of the day, it depends on the personâs intention.âÂ
You think to yourself, trying to figure out the possible suspect. As far as you know, none of the people in your circle is suspicious considering. Thereâs only Sunoo, few of your college friends, and-Â
Your eyes widen at the realization. You look up at Sunoo.Â
âIt couldnât beâŚâÂ
âÂ
âJake!âÂ
Jake turns his head towards the owner of the voice. There, stand his ex-girlfriend, looking like how she normally would.Â
âItâs been a long time since we last talk to each other, right,â she said before inviting herself to sit across him.Â
Jake didnât do anything except following her movements with his eyes. Â
âSo, whatâs the sudden occasion? I thought you blocked me already.âÂ
He let out a soft chuckle at Yunjinâs remarks before shaking his head and flashing her a small smile.Â
âNothing. Just thought that it would be nice to meet you again.âÂ
Yunjin bites her lower lips, holding back herself from smiling too widely at the possibility of Jake missing her like how she missed him.Â
âDonât say it like that. If your wife heard you, she would think that we had something going on.âÂ
Jakeâs face fell at the mention of his wife, and Yunjin didnât miss that. Her expression changed to worry when she saw Jake frowns his brows.Â
âHey, did anything happen?âÂ
Jake swallows his saliva, a bit too loud for her liking. He then shakes his head, trying to not make Yunjin ask further questions about it.Â
She sighs softly at Jake. Heâs always so nice. Yunjin was used to this side of Jake. Just like his friends, she too knows that Jake isnât someone who would simply talk about his life to anyone.Â
But looking at his state now, Yunjin wishes nothing but for Jake to at least share a bit of the burden with her. She wishes that she can take care of him, like how she used to back then.Â
Yunjin reaches her hand to Jakeâs on the table, making the guy lifts his face to look at her. She flashes him a soft smile as she caresses his hand.Â
âDonât worry. Iâm here for you, Jake. You donât have to be strong all the time.âÂ
Jake looks down at her hand. Without thinking, he holds her hand and bring it close to his face.Â
Yunjin was stunned at the sudden gesture. She could feel his breath against her skin. Oh, how she missed it. She missed Jake so much. She missed being loved by him. She missed loving him as well. If only he knows that she would do anything to have him back.Â
âI thought you donât like tattoo.âÂ
Jakeâs remarks pull Yunjin out from her daydream. Her eyes then fall onto her inner forefinger where she planted her tattoo. Her lips curl into a soft smile.Â
âI got it after we broke up. I was devastated so I did it.âÂ
Jake nods his head and flashes her a smile before his eyes fall back onto the tattoo.Â
Both of them stay in silent, with Jake still gazing at her tattoo. She thought that it was cute how Jake never seems to take his eyes from it. Not to mention her pride when he notices the small details about her â just like when they used to be together before.Â
Before Yunjin could stop herself, she confessed to Jake.Â
âI miss you, Jake. I always have.âÂ
âÂ
It was raining heavily outside. Today, marks the third day of Jake not coming back home. Youâve tried to reach him, but it seems like he has blocked you.Â
You asked Jay and Sunghoon about Jake, yet the only thing that they could say was to give him space and time. Speaking of loyal friends, huh.Â
You miss Jake a lot. You miss Jake so much to the point that you still cooked for him, even though the chance of him coming back home to you is thin. Aside from meeting Sunoo, you didnât go anywhere else.Â
You only wait for Jake, day and night, without fail. You didnât bother to sleep in the bedroom anymore. You just stay in the living room, wanting to greet him whenever he chooses to come back home.Â
Turns out, your effort does not go in vain.Â
As the clock strikes 12 midnight, Jake opens the door and enter the house. He takes off his shoes and put it in the cupboard.Â
âWelcome home, Jake.âÂ
He didnât say anything. Instead, he chooses to ignore you and walk up the stairs. You stand up from the couch and call his name, stopping him on his track.Â
âWhere were you?âÂ
He stays silence.Â
âHave you eaten?âÂ
Again, nothing.Â
âDid you meet Yunjin-âÂ
âItâs none of your business.âÂ
You look at Jake, whose back is facing you before letting out a scoff. Of course, he will only talk to you if you mention her name. The name that he canât seem to let go. The name that used to be his sweetheart for four years.Â
Betrayal and hurt dominates your heart. The softness in you is now gone. You did not just wait in the house, waiting for him to come just to find out that heâs out there with his ex-girlfriend.Â
âI knew it. You canât forget about her, right? After all these years, sheâs still the one in your mind.âÂ
Your eyes slowly tear up.Â
âIâm just the replacement. A woman you used to climb up to your title.âÂ
Thatâs not it.Â
âA woman that you can use as your trophy.âÂ
Thatâs not true.Â
âA woman that you will throw away once youâre done using her to fulfil your needs-âÂ
âEnough!âÂ
You gasp at the sudden scream from Jake. The head that were facing the opposite side is now looking straight at you. His hands form into fist, with his thumbs hiding against his palms. His lips tremble from the anger that build up in him.Â
It was wrong. It was all wrong. Whatever you said about yourself, it was wrong. Jake has never seen you as trophy. He never wants to take advantage of your kindness. He loved you with all his heart and soul.Â
The worst part is, he still does.Â
âJakeâŚâÂ
Jakeâs face softens at the sound of your voice calling his name for the second time tonight. He missed it. He missed you. A lot. He wants to be with you again like how it used to be. He wants to get pampered by you. He wants to give you all the loves and affections that you deserve.Â
But he canât because he promised himself he will end it tomorrow.Â
âDo you still love her?âÂ
His breath hitched at your question. His eyes move to look at you, just to see that your eyes are red from all the crying that you did for the past few days. The thought of you crying for him while he wasnât around makes him sick.Â
He canât help but blame himself for putting you in such situation. You didnât deserve all of these. You deserve to be with a man that can make you happy and showers you with all the things the world could offer.Â
Not with a guy like him who will only make you sad and cry all the time. You shouldnât be here. He didnât deserve you at all.Â
Without any words, Jake turns his head back to the stairs. He continues to walk up the stairs and into the bedroom, leaving you standing in the living room with tears falling down your cheeks.Â
As soon as you hear the door closes, you fall on your knees to the floor. Youâre tired. Youâve reached your limit. You donât think you can keep up with this any longer.Â
Jake doesnât care about you anymore. Youâve been worried sick about him. He didnât come back home. He didnât go to office either. Sunghoon and Jay also said that they didnât know where he is.Â
But he doesnât care. After all these times, the only thing that he spoke to you was in the form of anger.Â
You feel pity for yourself. Youâre worthless. You can feel your body slowly fall on the ground, and you just let it happen. Â
Right at that moment, your eyes fall upon the ring at your hand. The sparkles are still there, as if itâs still new.Â
Will it still look the same if it was on her hand, or will it look better?Â
As your eyes close for the night, you thought to yourself, I will end it tomorrow.Â
It will end tomorrow.Â
âÂ
âDid I make you wait too long?âÂ
Yunjin was drinking from her cup before you appear in front of her. She put down her drink and shakes her head with a smile on her face.Â
âNo, I donât mind. I understand you must have business to attend to.âÂ
Despite looking all innocent, you can sense the sarcasm behind her voice. Your eyebrows lift slightly in amusement.Â
Huh, so this is the real Yunjin.Â
You sit across Yunjin as she picks up her cup and drink from it again.Â
âSo, what do you want to talk about?âÂ
You pursue your lips at her. You think to yourself to decide the method that you want to go for.Â
After a few seconds, your hands move to unzip your bag to take out a picture of âyouâ and the unknown man. Without hesitation, you place the picture on the table and slide it to her.Â
âI will cut to the chaste. That woman⌠itâs you. Am I right?âÂ
Yunjin takes the picture in her hand before letting out a historical laugh, enough to get everyoneâs attention.Â
Humiliation. That is how Yunjin wants to play.Â
âAre you blind? Itâs your face in the picture. Not mine.âÂ
You can hear people starts murmuring about the scene that is about to unfold in front of them. But you pay them no attention. You are determined to end everything today. Right here, right now.Â
âThe face does belong to me. But not the body.âÂ
Yunjinâs eyes twitch at your counter. You tilt your head to the side, studying her reaction.Â
âLook at it properly. That tattoo on the inner side of the finger; it matches yours, right?âÂ
Her face fell when you mention about it. Yunjin bring the picture closer to her and scan the picture. Thatâs when she saw the tattoo.Â
How could she forget to remove it before printing it? How could she be so careless? The fact that you even know the tattoo belongs to her⌠How can it be possible? Youâve only met her twice. Thatâs not enough for anyone to actually notice something as small as this.Â
âIâve always been good in observing people. It doesnât take me long to notice your tattoo considering that itâs on the same hand that you shook mine with back at the gala night.âÂ
Yunjin feels like a huge rock has hit her head. Stupid. Stupid. Stupid!Â
The whispers around you increase more and more as time passed by.Â
I��canât believe someone as beautiful as her can be so ugly deep inside.Â
So pathetic. Slept with a guy and blame others for it.Â
Sheâs nothing but a whore.Â
Yunjinâs lips tremble at the words thrown to her. This is not how she planned it to be. She wants to humiliate you, but it went to her instead. It doesnât make sense. If only you didnât marry Jake, none of this would happen and she would still be with him by his side.Â
She is supposed to hold the title of Mrs. Sim. She is much more worthy as his wife. But it all went down because of you.Â
However, she didnât plan to give up. At least not today.Â
Yunjin gathers her composure before leaning her back against her chair.Â
âYou couldâve purposely placed the tattoo in the picture. Isnât it easier that way?âÂ
With only those sentence, the peopleâs opinion suddenly changed.Â
Why canât she leave the woman alone?Â
She must be hungry for attention. Thatâs why she purposely blames the other woman.Â
A woman who betrays its own kind should not be labelled as a woman at all.Â
The corner of Yunjinâs lips curl up into a smirk. People are easily manipulated. All you need to do is to say a few things and they will instantly believe you whether itâs real or fake.Â
She has won. The victory is hers.Â
Unfortunately for her, the success doesnât last long. You knew she would say that which is why youâve been keeping another strong evidence to prove that itâs not you in the picture.Â
As you reach inside your bag, you felt a hand on your shoulder. You look up at the owner of the hand. Your eyes widened at the sight of Jake.Â
You didnât expect him to be here - so does Yunjin. He is not supposed to know youâre here. What is he even doing here? Did he make another appointment with Yunjin?Â
âYou want another proof that itâs not her? Here, I bring the real guy from the picture.âÂ
Jake said to Yunjin before moving to the side slightly, revealing a man named K standing behind him. Her eyes instantly widened at the sight of him. The exact same guy that she paid to frame you. The exact same guy that she slept with, just for the sake of destroying your marriage with Jake.Â
Yunjin shakes his head to herself.Â
âNo. I don't know this guy. I didnât do anything.âÂ
âYou slept with me, and you said you didnât do it? Did you forgot that I also have the original picture?âÂ
Yunjinâs eyes move to K, and she stood up from the chair.Â
âI paid you to keep quiet!âÂ
K scoffs at her.Â
âNo. You paid me to sleep with you. Thatâs it.âÂ
Yunjin bites her lips before letting out a frustrated groan. She turns to Jake and tries to grab his hands, but Jake avoided her advanced towards him.Â
âJake, I have a reason. I did all of this for you. I love you, Jake. I love you so much.âÂ
You donât like the view in front of you. As a woman, you feel pitiful towards Yunjin. One would never think a beauty such as herself would go low just for the sake of love. Refusing to witness how pathetic Yunjin is, you hug yourself and look to your side.Â
Jake on the other hand can read your body language. He knows you want to run away from the commotion. As your husband, he wants nothing more than fulfilling your wish and needs. So, he must end it now.Â
âDo you know why I broke up with you, Yunjin?âÂ
Jakeâs question makes Yunjin frown in confusion. Jake clears his throat, and his lips form a straight line.Â
âThat day, I just got back from studying. When I walked into our room, I saw you sleeping soundly, with another guy next to you. I donât need to know that you both are naked under the blanket considering that clothes were scattered on the floor. You claimed that you love me, but you still had the guts to cheat on me. Thatâs why I broke up with you...âÂ
Jake turns to look at you for a few seconds before facing Yunjin once again.Â
â... Thatâs why I will never ever be with you.âÂ
At that, Jake pulls you up and circles his arm around your waist, before bringing you out of the place, leaving Yunjin faced the humiliation that she created.Â
âÂ
As soon as you enter the house, Jake closes the door behind you and bring you to sit down in the living room. He then excuses himself to the kitchen to get two glasses of water. He brings the waters to the living room and put it on the table before sitting down next to you.Â
Both of you stay in silence for a while. You puff your cheeks before grabbing the glass and drink the water.Â
âHow did you know I was there?âÂ
Jake clears his throat. Now, itâs his turn to drink the water before answering your question.Â
âI... followed you?âÂ
You turn to face Jake, blinking your eyes at his words.Â
âReally? You followed me? Since when?âÂ
Jake rubs the back of his neck and flashes you a sheepish smile.Â
âWell, that day when I stormed off from office, I came back later that night. When I wanted to throw away the pictures, I felt something was off. Thatâs when I realized that the face does resembles you, but not totally you. Not to mention the hint of tattoo on the finger...âÂ
His hands move to hold your hand gently. He brings up your hand to his face before smiling to himself.Â
â...Iâve kissed this same hand countless times to know that youâve never had tattoo, my love.âÂ
All emotions come at you at the same time when he called you, my love. Tears brimming at your eyes as you suddenly recalled those nights without Jake in your arms. The way he raised his voice for the first time at you are still fresh in your mind, considering it just happened yesterday.Â
âYou hurt me, Jake. You hurt me so much.âÂ
Jake looks at your teary eyes before leaning his forehead against yours, making you burst into tears as soon as it touches. He had always known that you are a soft person, and you prove him right.Â
He knows that he has hurt you so bad. Although it was only a few days, the pain in your heart will still need time to heal. He wonât blame you for hating him or anything. He deserves it.Â
âI know baby, I know. I left you alone, crying to yourself for days. I am a bad husband, and I am sorry for the way I behave. I shouldâve believed you because you are my wife. My wife will never cheat on me, and I should know better.âÂ
You just nod your head, agreeing to his words as tears still flowing down your cheeks.Â
Jakeâs hands move up to caress your arms to your shoulder and up to your face. His thumbs wipe away your tears, even though a lot are still threatening to fall.Â
âPlease, forgive me. You can take as much time as you need, but please, donât leave me, y/n. I want no one but you to be my wife. You are the only one for me. No one can change that.âÂ
You open your eyes to look at Jake, just to find out that he is quietly sobbing. You canât believe that there will be a day where Jake would cry in front of you. It just shows that he truly cares for you and whatever he said earlier is nothing but the truth.Â
Although a part of you is still upset with him, you canât deny that your heart yearns to love and be loved by him. Just like him, you canât imagine any other man as your lover, let alone your husband. You want him, and only him.Â
Your hand reaches up to cup his face, his eyes are now looking into yours. You could feel his breath against your skin, and thatâs enough to tell you that heâs in front of you.Â
Without wasting time, you lean to Jake, pressing your lips against his, in which he responds with open heart. Both of you could taste each otherâs tears, but you donât care.Â
You and Jake have been spending time away from each other for too long ever since you got married to him. All the pent-up emotion and frustration can be felt with the way you and Jake canât seem to let go of one another.Â
Suddenly, everything feels right all over again. The pieces that were scattered are now together once again. Your life had always been normal. But somehow, being together with Jake makes your life more colourful than it already is.Â
Deep in the heart, you and Jake promise to not leave one another anymore for both of you canât live without each other. Jake needs you as much as you need Jake. No one in the world can ever change that.Â
As you are lost in Jakeâs arms, you thank the universe for shaping you into Jakeâs one and only, Mrs. Sim, forever.Â
#enhypen#enhypen imagines#enhypen scenarios#jake#jake imagines#jake romance#jake scenarios#enhypen romance#enhypen jake sim#sim jake#jake sim
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Bound By Blood (m)
synopsis: A servant to the state since birth, forced to work for the royal family until you die. These are the conditions that have granted you life, yet are they are the same ones that can take everything away. He can take everything away. But he would never, for you are his future, his eternity.
k.taehyung x f.reader
âŚď¸ Ý Ëâ: wc: 16.0k
âŚď¸ Ý Ëâ: genre: royalty au, soft yandere, fluff, smut, smidge of angst
âŚď¸ Ý Ëâ: content: soft yandere!prince!taehyung, maid!reader, power imbalance, talks about death/violence, blood, slight predator/prey dynamics, manipulation, misunderstandings, dom!tae, tae calls reader lamb, oral (f.receiving), marriage related dirty talk, virginity kink/loss of virginity, size kink, praise, reader is fucked dumb, implied kissing reader while she sleeps, implied offscreen somno, implied stalking, ownership, tae is rlly sweet and adorable
âŚď¸ Ý Ëâ: notes: hello!!! this was meant to be a drabble but as you can see it spiralled out of control lmao. i got a little hyper fixated (and grew a really bad crush on this taehyung) so it ended up being way longer than i initially thought! regardless, i hope you all enjoy it as much as i did writing it!!
18+ -> minors / blank blogs dni
The Kim Empire.Â
Your home, your family, your livelihood all wrapped up in those three little words.
They practically brandish your mind, have been since you were no more than a babe. Stuck in the clutches of everything Kim since you were born. Your mother a maid, your father gone from the face of the earth. At least as far as you are concerned he is, anyway.Â
He is better off dead. The alternative of him living scott free in some far off land, meanwhile you have to serve the hand and foot of the king sets no more than the bitter taste of coffee beans against your gums.Â
Bedding your mother, no more than a fresh-faced maid at the time. Outcasting her the second after when he had to have known the rules of the palace. The demise it would cost both her and her future daughter. Perhaps every generation that followed as wellâ if there were to be any, that is.Â
Housestaff are not meant to have relationships. They are meant to serve the king and his bountiful family. How are you meant to do anything else with a child bouncing at your hip, a husband grabbing at your ass.Â
Youâve heard the speech plenty of times. The words ingrained in your skull just as the brand you received when you were far too young to remember the pain of it. Evidence that you are bound to the palace by blood until the very moment you take your last breath.Â
The punishment for becoming pregnant within the walls of the palace are simple: your child belongs to them. For anything within the Kim Estate is their rightful property, given to them by the grace of god.Â
You, a gift from god to serve the empire. You would snort at the notion if training from a young age prohibited it. You are just a result of your mothers kindness, her naivety.Â
You could never find it within your heart to blame her. She was just a girl who thought she was in love. Fired for her love. Had her daughter taken from her to serve for her love.
Love is something you will never be granted the property of.Â
You will be granted an allowance to send home to your mother to keep her afloat. You will be granted a room to sleep in, clothes to wear, food to eat. A secure job in which you can never be firedâ well. That is a lie. Though, your termination would come at the end of an axe, rather than a piece of paper.Â
You used to muse at the thoughtâ when you were a young girl, no more than 11 or 12. Going through your melancholy years, hating the rest of the world for simply existing. For putting you in a position where you could not change your fate, instead had to endure your present. Feeling like a girl trapped in a tower just like the bedtime stories had always prescribed.Â
One time you had caused such a ruckus in front of the oldest Kim son you really did think you were going to get the axe. Hell, you were even prepared for it. Locked away in a cell for two nights, brought before the executor.Â
Right before the swing was meant to be brought down against your neck the head maid ran into the room, gave some sort of letter to the man. She apologised profusely, gripping your ear and dragging you away from the scene.Â
You hadnât acted ary since then. It taught you your place. Made you realise the need to survive buried deep within your bones. In the innate way some sort of wildcat would lash out until it was bloodied and on its last breath.Â
You would not die at the end of a knife. Youâd live your life, acting a maid until you could die peacefully of old age. Even if it meant surrendering yourself to servitude for the most annoying brat youâve ever laid eyes on.Â
A quiet sigh slips past your lips at the mere thought of him. The sound would get you punished if anyone were to hear, especially in respect to the coveted crown prince of the kingdom. Few share the same opinion as you of himâ but then again most that work here arenât forced.Â
It is only when the stars are strung high in the sky that you allow yourself to feel such things. When you stay awake past the beginning of rest hours, most of the staff (save for the night shift) falling to sleep hours prior. Only then when youâre out in the gardens do you allow indignation to satiate your brain.Â
For the few hours of freedom you may hold dear until the next morning begins and you are forced to live the same day once more. Over and over again until the end of time.Â
Your fingertips reach out as you walk, bruised from the scrubbing of floors, to find purchase against the walls of flowers rimming the maze. Rough fingertips dance against the gentle petals of roses, lulling in the feeling. Picking themselves against the thorns without much of a thought, not withdrawing. Only pausing feet to observe.Â
How can something so delicate and beautiful wish to cause harm? It does not. It simply desires a way to survive. You could never fault it for that.Â
âPretty, are they not?â A dark, husky voice sends cold down your spine. Hairs become on edge, back straightens taught, ears perk just as if you are an obedient dog. Fear flashing through your entire being.
You do not wish to turn around. Do not have any want to face the man that has caught the air in your lungs. The one catching you in the garden without any proper attire in place. Though you must. You must bow, grovel at his feet for forgiveness for allowing him to see you in your nightgown. For not being in bed as you should.Â
Prince Kim has never been known for being kind.Â
Your body acts for you while your mind sets on pauseâ taking several steps forward, bending your body at the hips to give a proper 90 degree bow. Your hands clasp before you, hair coming down in front of your face.Â
âPrince Kimââ You rush, suddenly out of breath, âPlease forgive my insolence. I-I am not of right attire or mind to be standing in front of his excellency right now. Nor should I be excused for touching the property of the palace. I have no proper excuse and any punishment you decide will be deserving. Please forgive me.â The words recite from your lips like a bibleâ instruction of them being heard time and time again.Â
Cold night air whips at your ankles, fluttering the gown around your ankles. The chill only adding to the cold sweat youâve discovered has perspired. Making your hair dance around your shoulders.
You expect something, anything really. A slap, a single word. Though there is only silence in response. Silence that extends far too long and feels far too pungent for your taste. If he was going to do something, you rather he just get it over with.Â
After what feels like an eternity, you finally hear the baritone of his voice once more.
âPretty, are they not?â He asks again, repeating the same sentiments as before. Confusion bristles through as a kite in the summer air. Why is he asking you this? Is he not annoyed he caught a maid in such a level of disrobement? What is he trying to gain? What does he want?Â
All the questions you do not have any hope to answer rush through you causing you to feel confused and incomposed. Every boring lesson you were forced to sit through never taught you how to deal with this exact situation. You arenât sure what he wants, nor your place in the garden. The thought scares you.Â
Against your better judgement, you allow your chin to tilt up only slightly. Only enough to look at the manâ to try and read the expression on his face so you can better analyse your next action.Â
The shock you feel when you find his face is only inches from your own, frame bent down to make his eyes level with yours is something you cannot explain in words alone.Â
You would prefer to scream and run, however that is not an option at this moment, or so it appears. Instead, your eyes only widen in shock, in trepidation. Your mouth opens into a small âoâ as you stare.
Never before have you made eye contact with a member of the family. Never before have you had the luxury to view one so close. In any other circumstance, you suppose, you would surely be punished for such a thing. Someone lower should never view a future king in such a way.
You wish you could say he was a heinous, ugly beast for hatred of the palace alone. Yet you canât, for he isnât. He is beautiful.Â
Sure, you knew that already. Paintings of him are plastered across the wallsâ his face is everywhere eyes are able to reach. Yet this close, at this angle, you canât stop the way your heart skips a beat. Canât help but admire every facet of his complexion before being thrown in front of the lion again.Â
A gorgeous, blinding smile wipes across his face the moment you face him. Lips forming into an adorable box after he finally has your attention fully drawn on him. Youâre startled back once again, sending your brain into a further whirlwind than before.Â
He desires an answer.
âI um⌠Yes. I suppose they are.â You nod slowly in response, following in his footsteps as he returns to full height.Â
You must follow his leadâ it is how you will survive.Â
You usher a stray lock of hair over your shoulder, trying to stop it from hitting your face. The air starts to become stale again, feeling empty in the lack of his reply. It is awkward, and the way he stares at you, eyes darting around your faceâ your figure, has you feeling in some sort of girlish, embarrassed way.Â
You think you dislike the feeling.Â
âAre you a fan of roses?â His arms are pulled behind him, wrapped together as he bounces on his toes in something that looks like⌠boyish delight? The muddle of your brain can't help to understand a single thing. He is making no sense, trying to make conversation with you. Trying to find a morsel of companionship in someone who is meant to bow to him like he is the true god of your mortal plain.
You will have to oblige until he allows you to depart.Â
âI suppose so.âÂ
He frowns. Try again.
âI adore them, the palace always has the most gorgeous petals all year round.â You smile at him, hoping it masks any discomfort you feel.Â
The smile returns to his own lips as he begins to walk. Tilting his head to you as a cue to join him. You try to keep your paces a few behind his own, a maid should never walk beside a member of the family. Though he only slows in response, matching your gate even though it is obvious he hates having to slow down.Â
Why is he behaving in this manner? It makes no sense to you.Â
âThe flower of devotion.â He nods, breaking the silence once more and keeping his eyes straight ahead.Â
You almost want to admire his profileâ the gentle curve of his nose, yet you refrain. Training your eyes ahead, keeping your fingers laced in front of you. Trying to look as put together as possible at this moment.Â
âIs it?â You quiz, unable to take the awkward silence anymore. He doesnât seem to mind it. Unbothered, tucking his hands into the pockets of his loose, flowing sleep pants.Â
âOf many other things, as well.â He nods, sending a slight smile at you.Â
âI donât know much about the language of flowers.â Though it feels wrong to be talking with Prince Kim so casually, you try your best. The more you give in, mayhaps the sooner heâll bore and the faster you will be able to run from the cage.Â
âTell me your favourite, maybe I can tell you its meaning.â He pauses and you find yourself at the foot of the gazebo. He reaches out his hand, offering to help you up the small stairs of it.Â
All over again you find yourself taken aback. The prince is requesting that you touch him, not for his service, but your own. He desires to help you. Is for some reason treating you like a lady.Â
You donât understand it, yet with great hesitation you oblige. You place your hand on his much larger one, allowing it to encase it. Help you up the stairs.
âI donât know manyâŚâ You hope he cannot hear the hesitation in your tone, âThough Iâve always been fond of lilies.â You tell him, attempting to pull your hand away from his own as you reach the top.Â
He doesnât allow it, keeping your small palm tight in his own. Fear trickles in once more, circling around your heart, constricting it.Â
You knew you shouldnât have trusted him in the slightest. It is here where you shall face punishment for all the previous misdemeanours committed. White stone shall be painted with red and you will be left to your own devices to clean up the mess.
Your lungs start to take in more air, though of course you try to disguise it. Turning around to face him, to discover why he has kept you held firm, air is leaving your lungs for another reason entirely.Â
He holds your hand close, examining your fingers. Tilting it back and forth, smoothing his thumb over the back of your skin. If he takes note of the little dots of red, he doesnât make comment of it. He only curls his fingers upwards, hooking against your own. Bringing your hand up to his lips as if it was the most delicate thing on earth. Staring at them with a passion you doubt youâve ever seen before.
âRebirth.â His breath fans across your knuckles, slowly lowering to place a gentle kiss against the skin. His lips are soft, so gentle against your weary flesh. So full of safety, so full of song.
When he retracts, he pulls away no more than a millimeter, though his grip tightens.Â
âPurity.â
Your first meeting with the prince had left you with a flurry of emotions, none of which you could hope to syphon through. For hours he kept you in the gazebo, sitting with you. Talking until it appeared the sun was cresting over the horizon.Â
He refused to release your hand the entire time. His fingers playing with your own, perhaps obsessed with the feeling of your tiny hand laced with his own pristine skin. Did not pay any attention the several times you tried to excuse yourself, only changing the subject of conversation to try and keep you in place.
It was strange. Confusing. You did not understand the reasoning or cause behind any of his actions.Â
Well, at least until the next morning while you were scrubbing the floors. Your friend Annabell cleaning right by your side. Catching up, gossiping about the new recruits found in the manner. It is only times like these when you actually get the chance to talk, to giggle with someone meant to be your equal in both age and house status.Â
The only chance youâre truly able to forget about the fact she is able to leave once her contract expires. But it does not matterâ any small amount of spite you hold is slashed away by her kind smile. The understanding in her eyes as she treats you like just another maid set to work for the king instead of a captive.Â
It is only after the 7th yawn of the morning she asks about the poorly covered bags under your eyes. You had gone to bed with the rest of the girls, there is no reason you should be so tired. You never appear to be, at least it is not shown around others.
You struggle with yourself for a moment, trying to decide whether the night before was meant to be kept as a closely guarded secret to your chest. Yet one look at your closest confidant had you spilling everything.Â
The entire nightâ the stars, the flowers, the way he prattled on. How tight he gripped your dirty, calloused hand against his pristine soft ones.Â
You feel strange speaking of it, remembering it in any way. It causes your cheeks to heat and a fury to settle below your ribs.Â
It is a strange feeling, yet not an entirely unwanted one.Â
Your eyes train to the floor as you spill your soul, unable to keep it in once it starts pouring out. You try to keep your tone as neutral as possibleâ to tell her about the night as if it was a simple news story you heard from a guard. Though, youâre unsure of your success in the matter.Â
A poised laugh leaves the lips of your counter, her eyes cresting into half-moons.Â
âYou cannot be serious right? You tell stories.â She giggles, shaking her head before continuing her assault on the floor.Â
You simply shake your own.Â
âIt happened, I was as shocked in the moment as you seem to be now.â She lets out a small bellow of giggles once again.Â
âNo, no. I believe it happened entirely. Iâm only talking about the fluster of your face.â She giggles, lifting her rag and shaking it for dramatic effect. You roll your eyes, cracking a small smile.
âThere is no such thing.â You laugh knowing that there is.Â
âOh my heavens. Y/n, you cannot tell me youâve grown fond of the Prince, have you?â Her words are hushed now, much more so than before. As if someone may be listening to the conversation.Â
You tense in reply, unsure of the answer yourself. The closest youâve ever felt to fondness of another man was a stable boy a few years back. Only 17 at the time, head wrapped in romance novels that you didnât entirely understand. He was handsome and he was kind. However just as you were starting to become closer to him, he was sent away to work at another palace.Â
You had not been optimistic since then.
She takes your silence as an answer in itself. Moving towards you, gripping your shoulders and hauling you to sit on your haunches. Forcing you to look at her face as she speaks.Â
âYou cannot be serious.â She repeats again, hoping for any sign of doubt. All she receives is bewilderment in reply, âY/n. You can never trust Prince Kim.âÂ
You sigh, âI know, Anne, Iââ Youâre cut off with her own voice again.
âNo, not in the way youâre imagining.â She sighs, letting her hands drop from your shoulders to continue scrubbing at the floor. Making work of herself as she speaks, âThe other maids donât tell you of much, do they?âÂ
You canât deny it. Your seclusion within the castle walls is only partly of your own design.Â
Other maids do not feel as though they can trust you, seeing as you are full property of the crown. In their eyes, you hold not a crumb of loyalty to your own kind. Few maids speak to you like Annabell does for fear the second they say anything wrong you are going to tell the world.Â
You would never, though your word is worth its weight in feathers to them.
âThey donât care for me as you do⌠noâŚâ You admit, continuing to clean as well. She already knew the answer, letting out an exhale before she speaks.
âPrince Kim has a pension for⌠debauchery⌠I shall say,â She flinches at her own words, yet doesnât know a better way to put it, âThe variety in which he uses pretty words to seduce young ladies to bed with him. Royalty from other lands, generalâs daughters, maids. It matters not. He likes them for the night then pretends they shall never exist again.âÂ
Each word she speaks sends another stab into your gut. A dull pain blooming from the same places which a swirling was forming before.Â
Ah. It all makes sense now.Â
âOh.â
âHe has a particular fondness for the other maids, you know. Bedding them without a second thought.â A grimace forms on your friend's lips, scrubbing harder into the already shining floors, âThere is no reason to form any sort of affection for that man. It will only end with his seed inside your core and a knife in your heart.âÂ
Yes, everything she is saying makes perfect sense. You feel almost stupid to not see it before. Maybe you just didnât want to see itâ want to think about it in any sort of fashion. But this makes much more sense than the crown prince wanting to speak to you for any other purpose. Explains why he was acting as a true gentleman to someone so much lower than him.Â
However, you find that it does not take away the cavernous pit that has formed in your gut.Â
âI see, I have no desire for either.â You nod your head in understanding, not sure of what else to say. âI donât understand why heâs taken an interest in me, though.âÂ
She gawks, âI donât understand why it has taken him so long to in the first place.â She shakes her head.
âNevertheless, it doesnât matter. Y/n, you must promise me. You will not fall for him, nor give any part of yourself to him. He is not someone that will care for you like you deserve.â She states, blue eyes piercing icicles into your own. She is determined and will not relent until you agree.
âI do not wish to. Not after hearing all ofâŚâ You make some sort of motion with your hand, âthat. Anyone would be a fool to like him.âÂ
You nod your head while Annabell smiles in agreement.Â
âGood.âÂ
Those are the last words you exchange with anyone for hours. The rest of the day passed by with lightning, an endless turnstile of things to take care of. A ball was to be held soon meaning the castle would be a wreck for the next few days. Too much planning, cleaning, sewing, coordination had to take place before anyone could rest.Â
Honestly, you were grateful for it. A break from thinking was much needed. As is a good nightâs rest.Â
You sigh, already imagining how lovely it would feel to pull off your shoes for the day. Peel the cotton off your body and replace your dress with something more comfortable.Â
Oo! Hopefully enough warm water will be left for a quick bath. That would be just wonderful, your muscles would be able to unfurl. The perfect thing to lull you into a glorious sleep.
Your arms stretch over your head as you finish descending the staircase into the maid hallways. Bones in your back pop from the pressure, causing a sigh to make its way from your lungs. Your nimble fingers make their way to the ribbon holding your hair in place, untying it and allowing the tresses to fall.Â
Soon you would be in the maid resting quartersâ your appearance would matter not there anyway.Â
You send small smiles to other staff members passing you, those that have either just woken for the night or those who still have work to do. Yet in return, each one of them just stares at you with an incredulous look. Turning and whispering to their friends as if you were not still in front of them.Â
You canât help to understand why. Those around you may not have considered you a friend, but they were never rude. Always polite when need be. It has you feeling strange, some type of nervousness as you get closer and closer to the hallway extending to the maids personal rooms.Â
Rounding the corner, you discover exactly why.Â
His frame looks entirely out of place standing there. A perfect, pristine picture in a hallway of drab, illuminated only by the lanterns hanging on the wall. Royal blue tunic draped on his shoulders only emphasising his status.Â
He looks as though he was never meant to be here. Like a mistake was made along the cobblestone walls. No, he looks as though he is meant to be among the living. Not in your dreary, windowless life. Nothing could change that.Â
You stand there frozen, a deer caught in the lanturn of a hunting party. A pounding of your heart, as well as the dark swell of your gut coming back to life. Why is he here? Why the hell does he have a bouquet of flowers?!
You wish to scream, but you donât. You have already been caught.Â
His eyes look up from where he created a small pile of dirt on the floor. His face coming alight in an instant, pushing himself to full stature from where he once leaned against the wall. Long legs making their way towards you while he suddenly has the decency to hide the bouquet behind his back.Â
Annabell certainly did not mention this method of Prince Kimâs seduction. You had never seen him down here before.Â
âHi.â Is all he says once he is finally face to face with you. His face bright and youthful. Excited.
It seems all formalities have been dropped in his mind, though you refuse the notion.Â
âPrince Kim.â You simply reply, lowering yourself in a curtsy.Â
He pays no mind, almost pretending you never did it in the first place. Instead, he simply rocks back and forth on his heels, bouncing slightly in delight. Wanting something, unable to voice it.Â
âTo what do I owe the pleasure?â You ask, hoping to end the encounter swiftly to stop all of the prying eyes leering into your being.Â
âI brought you something.â His eyes do not break contact with yours once and you can see his hand twitch by his side as if it wants to reach out for something. You're glad he has the decency to hold back, so you shall do the same by pretending you never saw the flowers in the first place.Â
You choose not to ask yourself why he brought you a present. It must just be a trick of seduction.
âI am honoured to accept such a thing.â You send a small smile his way, something between real and fake. It seems to make him beam.Â
His arm comes out from behind, holding the flowers between both of your bodies. You look down at them, shock written across your features.Â
Sure, you had noted them as flowers before. But you think these may be the prettiest ones youâve seen in your whole life. Petals of orange, white, and purple cloud in your eyes. Stomatas filled with the sweet pollen.
Lilies. All different kindsâ ones youâve never seen before.
Theyâre out of season, at least you think they are. How did he get these? Why is he giving them to you? Why is he trying to get the butterflies to return? Why is he trying to make your heart explode?
âPrince KimâŚâ Youâre not sure what to sayâ instead gently reaching out to feel the velvet of a petal. Staring intently at their colours, unable to pull your eyes away.Â
âTheyâre beautiful, arenât they?â His voice is a husk of a whisper, as if youâre the only two in the hallway. As if other maids are not passing, as if they are not staring at the two of you.
âYes⌠I⌠Iâm not sure what to say.â It is all so hypnotic.Â
âThank you would be a good beginning, no?â His smile is soft, a light chuckle present in the tone.
You pause, tilting your head to look up at him fullyâ a large, real smile donning your lips.
âYes. Thank you.âÂ
You feel as if you are floating, just as you would when reading those romance books in your late teen years. Like the world has stopped moving save for the prince in front of you slowly passing the flowers into your arms.Â
Your hands brush against each other and you feel his fingers twitch, tightening ever so slight. Wishing to grab onto your hand just as he had done the night before. Wishing to insect every line that traces over your fresh once more.
However, he refrains. Allowing his ringed fingers to sink themselves into his pockets.
âI was just going to have them delivered. Iâm not really meant to be down here, you know,â His smile is shy, âBut I didnât know your room. That, and I wanted to see you again.âÂ
You look down, unable to keep the eye contact he presses you for. Prince Kim is too much for you. You donât understand how he couldnât be too much for anyone.Â
âOhâŚâ Youâre a flush, âThank you for saying that.âÂ
âIt is nothing to thank me for.â He chuckles, bangs dimming the hues of his eyes, âIâm sure I bored you with all of my ramblings.âÂ
He did, partly, but that was more discombobulation for the situation and a sense of tiredness creeping into your bones. You shake your head quickly.
âOf course not. I had.. Fun.â Mayhaps fun isnât the right term, yet there is no word that exactly describes your emotions of last night, nor the ones of today.
âAs did I.â His lips are tight in a smile again, feet bouncing on their heels once more. Heâs nervous, wants to say something again but isnât sure how.
Youâre not sure how to feel about learning what that habit means. Not sure how to feel about what any of this means. You have not had a moment alone to truly dissect what all of it is.Â
âI would love to spend the night talking to you again, if you would allow me.â You donât think you would love anything more, yet you know you would not be able to function. Would probably make a fool of yourself, too.Â
âI-I think it would be best if I were to get some rest⌠I had not even an hour before I had to start working last night.âÂ
He frowns, âThatâs not good for your healthâŚâ He pauses, searching your face for any signs of distress, âThen let's talk in your room. I will only stay until you sleep.âÂ
You pause, air drifting back into your lungs.
Ah. Right.Â
The words of your friend sink in once again, breaking you out of whatever trance he had put you under. Whatever spell he laced through both of your ears to have you singing songs of praises for him and the crown.Â
He wants you as a notch in a bedpost. Nothing more. It is clear as day and you are a fool to think anything other than that. This is all just a cleverly rehearsed show. You will not fall victim like your mother.Â
All royalty is the same. Use use use. Beat a dead horse until it stops coughing up any sort of reprise.Â
Your posture is suddenly tense, fist gripping the flowers so tight your knuckles appear white.Â
How dare he think so low of you. How dare he think he might be able to fuck you for nothing.Â
âMen are not allowed in the women's private quarters.â Your voice is staunch, though it is not as if he can tell nor cares.Â
If he does, he doesnât show it.Â
âAh,â The lilt is still evident in his tone, the cat playing with the mouse, âBut I am not any man, am I?â His body leans a bit closer, pulling his face parallel to your own. Smirk playing on his lips.Â
Beauty is a deceptive thing, isnât it? âWhen I am king Iâll make it so I can see you whenever we both desire.â Something heats in your gut at those words, yet anger quells it just as fast.Â
âIt is a shame that you are not King yet, then.â You nod politely in his direction, trying to excuse yourself. Yet your words only seem to excite something in his eyes, lighting a fire behind them.Â
âMy, I didnât know you felt that way.â He smiles coy. A flustered sensation overcomes you as you realise the double meaning behind your words. You had made it sound like you wanted him in that way when that could not be farther from the truth.
âI do not.â You state, your voice ice. Though once again, it seems that it does not pierce him.Â
âThere is no reason to be so cold, Y/n.â He sing songs, tapping one of his long fingers against the side of his head.Â
âI am not being cold! You are just not listening.â You sigh in exasperation. Exhaustion and annoyance make you forget yourself, causing your volume to rise just as his own does. This only seems to excite him more.Â
âI have heard enough.â He giggles, boyish and what others would describe as cute. Right before youâre able to argue back once again, he cuts in with his own voice once more.
âI will leave you for now. Find a pretty place for the flowers.âÂ
He smiles generously at you, beginning to walk away, âHave a good night. Iâll see you soon.âÂ
In your shamble of a disposition, youâre left stuck there. Staring at his back as he retreats down the hallway.Â
The shock of everything that had just transpired coming over you all at once. How poorly you had behaved. How you spoke to him. He could have you killed for any one of those things however instead he left you with a bouquet of flowers and a promise for another night.Â
You scramble to find yourself, to move yourself from out of the eyeline of every other maid. To make your way to your room, your one sanctuary as quickly as possible.Â
It is only when youâre in those walls, hard oak door shut firmly beside you that you have to remind yourself of your promise to your best friend. Remember that the prince fights his battles with words and emotions.Â
Your second meeting with the man had left you even more confused than the first. Thousands of questions and emotions real through your bones at a pace your brain canât manage to understand. Leaves you fuming, trying to form a single coherent thought as you analyse the last two nights with a ferocity unimagined.Â
In your state, however, you neglect to think of the one question that should be dancing before you, held on a string just out of reach.Â
Why did he know your name?Â
It is apparent that since that night, Prince Kim has located which room you find habitance in.Â
This morning, another letter has found itself slipped under the base of your door. They have become commonplace nowâ letters detailing apologies for why he was unable to visit, what he had gone about on his day, his regrets that he has not heard back from you in what feels like ages.Â
Heâs tried to speak to you a few times in the palace when you work. His eyes always trained on you with something youâre unable to describe when you clean nearby.Â
You wish you could say it was perverse in manner, but it was nothing of the sort.Â
Every once and awhile you would catch a lily pinned to his breast pocket. He would send you a secret smile whenever it caught your attention. As if it was a tale meant for only the two of you to know. As if he wanted to carry a portion of you with him.
You may be naive in saying so, nor do you have much experience in the matter, but these do not feel like the actions of a man who simply wishes to find home under your dress. These feel more personal. More extravagant than anything else.Â
Nevertheless, you ignore every single advance. Annabell made you promise, and it was a promise you were intent on keeping until your dying breath.Â
Put the letters away in a box, never to be responded to. Avoided looking at him whenever he was near. Rushed out of rooms when it appeared he was intent on making his war for you.
Icing out the prince is what is best. Whatever lilies he will wilt and die and you will be able to continue on with your hatred of the Kim family as well as your blood pact with the throne.Â
You only wish it was that easy.
âY/n!! Miss Y/n!!â There is a scramble outside of the door, voices hailing for your presence. You donât know whyâ youâre on wash duty. Anyone, unless theyâre extraordinarily new, would know that.Â
The voice grows more erratic, more panicked. As if their life depends on finding you in that very moment. The other maids in the quarters send their glaces to you, urging you to go yet not one opens their mouths.Â
At least one bonus of endenturing your entire life to the palace is that you have grown in rank. More than 10 years has granted you a decent position.Â
A hushed sigh slips past your lips and your hands find themselves forcing the pile of sheets into the washing tub. Your hands quickly wipe away at your apron, ridding them of any moisture before pushing open the door.Â
Stepping into the hallway lined with stone you notice only a single girl. Her entire form shaking as she paces the hallâ panicked. Blonde curls bouncing with every step, cheeks a fluster.Â
A new recruit, indeed. Celley is the name she wears.Â
She had just entered with the last batch of new maids, starting at the palace no more than 2 months ago. She was a recruit you were unsure ofâ not having a lick of grace or balance, nor any experience with serving. But you suppose there are many reasons maids are chosen.Â
You do not like to think of them.
Her feet are suddenly clamouring over to you, noticing your presence for the first time since youâve stepped in the hallway. Her small, shaking hands grip your shoulders, holding you with all the will she seems to possess.Â
âExcuse me have you seenââ She stops herself, tiny pants pausing as her eyes go wide, âOh my days! Miss Y/n! You must hurry!â She rushes, hand gripping your wrist as she tries to pull you away.Â
Though your face twists in confusion, your feet remain firm.Â
âWhatâs the matter?â You ask, both sympathy and concern entering your frame. You can admonish her later for her lack of manners, however now, the girl seems truly frightened. Her large steel eyes looking back at you, pleading.Â
âThe crown prince! Heâs!â Sheâs out of breath once again, continuing to try and urge you on.
This time, the second the word prince is muttered, you begin to follow her pace, âHeâs lost his mind! Heâs going on a firing spree! Locking up anyone who tries to calm him!âÂ
âWhat? Why is that? Did something happen?â You ask hushed, urging the girl to keep her voice down. Though you both are similar in age, it is apparent who has experienced this type of thing before.Â
âHe got into some kind of spat with his father. His instructor was fired when he tried to continue on with their lesson.â It seems she understood your message, continuing to hurry you down the halls.Â
âAnd what am I meant to do?âÂ
âI-I donât know!â She lets out a quiet yelp, pulling you closer as you exit the maid hallways and enter the palace ones, âHis personal maid is away visiting family. She said to leave everything to you if something were to happen! I-I didnât know what else to do!âÂ
Damn Eleanor and everything she stands for. Why the hell did she have to bring your name into this?! Shouldnât the head maid be called in times like this?! Not you, someone who wants nothing to do with any member of the royal family. Especially the crown prince himself. Sure, there must be rumours spreading around but you had managed nearly three weeks without speaking to him!
You let out a sigh, squaring your shoulders in an attempt to appear more confident, more put together. You will do this, and you will come out victorious. Every battle before has left you victor. What is one more?
âI understand. It will be dealt with.â
The least you can gain is the idyllic picture of the prince to be shattered forever. That would be the most ideal outcome, something to truly force him out of your heart for good. You will not fall prey to him and his earthly desires. He will not win your heart.Â
At least that is what you hope.Â
The throne room's doors stand before you, delicate lacings of gold worth more than your entire being etched into its surface. A glittering picture for what is sure to be a bloodbath behind its contents.Â
A deep inhale of warm air fills your lungs, hand pressing against the door as you force it open. Face someone you have not wanted to see nor extinguish the flames of in nearly a month.Â
He stands before you, 20 paces ahead. A broken bottle in his hand as he heaves, shoulders rising and falling with the passion of ten thousand suns. The look of murder in his eyes as he stares down at a maid, her form on the ground. Bowing with as much might as she can possess, looking for any exit possible. Few other maids stand around the room, keeping their heads low, avoiding any eye contact possible.Â
Though he looks like a mad manâ mayhaps a god of war himself, not a single hair is out of place on his head. He is still the picture of sovereignty. And though your breath spikes, you find that you are not afraid.Â
What a strange feeling it is.
The creak of the door sends single to him, has him whipping his head to face you. Anger etched into his features, a new target befalling his sight.
You stand tall, moving towards him. You will rise to the position given to you, even if it shall mean your inevitable downfall. As long as the new staff are safe.
Only, when he looks to you, no wrath is found. No anger or deceit. The second his eyes meet your own, his expression drops along with the bottle in his hands. More glass littering the floor in its wake.Â
His eyes soften, his lips turning from a sneer into a gentle frown. His shoulders automatically lower, and suddenly it appears that there is no one else in the room. His legs move automatically, carrying themselves to you with such a hurried pace you would have thought he had seen a long lost friend.Â
Oddly, this scares you more than when he was angered.Â
You start into a bow, âPrince Kim, Iâve come in place ofââÂ
His arms wrap themselves around you before you can speak another word. Pulling you in, wrapping you into his scent as you're pressed against his sturdy chest. Strong arms keep you in place as he tries to make his body become one with your own.Â
His face buries itself into the crook of your neck, one hand raising to tie itself in your hair. It forces you to stay in place, stay attached to him just the way he wants you to be. Allows him to inhale, breathing in all of you. Finally delving into the scent that he has been craving.
Your eyes only widen, hands staying firm at your side in shock. Heart beginning to race, head becoming lost in the soaps that only a member of a family could possibly own.Â
Youâre not sure what to do. How to behave. As far as you are concerned or aware, this is something that no other has had happen before. At least not so openly. Not so brazenly in front of a myriad of other people.Â
But, it seems to calm him. To placate him in a way youâre not sure anyone could explain.Â
You try to make a small twisting motion with your hand, try to urge everyone else to leave while they have the chance.Â
They seem to take it, exiting the room as fast as possible.Â
Youâre sure word of this will spread throughout the castle quickly. You hope the consequences will not be dire.Â
âPrince Kimââ You begin to speak after everyone has cleared out, after he holds you for what feels like a lifetime. You canât find it in you to want him to pull away, no matter how embarrassing this seems.Â
âShh,â He quickly silences you with a gentle press of his lips to your pulse, âLet me stay like this for a moment.âÂ
You are unable to move. Unable to breathe after he kisses you. War could begin in that very moment and youâre not sure you would have noticed in the slightest. You are stunned into obeying his whim as he simply inhales and exhales.Â
The umber in his voice only comes after a millennia, after his shoulders have completely sagged. After all the tension is removed from his body.Â
âYou didnât respond to my letters.â He still doesnât pull away, his grip on your hair tightening a fraction.Â
You pause.
âIâŚI didnât know where to send them.â You lie and his hand loosens. The correct answer.Â
âMy study. Put them under the door to my study.â He instructs like a king would.Â
Youâre not sure why the tone of his voice sends shocks to your gut. Pooling into something you only find in your dreams.
âBut if someone were to see themââÂ
âLet them.â Mumbles in your ear to you and you alone, a growl practically spiking through his voice, âI want them to know.âÂ
Oh. This is new. This is definitely new. This is not the same way you felt with the stable boy years ago. This has become something entirely alienating. A completely different beast. You know that now as his baritone voice sends waves straight through your gut.Â
You simply nod in reply, your mouth unwilling to say anything back. The arm around your lower back grows more firm.
âTell me where you will put your replies.â He commands into your ear.Â
âUnder the door to your study.â Your reply is automatic, years of answering to the kingdom evident in your tone.Â
He sighs, unfurling his fingers from your locks to gently pet the top of your head, âGood girl.â
He presses a kiss to your forehead, soft as he touches you.
âGood lamb.â
You sigh, fingers deftly searching through your wardrobe for just a single pair of underwear. But once again, you turn up empty. It seems like every day that passes, another pair disappears without your knowledge.Â
Perhaps one of the new girls is causing a fuss, messing up the laundry for everyone else.Â
That is the only logical solution, at least.Â
But logic doesnât seem to make much sense at all anymore. You couldnât hope to understand why few of your other belongings have come up indignant as well.Â
Your favourite perfume, one of your stuffed animals, even your toothbrush! All have magically vanished from thin air over the course of the last week.Â
It is too bad that you havenât had the time to think about it, either. Preparations for the ball have been raging throughout the palace. Everyone has been on their toes, unwilling to face the wrath of the planners as they try to make everything perfect.Â
You have had not one moment alone to think, either swept up in cleaning, decorating, or well⌠recently you and the prince have been going on walks through the garden at night. Though that doesnât matter much. It doesnât mean anythingâ just another thing he made you promise to. Claiming he wishes to spend as much time with you as he can.Â
His recent fixation is trying to get you to call him by his true name.Â
You would never dare, nothing is more inappropriate than such a title. It is something only his most beloved is meant to call him, and that person is certainly not you.
You try to force any thoughts of him out of your head, though it is clearly a fruitless endeavour. Especially with the dream you had the night prior.Â
His hands finding themselves between your legs, touching you in a way no other has.Â
You flush, quickly shaking all thoughts of the night away.Â
The tea! Your tea, yes. A prescription from the doctor for this very thing.
More often than not, you wake to find a mess between your thighs. Sticky arousal between them in a perverse fashion. The region sensitive and overstimulated combined with a mess of dreams. More sexual in nature than ever before.
Embarrassed, you had turned to the only person you could trust. The palace staffâs doctor.Â
She had told you it was normalâ that you were simply having what she described as âwet-dreamsâ. The title alone made you feel embarrassed.
Nevertheless, she prescribed you a tea to help calm your nerves. It was meant to be passifying in nature, calming any lush desires you may have beginning to form.Â
You were not sure how it functioned, however you trusted her. Found that it quelled whatever fire burned inside of your heart for the time being.Â
Perhaps just a new oddity to add to your reality, you suppose.Â
Finally, you find a proper set of undergarments to pull over your legs. Letting out a breath in relief now that you finally have them.Â
Today is going to be busier than the last month combinedâ the ball is tonight. You know for a fact you will be rushed around the palace all day, fixing everything into an acute sense of perfection that only the Kim family is known for.Â
You reach to spray your second favourite perfume across your skin, only to find that the bottle has gone missing as well.
Your hairs stand on edge, a dark pit forming in your stomach.
It is all too strange for you to want to understand.Â
Okay, now youâre sure Annabell must be wrong. She has to be, right? There is no other conclusion possible.Â
The thoughts run through your head as you pace the small confines of your room. Thumb between your lips, biting the skin feverishly. Contemplating what it is exactly that you should do. A heavy box sitting on your bed, a letter laying next to it along with a single lily.
A month ago, you met Prince Kim in the gardens. A month ago you spoke to him all night long. A month ago he brought you flowers. He has been leaving you letters ever since. Three weeks ago he held you in his arms, made you promise to write him back. Made you promise to meet him in the gardens as many nights as you can.Â
But this, you could not accept. You could not possibly think this is real. Why has he gifted you something like this?
A dress lays on your bed. The most gorgeous dress you have ever seen, in fact. Lined with crystals and gems, many layers of tulle poof from the underskirt. It mustâve cost a fortune, but it was not meant for you. It is a dress meant for a princess, not a simple maid of the palace. Not⌠Not someone the prince simply wanted to bed.Â
So why did it lie here, along with a lace mask and a pair of shoes. Why did it come with a note from the Prince, telling you to put it on for tonight's events? Is this why the head maid dismissed you so early?
No. You could not. You will not make a fool of yourself. You do not belong up there, dressed as a princess when you are far from the thing. That is your decision. It will be the one you stick to.
Even as hours tick past on the clock, even as you can hear the night in full swing, you stay locked in your room. Feeling the same as you did when you were a girl locked in the dungeon all those years ago. Helpless, indignant, stubborn.Â
Lost in your thoughts as you try to piece together a puzzle that has several spaces missing. Feelings for the stable boyâ life with him, it would have been easier than this. Youâre sure of it.Â
You allow yourself to imagine what life could have been like if he stayed. It would have been a cosy, peaceful. A straightforward one that didnât leave so many questions in your head. Jungkook was always like that, spoke his mind without leaving anything to be guessed. You adored it, wished you could revel in it now. Wish you could kiss him under the cherry tree once more.
A pounding wakes you from the dream you were just beginning to weave. Loud, angry knuckles against the firm oak of your door startling you to your feet in an instant. Chills running down your spine as if your body already knew who was behind it.Â
You wait too long to reply, another series of rapts following in quick succession. Youâre in trouble. Youâve angered the prince in a way youâre not sure youâll be able to find your way out of, but you have no choice. He knows your inside. You know you must face him. You must be brave.
Right before another series of knocks can echo against the walls, you finally pull the door open.Â
There stands the man you knew would be there all along, sculpted like the lord had made him himself. You wish you could behold him properly, to stare at his beauty in the suit specially prepared for this night. One he asked your opinion of several times during its construction.
But you are unable to, not when his shoulders heave like a bull planning its charge. Not when his eyes are narrowed into a glare that enters your soul without consequence. Never before had you felt his anger directed at you.Â
The future king would be a fearsome thing.Â
âIt appears you are not dead.â He states, cold and detached in a way you have never heard before. It makes you feel small, feel weak. Though by now, you know he wants an answer. He will not accept the lack of one from you anymore.Â
You shift uncomfortably on your feet, âI suppose notâŚâÂ
âThen what do you suppose.â You flinch. Youâre not sure.
âIâ Prince KimâŚâÂ
âTaehyung.â He interjects, though you ignore him. Only his future wife is meant to call him by that name.
âPrince Kim, I could not possibly accept this gift. You have to understand.â The way he looks at you makes you want to shrink. To appear as small as possible to placate the lion youâve wondered into the den of.Â
âI do not. You are to accept any gift I am to give you.â He is stern as if lecturing the ground beneath him. He looks massive in your tiny room, taking up much more space than you wish to grant him.
You begin to grow frustrated, annoyed. Does he have no sanity? Does he really think it is okay to play with the hearts of women so carelessly? It is disgusting. Repulsive even! You do not deserve anything like this. You begin to grow tense, grow firm like a wolf cornered. Ready to lash out with no remorse.Â
That is what you are, anyway. A cornered animal with no hope to escape.Â
âI wonât.â You raise your shoulders, stand taller and stare him straight in the eyes. If this will have you sent to the axe then so be it.Â
He grows just as tense in reply, his lips forming a sneer as he takes a step closer towards you.Â
Never before has Prince Kim been opposed like this before, youâre sure of it. The way his irises become darker is proof.Â
âAnd why is that, lamb?â He mocks, and the fire inside of you only begins to glow brighter Of course, youâre just the lamb that's wandered into the lion's den. The lamb being prepared for meal.Â
Steam clouds around your head, jaw becoming tense as you try to hold back your rage. Rage for your mother, rage for the life she was taunted into the same way the prince is trying to do to you now.
âI will not become another woman you bed and then lay waste to!â You practically shout, unable to hold back your emotions anymore.Â
His nostrils flare, âExcuse me?âÂ
âYou heard my words.â You state back, indignant, âI will not be an idiot. I will not become another woman who you use for your own pleasures!â
You hear him scoff, head turning away from you for the first time as he looks around your room.Â
âYou think that little of me?â His eyes make their way back to you, his face having the expression of somewhat⌠hurt?Â
Suddenly, youâre unsure. You feel stupid all over again though youâre not entirely conscious as to why. You hurt him? How could you possibly hurt the most powerful person in the country?Â
You falter in your stance, and it is obvious that he takes notice. Uses it to his advantage as he takes another step closer, makes his hand find your own. His thumb brushing soothingly over the knuckle. His hands are always so soft.Â
âWhat else am I meant to think? Iâve heard the stories, Prince Kim.â Where once was fire lays blistering coals. Hot to the touch yet unyielding in their passion. The air in the room has changed in much the same way.
âTell me of them.â He asks you, his voice now gentle, soft.Â
It is strange, the complete change heâs had since first entering your room. Has your brain going a little haywire. Especially with the way he stares at your hands. Like they could be locked forever.Â
âIâŚâ You feel flush, embarrassed to mutter the words in front of the prince, âIâve heard you seduce women⌠princesses, noblemenâs daughters, maids⌠the lot. Then you abandon them the next morning with your seed in their core and a knife in their heart.âÂ
You keep your eyes to your feet, face feeling hot by repeating the words of your friend. You refuse to look at him, you cannot take the embarrassment.Â
A light chuckle leaves his lips, a hand coming up to attempt to muffle them, âSorry, sorry.â He shakes his head, a playful glint in his eyes. Youâre baring your soul to him! How dare he laugh!Â
He coughs to muffle the rest of the sound, returning to the moment, âI apologise. I just had the realisation. Youâre jealous of them, arenât you lamb?âÂ
A mess of flutters takes up your stomach, your shoulders raising in alarm. Your lips open to try and form words, to try and deny the allegations made your way, yet you are entirely unable.Â
Especially with the way he moves closer, crowds your space with such ease. Leads close to you, whispers words in your ear, voice lower than before.Â
âYou wish it to just be you I lay with, is that so?â You can practically hear the smile in his voice as another, more erotic chill finds its way down your spine.Â
âTh-That isnâtââ You try to speak, but your voice sounds as light as air. He moves closer, arm carrying itself around your back, pulling you flush against him as he speaks sinful words. Words only for you.Â
âAhâŚâ He sighs in relief, lips practically touching your ear once youâre finally connected to him, âYou donât like it when I go fuck your friends then come to spend my nights talking to you⌠writing to you⌠touching myself to the thought of you.âÂ
You cannot take it. You cannot take this, take him. Your head is spinning, clouding with the drug known as Prince Kim. Your knees feel weak, your limbs feel all too heavy. How can someone so pretty say such sinful words without a second thought. Itâs too much. Far more than your poor little heart can take.
Your arms come up, press as firm as they can against his chest despite how weak they feel.
âMmmâŚ?â He asks in response, pulling back to look down on your face. Mock confusion spread across his features. He takes a step back, pretending to look you up and down. Like he is just playing a game of poker while all of your tells are as clear as day.Â
âOr is that not what you wish?â He asks, head tilted to the side like a confused puppy, âYou would like things to remain the same?â He smiles, drawing conclusions all on his own.Â
He pauses, waits for you to say something, anything before continuing. But you do not, so he will keep playing this game by himself.Â
âThen I shall go find someone to keep me company for the night. Mmm..â He taps his chin in contemplation, turning on his heels, meanwhile panic and dread fills every facet of your being, âWhat were those ones youâre friends with again? Celley? That pretty blonde? Oh, or maybe Annabell. Iâm sure she would be prepared to go for a second round.âÂ
What? What? No, No! What is he talking about? Why is he starting to walk away?! Wait, Annabell, second time?! She has before?!Â
Oh heavens, oh gods.Â
âAnyway, I'll be sure to write to you after. Have a good night, dream of me.â You begin to hyperventilate as he takes one step out the door. No, he canât leave. You donât want him to. You donât want him to be with anybody else. You canât let it happen. You canât afford such a thing! Ever! That is not where he is meant to be!Â
Your body carries you before your mind does. Hand slipping out, gripping onto the back of his coat with all of the strength you can muster. Feet planted firm in your room, doing everything in your power to not let him leave. Â
It is really too bad you do not see the sick smile that forms on his lips. Maybe then the pieces of the puzzle would have finally clicked in place.Â
Instead he only tilts his head backwards, painting a complexion of boredom.
âN-No! I donât want that!â You finally manage to stutter out, knuckles turning white with the strength you hold onto him. Afraid if you let go in the slightest he will pull away and disappear forever. âI donât want you to be with other women!â
The silence that follows your confession feels a mile long.Â
âThen go put on the dress.â Out of any response there could be, that certainly was not the one you were anticipating.Â
âWhatâŚ?âÂ
His chin tilts in the direction of it, urging you on, âIf that is the truth, then go put on the dress.âÂ
âIâŚâ You hesitate for only a moment, but scramble to motion once the prince turns to leave once again.Â
You make quick paces to your bed, keeping your back to him. You feel his eyes on your back, intent on giving you no privacy to ensure you follow through on his order.Â
In fact, all he does is close the door behind you. Making sure no one will be able to see in. No one will be able to watch you save for him.Â
You slowly peel off the cotton of your nightgown, trying to appear brave even though his eyes are trained on your form. Even if your slip still remains on, you have never been this uncovered in front of a man before. You feel entirely bare.Â
You do not look at him as you finally find your way through the tool, slipping the garment over your head with struggle, yet his face is practically predatory.Â
You donât know his plans, or what he wishes to gain. You never do.Â
As the fabric settles over your hips, half of you wants to question how the size is perfect, but you refrain. Too embarrassed by everything else to even consider it an option. Your hands reach behind you to attempt to lace up the back on your own, yet another pair are already present in their place.
When did he get so close? How did he get so close without you hearing a thing? Your heartbeat must be the only sound in your ears, that must be it.Â
His fingers work down your spine, tightening the dress so it fits you perfectly. Tying it off with skill you did not know he had. You feel his breath on the back of your neck. A fire begins to grow in your core.Â
âI was going to present you to my father tonight.â He admits, placing a gentle kiss to the base of your neck, âThe ball was meant to find my bride.âÂ
âOh.â Those are the only words you can say when he is so close, arms enclosing around your waist. Pulling your back flush with his chest.Â
Only words you can manage at the revelation.
âImagine his disappointment, more so my own when the girl I had been speaking to him about did not show.â He grunts, almost as if it hurt him. Guiding your body to stand in front of the full mirror in your room. Askingâ telling you to look at yourself.Â
The sight is strange, yet incredible. The crown prince of the entire nation standing in your bedroom, in the maids quarters. Surrounded by squalor and chaos. Arms wrapped around a maid dressed as if she could be a queen.Â
You look up at him to the best of your ability, regret plastered across your features, âPrince KimââÂ
âTaehyung.âÂ
â--Iâm so sorry.â He does not look you in the eyes. They stay trained ahead, not straying once from the mirror. One hand rubbing small circles into the fabric covering your stomach, the other sliding to your waist.
He touches you without care, without reason. Feeling you against him for all that it is worth.Â
âActions have consequences, that is all. They can come later.â He states plainly, âFor now I just wish to indulge in you.â
He brings his face down, placing it right next to yours. His hand rises, making your chin face the mirror as well.Â
He forces you to make eye contact with him through it, forces you to understand each of his words clearly.Â
âYouâll let me do that, wonât you?âÂ
You take a deep breath, gulping down all the air you can manage. You donât think youâve wanted anything more.Â
With no more than a nod, his lips are on yours.Â
Spinning you around, pressing your back against the mirror. His hands cupping your cheeks with such intensity you fear they may become etched into your skin forever. Keeping your lips closed against his own.Â
His body cages you in, pressing entirely against you. Forming against you in perfect harmony, feeling two souls become one. Feeling each other fully for the first timeâ no pretence or public eye in the way to stop it.Â
His teeth nip at your lower lip, biting in a way that has you opening them in pain. He takes the opportunity to lick his way inside, somehow pushing even closer to your body.Â
Something hard presses against you and the discovery has your knees wishing to collapse.Â
The prince canât possibly be this big. He simply canât.
The kiss has you reeling, unsure of anything. Unsure of what to do at all. It is nothing like your first kiss under the cherry tree with Jungkook. That was soft and sweet, docile as two people discover something new.
This, this is nothing of the sort. It is hungry. It is a beast that has been starved, finally getting its first meal. It is intoxicating. It is needy and desperate in a way that has your fingers trying to press themselves even deeper into the glass. It has your breath being robbed. Your lifeforce wilts away to satisfy only the prince.Â
The groan he lets out as you finally give into him, finally allow him to take control of the kiss as arousal pools in your gut. It is one of the most deadly sirenâs calls you think youâve ever heard. One that would have any woman throwing themselves overboard for just a taste.Â
âFinally,â He grunts, pulling no more than a millilitre away from your lips, wetness still connecting them, âMy whole life Iâve been waiting for you.â He mumbles, hungrily connecting his mouth back to your own.Â
Before you know it, youâre lost in the man once again. Allowing him to move you, to guide you to your bed without withdrawing from you once. Tangling your fingers into his hair, trying to make sure he doesnât pull away. Making you drunk off of his taste, off of him.Â
When he kisses you like this, youâre not sure youâll ever be able to live without him.Â
Your knees hit the frame of your bed and all of a sudden you're falling backwards onto its plush lining. Panting, trying to regain some of the air he stole from you.
For the first time youâre able to look up at him, to discover the mess that he has become. Cheeks red, lips swollen. Eyes dark and twisted with lust. Hair ruffled messily from where your fingers laid. Shoulders rising and falling with effort as he catches his breath as well.Â
He looks gorgeous and you canât help yourself hoping this will be only a sight for you forever.Â
He leans down, pecking your lips once more, âI couldnât stop myself from imagining this. Since the moment I placed an order for your dress.âÂ
He huffs, dropping to his knees in front of you. You sit up on your elbows, face twisted into confusion as you look down at him.Â
God. It is too dangerous to look at him right now. You know that as another wave of heat runs straight to your core.
âPushing up the future queen's skirt.â He groans, hands gaining purchase on your hips, pulling you down so your waist sits at the edge of the bed, âLetting myself have a taste of her while everyone else at the party danced.âÂ
O-Oh. Oh. He sees you as, oh god.Â
His fingers bunch in the material of your skirt, drawing in a shaky inhale as he holds onto any drop of sanity left.Â
When he sees no hesitation from you, he slowly begins to push the material up your legs. Eyes trained on your own, looking to you for any sign of discomfort.Â
âHave her come undone on my tongue while no else was the wiser.â He groans as he finally comes face to face with your panty covered core.Â
Your brain moves at a snail's pace, trying to keep up with every tiny movement the prince makes. Trying to process his words while your head becomes fuzzy with your own arousal.Â
You feel like mush, so pliable in his grip.
His large hands slowly begin to part your thighs, to look at what he has been craving for so long when your brain catches up with you, embarrassment overcoming your being.Â
âY-You canât! I-it is dirty to do such a thing.â At least, that is what you had been taught. Though, the look in his eyes and the growl from his throat tells you the opposite.
âYou could never be dirty. No part of you could ever be.â The sound he lets out is more akin to an animal than anything else, and suddenly you feel like a schoolgirl. Flustered and embarrassed beyond anything else.Â
The muscles of your thighs untense, the look on your face blushed and biting.Â
âYou will let me?â He asks again, and despite your embarrassment, you nod. He is going to be king⌠his word is rule afterall. He wishes it, so it will happen. You could not be more pleased to oblige.Â
His grip on your thighs is more firm than before, blunt nails digging into soft flesh as he pries your legs apart. He lets a groan resonate from the back of his throat at the sight. Panties sticking to your center, wetness pooling just behind causing the material to almost become transparent before him.Â
You did not know it was possible for a man to have such an effect on you.Â
Without a second thought, he pushes the material down your thighs. His tongue licking a long stripe up your cunt, savouring the flavour for every cent it is worth.Â
He moans at the taste, not wasting a second before he dives back in. Lapping against you like it is his last meal.Â
A mewl leaves your lips, too many feelings crossing you at once for any of them to be worth anything.Â
Embarrassment, shame, fear all vanish the moment his lips wrap around your clit, sucking against the small bundle of nerves in a manner that has your back arching against the bed. Fingertips digging into the sheets to find a second lease on life.Â
You try to look down at him, to find him between all of your small pants of pleasure, however he is gone. Disappearing until the layers of fabric while he brings you sensations you never thought were possible.Â
His tongue moves like it is made to pleasure only you. Taking turns flicking your clit to lowering into your center. Licking up any bit of arousal he can make out. Trailing up once again to press flat against the bundle of nerves.
All of it has your legs kicking, your breath melting.Â
He is not quiet either, letting you know exactly how much he adores this. Adores the feeling of your thighs wrapped tight around his head. Adores every little sound and reaction you have to give him. Adores the taste of you on his tongue. It was only meant for him.
It feels like he has been wishing to do this far longer than you would ever know. Consuming you whole from the inside out. Causing you to become addicted, to desire him just as much as he carnally craves you.
His nails dig into the flesh of your thighs as your hips begin to rock against his face, seeking out every ounce of pleasure that he is willing to give you. Your adorable mewls and whines grow louder, peaking every time he sucks on your clit.Â
A coil has begun to form in your gut, feeling as though it could snap at any second. You wish you could see him, to look at his face and see the crazed gleam in his eyes. Observe the exact look on his face as he licks your cunt.Â
You try to picture it. Try to imagine the way he would look up at you from between your legs. The dark umber his eyes would become, the gentle circles he would rub into your thigh as you finally make eye contact.Â
Your walls clench around his tongue, sending a new waves of whines out of your mouth. He somehow moves faster, more precisely with every movement. Like he is able to hone in on the exact things that have your thighs quivering.Â
His tongue moves up, takes your small, worn clit into his mouth. Alternating between sucking against it, flicking at it, and pressing against it firm with the flat of his tongue.Â
Without warning, nor any reprise, one of his thick fingers is thrust into your wet heat. Filling you in a way you have never been able to do to yourself. Stretching you. And all of a sudden, youâre flying off the edge of a precipice.
âPrince Kim!â Your back arches off of the bed, head thrown back against the mattress as you let out a moan. Your hips jolt, cunt squeezing around his fingers, heels digging into the floor as you come undone before him.Â
He works you through it with ease and grace, finger slowly thrusting in and out. Tongue firmly planted against your clit to ride you through your high.Â
It would not be your last of the night. He must be gentle.Â
Slowly, you relax against the bed, chest heaving from exertion. He pulls away from you, standing to full height before leaning over your shaking form.Â
Your arousal coats his face, a sheen from his lips and chin evident against the soft yellow glow of the room. He looks down at you, concern and adoration written across his features. Though in his eyes, it appears that the beast has yet to be quelled.Â
He leans down, pressing a gentle kiss to your lips. You taste yourself against them.Â
âYou are delicious. I wish to eat you every night until I die.â He mumbles against your lips, his knee sliding between your legs. Muscle pressing against your swollen cunt.Â
You try to flinch away, yet the hand on your hip keeps you in place.Â
He will not have you running away.Â
Not now.Â
Your cheeks flush at his words, wide eyes looking up at him like he is all that matters.Â
He is.Â
He presses his knee further against your pussy while his lips trail down the column of your neck. Urging you towards the headboard with no words spoken until your head is against the pillows.Â
Your arms wind their way around his neck, keeping him in place, âI-if we were married, I would let you.â You manage to speak, your voice shaky.
He only smiles in reply. Fingers digging deeper into your waist as if he is holding himself back.
âThen we shall call this practice for our wedding night.â He smiles, sitting back on his heels.Â
Marriage, wedding night. You allow the thought to ghost through your mind, willing it to be reality.Â
He smiles down at you, taking note in the way you seem to gleam at the idea. A small chuckle leaves his lips, you really are too cute for your own good.Â
His voice is no more than a whisper, forcing you to stay enrapt, âYou will let me, right?â He asks, eyes glancing down to where his pants strain against his hips, âI wish to make love to my future wife.â
Your mouth practically waters at the sight, his hard cock pressed taught against the expensive material. You swear there may even be a wet spot where his cum has leaked through.Â
Your pussy clenches, wanting nothing more for him to find his way inside. For him to claim you for himself. Destroy you so no other man can have you in the same way.
You struggle against yourself for no more than a moment, but the way his hand reaches down, grips at his cock. Brushes his thumb over the surface has you moaning in want.Â
âPlease.âÂ
He smiles, the motion following swift. All at once his hands unbutton his pants, pushing the material down his thighs just enough for his cock to spring free. He groans at the feeling, thick length hitting his stomach. Pretty pre-cum dripping down the side.
Your eyes go wide. If you imagined him to be large before, seeing it now looked impossible. He is thick, long. Far too big to ever hope to fit inside of you.Â
But the desperate groan in his voice, the hungry look in his eyes only has you spreading your legs. Wishing nothing more than for him to destroy you.
One hand wraps around the base as he moves closer, the other forcing the skirt of your dress as high as it will allow. He makes space for himself in between your thighs, slotting himself in. Ready to do what he has been waiting years for.Â
Not yet.
He sees the hesitation in your eyes, the worry. So he leans down, planting a gentle, soothing kiss to your lips. One filled with years of time behind it.Â
He knows he must be careful with you. Knows all of his patience will have been worth it when he is finally able to take your virginity.Â
âWill it hurt?â You as quietly, wrapping your arms around his shoulders to keep him close. You find comfort in him. Find a sense of safety within his eyes.Â
He nods in response, âOnly for a little while, I promise.â He mumbles against your lips, placing a soft kiss against them once more.Â
He slowly rubs the fat head between your folds, coating himself in your arousal. Your hips buck slightly in response, and he canât help but smirk.Â
So sensitive. So ready for him.Â
As much as he wants to be rough, he canât. He canât scare you away just yet.Â
He looks into your eyes once more, âReady?â He asks, giving you one final chance to back out. You only nod your head, pulling him close, hiding your face in his neck.Â
His head catches on your opening with the final drag of his length through your lips. His hands practically shake in excitement, as he guides himself inside. Letting go only once the tip is buried within your walls.Â
He feels your teeth sink into his coat, your body burning with the stretch of him. He only has the first inch inside, yet you think it is more than you could possibly take.Â
A choked cry leaves your lips as he continues to slowly thrust inside. Your arms cling to him as tight as possible. Tears prick in the corner of your eyes as he fills you, forming your entire body just around him. Just around his cock.Â
He pauses only once half of his cock is buried in your needy cunt. You feel his hand come up to caress your cheek, to bring you back down to reality from the pain you feel digging at your core. Trying to bring you some sense of comfort.Â
You pull back from his shoulder to look him in the eyes, expecting to see them soft. Filled with concern. Though there is nothing of the sort there.Â
Behind his bangs is only the look of pure insanity.Â
Though he tries to be compassionate, he really does.
âAre you doing okay?â His voice is strangled, coming out in only desperate cracks. He shakes, wanting nothing more than to fuck himself inside. Fuck himself deeper and deeper, until your cunt is shaped for his cock alone.
But he holds restraint. Just enough.
The way he looks at you, the way he speaks has a wave of pleasure rushing through your skin. Your walls clamp around him, tightening even more.Â
He is falling apart before you, because of you.Â
He has gone mad because of you.
The feeling only makes you want to urge him on. See just how far the prince can fall.
You nod your head, looking at him with all the affections in the world, âDonât stop.âÂ
He groans at your words, mind losing itself as he snaps his hips forward, forcing his cock inside until his hips are firm against your own. Teeth digging into the fragile skin of your neck.
You cry out in pain, your walls squeezing around him in shock. Pain coursing through your entire system as you are filled to the brim. Walls stretched as wide as humanly possible. The head of cock so deep inside you swear you can feel it in your lungs.Â
âShit.â He groans, mouth falling open, âThis pretty thing is wrapped around me so tight, lamb. So fucking tight I canât think.âÂ
He slowly tries to move his hips, though you only shout in response. Your legs wrap around his back, doing their utmost to keep him in place.
âHurts!â You whine, shaking your head quickly.Â
Fucking hell. What is the point of a pussy as sweet as your own if he canât use it properly?
His hand moves between your legs, growl of impatience slipping past his lips as his fingers find your clit. They work with urgency, with need. Rubbing tight circles into it, trying to get you to feel the same pleasure he does.
You whine, overstimulated. Shots fired in all directions leaving you messy and confused.Â
With every circle, a mewl sounds from your throat. Slowly your legs behind him loosen, the pain from before mixing with pleasure to become something wonderful. Something that has you whimpering for him to not stop.Â
âSee?â He grunts, slowly slipping out of your heat until only the tip remains, âWe were made for each other.âÂ
He forces his cock back inside, fucking you open just for him. Only ever for him.Â
Your nails dig into his back, heels digging into the mattress as you moan for him. As your cunt becomes addicted to the feeling of him filling you so perfectly. Addicted to everything he has to offer.
He moves too fast, too hard for you to even hope to keep up with. Hips pistoning into you, forcing you to take everything he has to give and more. Forcing you to be the perfect little doll for him, give him all the pleasure he can want and more. White mixing with red around the base of his cock.
Your back arches off the mattress to try and get closer to him, to try and keep up with him in any hope of the sentiment. Hips trying their best to keep him as close and as deep as possible, knowing they crave one thing and one thing alone.
âPrince Kim!â You moan, yet he growls in response. A sharp slap to your thigh sounds throughout the room as his hips pause, fingers removing themselves from your clit.Â
âThat isnât my name to you anymore.â His voice is low, menacing in your ear. One more poke of the bear and you will be punished. âTaeâHyung.âÂ
He emphasises the words with a sharp thrust of his hips, one that brushes against the bundle inside of you. One that leaves you crying out for him. Clinging on to him.Â
âSay it.â He grunts, animalistic and desperate. Yet youâre too lost in yourself to realise how debauched heâs become. Looking less and less like a man, more like a demon come to lay waste to your soul.Â
That is close enough to the truth, anyway.
âSay it until it becomes the only word you know. Every question I ask, every time I fuck myself into this sweet little cunt. Your only reply should be my name.â He grabs your chin, forcing you to stare at him.Â
Your fucked out little features as you bob your head in compliance.
âI-Iâ You swallow, trying to understand his words as he pounds away at your core, âI understand!âÂ
He smiles, almost proud of the work he has done today.
His hips only move impossibly faster, impossibly harder in a way that has that knot in your gut tightening once more.Â
âWeâll start simple then. What is my name?â He asks, angling his hips to press against your sweet spot with ever slight movement. Breathe panting, his mind falling deeper and deeper into the thralls of your body.Â
âP-Prinââ You stop yourself, a pinch coming down on your skin, âTaehyung!âÂ
He groans, almost coming undone as he hears your name fall from your lips for the very first time. The pretty sound your voice makes with every letter.Â
It could be the only thing he hears for the rest of his life.
âWho are you going to marry?âÂ
You whine, your head thrashing around slightly. He smiles. You must really enjoy the idea of that, huh?
âT-Taehyung!â You manage to stutter out again, feeling your release coming closer and closer as the seconds pass by.Â
âWho is the man you have fallen for?â The answer to the question is easy, especially when he is fucking into you like youâre the only woman that matters. Nothing matters except for him.Â
âTaehyung!â Your brain is too fuzzy to process anything else. Anything other than the way his cock fills you. Anything other than the one word he told you is your gospel.Â
âWho is the boy that kissed you under the cherry tree?â You donât even know anymore.Â
Does any man exist beside Taehyung anyway? You doubt it.
âTaehyung!â He smiles into your neck.Â
âWho was the boy that was going to have you killed? That saved your life?â His words donât process through your ears, yet you know what you are meant to say anyway.
âTaehyung!â He groans, his hips stuttering, losing their pace ever so slightly.Â
âWho do you belong to?âÂ
âTaehyung!â You whine, your thighs shaking. The coil so tight you think you may just die if it doesnât come undone in this very moment.Â
His breath is quiet, only a rough whisper in your ear, âCum.âÂ
Just as your king commands, you fall apart around him. White dots in the corner of your eyes as you clamp down around him, your legs pulling him close. A cry of his name leaving your lungs as if it is the very air you breathe.Â
You feel him paint the inside of your walls white, his hips stutteringâ fucking himself as deep into you as he could possibly manage. If you had any sense left in your little head you would have told him to pull out, yet your brain is so high. Filled with pleasure that only Taehyung can provide.Â
Waves of arousal crash around you as he slows his hips, ensuring that you ride out your orgasm to its fullest before pulling away. You wish he could stay buried inside of you, just like that. Yet you doubt that would be very wise.Â
âWas that good for you, little lamb?â He asks, slowly helping you into a sit. Youâre not sure how to properly answerâ mouth feeling dry. Your head has not yet come crashing back down, though that is probably a good thing.Â
Facing reality is too scary right now. Especially when Taehyung is so warm. So caring as he removes your dress. Slips your nightgown back over your soiled body.Â
âVeryâŚâ You nod, unable to take your eyes off of him as he moves around the bed. Tucking himself back into his pants, removing his shirt and dress-coat. Placing them over the back of a chair. Neatly hanging the dress on a hook, taking care that it is not damaged in any way.
Your arms find themselves reaching out to him, trying to pull him closer to you. He smiles once he takes notice.
âWould you like me to stay the night?â It is clear he was already planning on it, but hearing the words make you smile oh-so bright.Â
âYes, please.â You nod quickly, eyes already feeling tired. You did not know how he had so much energy, but you canât find it in yourself to care. Right now he is meant to be in your bed, arms around you. In fact, you become annoyed that he isnât already.Â
âAlright.â He smiles, slipping next to your form. Wrapping his arms around you, pulling you as close as possible.
You feel so safe. So warm with him. So protected that you canât stop yourself from falling asleep.
âGoodnight my lamb.â
The Kim Empire.Â
His home, his family, his livelihood all wrapped up in those three little words.
Yet, the only thoughts that seem to brandish his mind since the young age of 15 are about you.Â
When you first stumbled in front of him, carrying a tray of tea. Spilling it all over his shoes. That quick curse that left your lips before looking up at him. The wide, doelike vision you had once recognition had set in. One the realisation of error set into your bones.
He will never forget the way his heart began to race in that very moment. The way he felt a cloth of sickness overcome his whole body at the mere sight of you. Looking so serendipitous below him.
At first he thought it was hate, how silly he had been back then. Ah, the way he sent you to be killed was just funny to him now. He is grateful he talked to his mother before your execution date. Spilling his soul to her, detailing how he could not seem to remove you from his brain.
Ah, he was lucky he managed to get the letter to the executioner in time. What a pity that would be if he couldnât. Then he wouldnât have been able to lay next to you now. Wouldnât be able to play with your hair, caress you like he pleases.Â
It is truly too bad that was not his only trial on the road towards you. It was really a pity he had to send Jungkook away. Taehyung quite liked the kid. He was fun to play with and wouldnât shy away from his games.Â
But he just had to try and seduce you. Poor thing. You really were too innocent at the time. More than eager to kiss him for no reason. To give him even a peace of your heart that was meant for Taehyung alone.
He remembers as clear as day, the rage he felt as he watched your soft lips press against another mans. How terribly he wanted to go out and strike Jungkook with a sword. Of course he didnât though, that would have scared you away. He would have hated that.
He thanks god every day he was really your first kiss, even if you didnât know it.Â
Patiences was the hardest battle of all, and he will admit, he has faltered a few times over the years. Kisses stolen while you sleep, a few of your belongings robbed to keep him satiated. Mayhaps a few trips to your room in the night.Â
But who could blame him? He was a man in love. There was nothing that could stop him when he was so hungry for you.Â
Ah, and then of course his father. He wanted to separate your love as well. A maid could never possibly be suited to be queen, blah blah. He doesnât care. And at least that fight allowed him to hug you for the first time.Â
God. You felt so perfect in his arms, then and now. You have always been meant for this. Meant for him.
If his father plans to keep standing in the way, he will simply have to remove him from the equation. His bonds to the man are as thick as water. He cares more for you than he possibly could anyone else.
Youâve belonged to him since you were born, anyway. If a maid becomes pregnant while working for the castle, her child becomes property of the state. Of the crown. Of him.Â
It only makes sense that you are meant to be with him until death. It is the path lined for you. Your fate since birth.Â
He knows it as his delicate fingers trace over the small patches of blood dirtying the sheets. Evidence of the hours before, of your virginity robbed. Of your promises to him.
You are bound to him by blood after all.
Š all rights reserved to ctrlhope 2019-2024 ; do not copy, plagiarise, or translate.
#taehyung x reader#taehyung smut#bts x reader#bts smut#bts#taehyung#kim taehyung x reader#taehyung x you#taehyung x y/n#bts reactions#bts drabble#bts imagines#bts fanfic#bts oneshot#taehyung fic#kim taehyung#bangtan#bangtan x reader#bangtan smut#yandere taehyung#yandere bts
5K notes
¡
View notes
Note
svt reactions to their shy to intiate sex gf pouncing on them during ovulation week
18+ / mdi
s/o being horny while ovulating
content: smut, established relationship implied, etc.
wc: 576
a/n: this is so real of you anon
masterlist
seungcheol -
shocked for half a second before counting his blessings and going along with it. would never even think of questioning you if you initiated sex, especially not when you were so enthusiastic about it.
jeonghan -
cocky about it. will pull away from your kisses to joke about how irresistible he is and how bad you are at keeping it in your pants. might take advantage of your heightened arousal to tease you throughout your ovulation.
joshua -
he knows you like the back of his hand, so he'll be a little confused but will go along with it to not embarrass you and have you retract your actions. however! he will absolutely make fun of you afterwards, claiming you want him soooo bad.
jun -
won't question it. he's just happy to be there! will literally let you do whatever you want and go along with anything you ask without complaint.
soonyoung -
will keep interrupting your kisses by asking babe babe whats happening what are you doing. so silly you'd have to stop and explain to him that your hormones were going batshit and you needed him to help you get rid of the ache. this would shut him up immediately.
wonwoo -
he'll go along with it for a few seconds before stopping you to ask why the sudden change. will get a tiny bit cocky yet flustered at your reasoning but won't question it further. will have all fun imaginable with your ovulation behavior.
jihoon -
he's usually the type to let you do whatever you want, and this will be no exception. he's a little absent minded sometimes that he probably wouldn't notice a difference between you pouncing him and the other times in which you're a little shier at initiating sex.
seokmin -
he knows your cycle by heart so it won't be hard to figure out these are just your hormones going crazy. will still feel both flattered and flustered by the contrast of your behavior as opposed to usual. won't even know what to do with himself as you jump him lmao.
mingyu -
he's like a light switch all you need to do is say the word and he's suddenly in the mood. won't even have the ability to process what's happening until you're already out of breath lying next to one another.
minghao -
he's probably the type to keep an app that tracks your cycle, so he'll catch on to your ovulation symptoms after a few cycles. can kind of pinpoint during what time of the month your hormones go crazy and will prepare himself to please you accordingly.
seungkwan -
literally freezes bc what the fuck is happening rn. his body is telling him to just let go and let you do whatever you want to him but his brain is screaming what is happening!!!! in the end his body will win and he'll be a huge mess (in a good way) during it all.
vernon -
just hums along as you suddenly jump him. his hands would immediately go to the right places and his body would just let you take charge and do whatever you want. he's never been one to complain when something good presents itself.
chan -
lowkey he's been waiting for this day his whole life. you can take him and do whatever you want to him he'll never object!! will become sickly turned on by how turned on you are, creating a vicious cycle between the two of you.
#seventeen x reader#seventeen fanfic#svt fanfic#svt x reader#seventeen imagine#seventeen oneshot#seventeen#seventeen smut#svt smut#svt reactions#seventeen reactions
1K notes
¡
View notes
Note
Lando smut driveroom after hia dnfđŤ đŤ
đđ§đ đđĄđđŤđđŠđ˛ - đđĄđ đ đŤđ˘đ đŤđđđđđŹ
summary: what goes down in their driverâs room with you after a dnf. content warning: 18+ only. mdni. explicit sexual content. hurt/comfort (in a way). sexual propositions. angry sex (implied). depressed charles. mercedes f1 team slander. sir kink. periods. face-sitting, vaginal sex, masturbation, voyeurism, blowjobs, cunnilingus, shower sex (light or implied). pairing: the grid x fem!reader (1,4,16,44,55,81) genre: drabbles.
from serene: river baby, this oneâs for you xxx we all know what inspired this one lmao !!! oh, i will not be doing extended fics for any of these, they are just quick drabbles as a little writing exercise for me! (okay, okay, okay, fine iâll finish toasty part two i promise it'll be released soon)
â join taglist | requests & feedback | table of contents âť
đŻđđŤđŹđđđŠđŠđđ§, đŚđđą #đ
Youâve never found Maxâs skill for talking endlessly annoying or draining. In fact, you can recall telling him that hearing him eagerly explain about racing or other topics that interest him is attractive, multiple times. However, youâre not sure if you can withstand much more of him rambling through a retelling of every single lap he raced before he had to retire, looking for any possible point where he couldâve done something different to prevent it.Â
The two of you are sitting on his small couch, pressed side to side, and youâre offering small nods of agreement and hums of understanding during his pauses between words that echo in the small private room. His helmet was shoved in a random cubby, his balaclava draped on top of it but, he hasnât made any other progress in taking off his race gear. His gloves are still covering his hands as he fiddles with the straps around his wrists, his race suit and boots still properly secured, the smell of sweat and gasolineâthe scent of man alluring to your noseâthe heat of his body radiating against your side instigating the warmth that floods your cheeks, and the sound of his lisp curling seductively around his speech prompting less than pure thoughts as your heart flutters and thighs press together.
Max is unaware of the sudden twist in your thoughts as he verbally attempts to calculate just exactly where he couldâve improved his outcome, his voice rumbly with an undertone of displeasure, when you cut him off.
âLet me make it better,â you offer.
The Dutch driver cocks his head at you, his expression confused and humored, âHow can you make my DNF better? I do not think you can go back in time andââ
âNo, Max,â you interrupt, teeth tugging at your bottom lip gently, âLet me sit on your face.â
Visibly, you see his breath catch and eyes widen. His mouth opens and closes as he tries to formulate a response, tongue flicking out to dampen his lips as he thinksâbefore his pupils blow large, and he swallows audibly.
âOh,â Max starts, finally tugging his gloves off and tossing them to the floor, then moving to undo the strap of his race suit, âThat would make it better.â
đ§đ¨đŤđŤđ˘đŹ, đĽđđ§đđ¨ #đ
Heâs pacing the small length of the room angrily, ranting about his retirement loudly enough that you know itâs seeping through the thin walls. You stare at him with a slightly concerned gaze, getting slightly annoyed as his race suit tied low on his hips threatens to smack you in the face every time he turns around.Â
Youâre well aware that Lando is quick to anger and brood as he freely makes everyone aware of where the blame needs to be placed. But, the dark and unyielding look in his eyes leads you to believe that heâll be a little too real to the press today and you would hate to have to deal with a simultaneously enraged and ashamed Lando once he realizes what he said. Then, youâll have to comfort him as he overthinks his words and doom scrolls through Twitter to see what people are saying about him. You would like to sleep tonight, so you canât have him embarrass himself today. Thankfully, Landoâs a man, a very simple man at his core.Â
You stand up from the couch and pull off his hoodie that you stole. Lando continues to rage and pace, not aware of your movement. You undo the buttons of your shirt, shrugging it off to stand in your bra and jeans. Lando doesnât notice your state of undress until he spins around to find you topless and shimmying your jeans down your hips.
âUm,â Lando stutters, eyes fixed on your tits, âWhy are your clothes off?â
âGet over here and fuck your anger out,â you command, âSo when you talk to the press, you donât say the stupid shit you're telling me now.â
Lando mumbles and pouts offended as he scrambles to lose his race suit, ââs not stupid shit.â
You roll your eyes and reach out to tug him forward strongly, humming as the length of his body knocks against yours, easily stuffing your hand down his fireproofs and kissing on the meat of his neck, âmhmâIâm sure it isnât.â
đĽđđđĽđđŤđ, đđĄđđŤđĽđđŹ #đđ
The room is silent as Charles blankly stares at the wall, youâre not sure if he is aware of your hand comfortingly scratching along his back. He only offered words of exhaustion and depression as he slipped quietly into his room and curled next to you as he dissociated from his retirement.
Youâve tried everything. You cooed soothingly, you complained about the result, and you even loudly expressed how terrible you think the car and Ferrari are and he didnât say a single word. He simply continued to stare at the wall, his suit and helmet still on, visor down, and expression unreadable. Anxiously, you shifted next to him, not used to experiencing Charles this out of it. And suddenly, the idea came to you. Breaking the silence, you suggested giving him head to relieve his stress. Charles said no. Your brow furrowed perplexed at his denial; heâs never rejected a blowjob before. You took it one step further and offered to let him fuck it out of you (you were previously adamant on the âno sex in the driverâs roomâ rule because sound carries), and you were sure the Monegasque was about to say yes before he shook his head violently like he was forcibly removing the thought, and mumbled something along the lines of, âI donât deserve it.âÂ
That is something you will not let slide. Charles doesnât need to punish himself after heâs already out of the race, but if he wonât allow himself to indulge in you, youâll strongly encourage him to.
âOkay, Charlie,â you whisper, âIf youâre sure.â
He doesnât zone back in until he hears your whimpers seep into the air, snapping his head to look at you. He finds you with one hand tugging at your nipple and your other hand shoved under your skirtâfrom the movement, he can guess that youâre two fingers deep. You hear Charles choke audibly and you canât help but toss your head back and giggle, the laughter turning into a moan of pleasure as your fingers pass over a sensitive spot.
âI-I thinkâmerde,â Charles cuts himself off as he stares at your show, âI think Iâve changed my mind.â
The helmet stays on.
đĄđđŚđ˘đĽđđ¨đ§, đĽđđ°đ˘đŹ #đđ
Youâre unsure if Lewis is even mad about his retirement. The man seems mentally deranged as he laughs gleefully about ending his race early. Understandably, he is complaining about the bottoming of the car and the hell itâs wreaking on his backâso, maybe the joy is justifiable, your man isâŚolder.
The thing is, Lewis switches from rambling about his back pain to complaining about Mercedes and repeating how he canât wait for a change in scenery at Ferrari. In the Mercedes motorhome. Loudly. You know heâs doing it on purpose based on the vengeful look in his eyes. He recalls almost every single moment the team dismissed his critiques and suggestions, every single moment they didnât appear at his podiums, every single moment they thought he wouldnât leave, every single moment they took him for granted. And, Lewis is more than welcome to express his grievancesâbut you would still like him to leave on good terms as Toto did promise you a custom G-Wagon (not that Lewis canât get you one himself; you would just hate to see him ruin his connections).
Lewis also canât help being hot. He sits comfortably splayed out on his couch, a towel tied loosely on his hips from his shower, chest bare as beads of water fall downwards and get caught in the maze of his toned abdomen, his tattoos become art pieces as you appreciate the sight fully. He continues to partake in his amusing one-man conversation as he clasps his chain around his neckâand you break.
âLet me suck your dick,â you blurt out, cheeks flushing, surprised at your own words, â...sir?â
Lewis pauses, raising an eyebrow at you from where youâre leaning on the room door.Â
âWell, I donât know why youâre still standing over there if thatâs what you want. Kneel.â
The sound of your knees hitting the floor sings in the air, âYes, sir.â
đŠđ˘đđŹđđŤđ˘, đ¨đŹđđđŤ #đđ
Oscarâs already sequestered himself away in his room before you were able to intercept him on his way. The mechanics are lowly gossiping about how mad he was when he pulled himself out of the car and they watch after you in fear as you make your way to your boyfriend.
Oscar? Mad? Heâd never take it out on you, thereâs no reason for the mechanics to be worried. Except when you enter the room, the vibes are peculiar. Oscarâs calmly folding his race suit, boots tucked away into their proper place, standing in just his fireproofsâthey compliment his body well, extremely well. He turns to look at you and thereâs a smile on his face as if he hasnât retired from a race. He opens his arms for a hug, and you hesitate for a moment before fulfilling his request. His arms wrap around you warmly and he nuzzles his face into your hair, pulling back briefly to press a kiss on your forehead before tightening his embrace. It feels more like heâs comforting you than youâre comforting him. He walks the two of you backward to his couch and pulls you down to sit on his lap.Â
Somehow, Oscar brightens more, âHi, baby,â he grins, hands moving to fiddle with the hem of your shirt.
âUhh, Iâm sorry about your race?â Your tone of voice is unsure.
âOh,â he laughs dismissively, âIt happens sometimesâit was listed in the job description.â His right hand slips underneath your shirt as he speaks, moving calmly to tug the cups of your bra down underneath your chest, squeezing lightly at the plush weight in his hand.Â
Youâre convinced heâs severely concussed, but it doesnât stop you from arching towards him, your hips rolling forward unconsciously, âUmmmâ âs there a-anything I can do to help?â
Oscarâs hand draws out of your shirt and halts the grind of your hips in a flash, he coos at you, âAw, thatâs so sweet of you to offerâŚlet me fuck your titsâplease?â
What were you going to do, tell him no?
đŹđđ˘đ§đł đŁđŤ, đđđŤđĽđ¨đŹ #đđ
Youâre going to slam your head on the corner of the sink and hope it knocks you out. Youâll do it if means the sounds of Carlosâ whining stop. He forcibly pulled you up on the counter of the sink and told you to stay put as he showered so he could talk it out to you.
Naively, you thought the sound of the shower running would muffle his words and you were wrong. On any other day, you would be fine to support him through his complaints but your period is due to start in a couple of days and the irritation and sore muscles are already affecting you. Originally, you were eager to watch Carlos showerâthatâs a sight plenty of women and men alike would kill you for. Then, the glass fogged with steam depriving you of something to ogle. And, if thereâs one thing a woman is experiencing besides pain, sensitivity, and anger before her period, itâs being horny. You rationalize your thought process as you get undressed; Carlos gets some stress relief and you get to hear moans and grunts of pleasure instead of his huffing, grumbling, and whining.Â
You slide the glass door open and closed as you step in the shower, completely bare except for the necklaces, earrings, and anklet with the #55 charm he gifted you randomly, âCarlos, por favor, be quiet.â
The Spanish manâs mouth is agape as he stares at you, frozen in the middle of his motion of scrubbing soap along his arm, âÂżQuĂŠ?â
You roll your eyes, tugging the soapy cloth out of his hand and setting it on the shower shelf, âThereâs better things you could be doing with your mouth.â
Carlos blinks, returning to the present and sinking to his knees in the too-small shower.Â
He stares up at you with his big, sweet, lust-drenched, brown eyes, his hair a mess from the spray of the shower, and his voice cracking as he speaks, âYes, definitely.â
Š httpsserene2024
#f1 x reader#f1 smut#charles leclerc x reader#max verstappen x reader#lando norris x reade#lewis hamilton x reader#oscar piastri x reader#carlos sainz jr x reader#f1 x black!reader#f1 x female reader#f1 scenario#sereneâs chapters.#sereneâs fave.#ââË・â. series special: formula 1#⥠ŕź*.ďž love interest: op.#⥠ŕź*.ďž love interest: ln.#⥠ŕź*.ďž love interest: mv.#⥠ŕź*.ďž love interest: cl.#⥠ŕź*.ďž love interest: lh.#⥠ŕź*.ďž love interest: csj.
2K notes
¡
View notes
Note
How can you consider yourself any sort of leftist when you defend AI art bullshit? You literally simp for AI techbros and have the gall to pretend you're against big corporations?? Get fucked
I don't "defend" AI art. I think a particular old post of mine that a lot of people tend to read in bad faith must be making the rounds again lmao.
Took me a good while to reply to this because you know what? I decided to make something positive out of this and use this as an opportunity to outline what I ACTUALLY believe about AI art. If anyone seeing this decides to read it in good or bad faith... Welp, your choice I guess.
I have several criticisms of the way the proliferation of AI art generators and LLMs is making a lot of things worse. Some of these are things I have voiced in the past, some of these are things I haven't until now:
Most image and text AI generators are fine-tuned to produce nothing but the most agreeable, generically pretty content slop, pretty much immediately squandering their potential to be used as genuinely interesting artistic tools with anything to offer in terms of a unique aesthetic experience (AI video still manages to look bizarre and interesting but it's getting there too)
In the entertainment industry and a lot of other fields, AI image generation is getting incorporated into production pipelines in ways that lead to the immiseration of working artists, being used to justify either lower wages or straight-up layoffs, and this is something that needs to be fought against. That's why I unconditionally supported the SAG-AFTRA strikes last year and will unconditionally support any collective action to address AI art as a concrete labor issue
In most fields where it's being integrated, AI art is vastly inferior to human artists in any use case where you need anything other than to make a superficially pretty picture really fast. If you need to do anything like ask for revisions or minor corrections, give very specific descriptions of how objects and people are interacting with each other, or just like. generate several pictures of the same thing and have them stay consistent with each other, you NEED human artists and it's preposterous to think they can be replaced by AI.
There is a lot of art on the internet that consists of the most generically pretty, cookie-cutter anime waifu-adjacent slop that has zero artistic or emotional value to either the people seeing it or the person churning it out, and while this certainly was A Thing before the advent of AI art generators, generative AI has made it extremely easy to become the kind of person who churns it out and floods online art spaces with it.
Similarly, LLMs make it extremely easy to generate massive volumes of texts, pages, articles, listicles and what have you that are generic vapid SEO-friendly pap at best and bizzarre nonsense misinformation at worst, drowning useful information in a sea of vapid noise and rendering internet searches increasingly useless.
The way LLMs are being incorporated into customer service and similar services not only, again, encourages further immiseration of customer service workers, but it's also completely useless for most customers.
A very annoyingly vocal part the population of AI art enthusiasts, fanatics and promoters do tend to talk about it in a way that directly or indirectly demeans the merit and skill of human artists and implies that they think of anyone who sees anything worthwile in the process of creation itself rather than the end product as stupid or deluded.
So you can probably tell by now that I don't hold AI art or writing in very high regard. However (and here's the part that'll get me called an AI techbro, or get people telling me that I'm just jealous of REAL artists because I lack the drive to create art of my own, or whatever else) I do have some criticisms of the way people have been responding to it, and have voiced such criticisms in the past.
I think a lot of the opposition to AI art has critstallized around unexamined gut reactions, whipping up a moral panic, and pressure to outwardly display an acceptable level of disdain for it. And in particular I think this climate has made a lot of people very prone to either uncritically entertain and adopt regressive ideas about Intellectual Propety, OR reveal previously held regressive ideas about Intellectual Property that are now suddenly more socially acceptable to express:
(I wanna preface this section by stating that I'm a staunch intellectual property abolitionist for the same reason I'm a private property abolitionist. If you think the existence of intellectual property is a good thing, a lot of my ideas about a lot of stuff are gonna be unpalatable to you. Not much I can do about it.)
A lot of people are suddenly throwing their support behind any proposal that promises stricter copyright regulations to combat AI art, when a lot of these also have the potential to severely udnermine fair use laws and fuck over a lot of independent artist for the benefit of big companies.
It was very worrying to see a lot of fanfic authors in particular clap for the George R R Martin OpenAI lawsuit because well... a lot of them don't realize that fanfic is a hobby that's in a position that's VERY legally precarious at best, that legally speaking using someone else's characters in your fanfic is as much of a violation of copyright law as straight up stealing entire passages, and that any regulation that can be used against the latter can be extended against the former.
Similarly, a lot of artists were cheering for the lawsuit against AI art models trained to mimic the style of specific artists. Which I agree is an extremely scummy thing to do (just like a human artist making a living from ripping off someone else's work is also extremely scummy), but I don't think every scummy act necessarily needs to be punishable by law, and some of them would in fact leave people worse off if they were. All this to say: If you are an artist, and ESPECIALLY a fan artist, trust me. You DON'T wanna live in a world where there's precedent for people's artstyles to be considered intellectual property in any legally enforceable way. I know you wanna hurt AI art people but this is one avenue that's not worth it.
Especially worrying to me as an indie musician has been to see people mention the strict copyright laws of the music industry as a positive thing that they wanna emulate. "this would never happen in the music industry because they value their artists copyright" idk maybe this is a the grass is greener type of situation but I'm telling you, you DON'T wanna live in a world where copyright law in the visual arts world works the way it does in the music industry. It's not worth it.
I've seen at least one person compare AI art model training to music sampling and say "there's a reason why they cracked down on sampling" as if the death of sampling due to stricter copyright laws was a good thing and not literally one of the worst things to happen in the history of music which nearly destroyed several primarily black music genres. Of course this is anecdotal because it's just One Guy I Saw Once, but you can see what I mean about how uncritical support for copyright law as a tool against AI can lead people to adopt increasingly regressive ideas about copyright.
Similarly, I've seen at least one person go "you know what? Collages should be considered art theft too, fuck you" over an argument where someone else compared AI art to collages. Again, same point as above.
Similarly, I take issue with the way a lot of people seem EXTREMELY personally invested in proving AI art is Not Real Art. I not only find this discussion unproductive, but also similarly dangerously prone to validating very reactionary ideas about The Nature Of Art that shouldn't really be entertained. Also it's a discussion rife with intellectual dishonesty and unevenly applied definition and standards.
When a lot of people present the argument of AI art not being art because the definition of art is this and that, they try to pretend that this is the definition of art the've always operated under and believed in, even when a lot of the time it's blatantly obvious that they're constructing their definition on the spot and deliberately trying to do so in such a way that it doesn't include AI art.
They never succeed at it, btw. I've seen several dozen different "AI art isn't art because art is [definition]". I've seen exactly zero of those where trying to seriously apply that definition in any context outside of trying to prove AI art isn't art doesn't end up in it accidentally excluding one or more non-AI artforms, usually reflecting the author's blindspots with regard to the different forms of artistic expression.
(However, this is moot because, again, these are rarely definitions that these people actually believe in or adhere to outside of trying to win "Is AI art real art?" discussions.)
Especially worrying when the definition they construct is built around stuff like Effort or Skill or Dedication or The Divine Human Spirit. You would not be happy about the kinds of art that have traditionally been excluded from Real Art using similar definitions.
Seriously when everyone was celebrating that the Catholic Church came out to say AI art isn't real art and sharing it as if it was validating and not Extremely Worrying that the arguments they'd been using against AI art sounded nearly identical to things TradCaths believe I was like. Well alright :T You can make all the "I never thought I'd die fighting side by side with a catholic" legolas and gimli memes you want, but it won't change the fact that the argument being made by the catholic church was a profoundly conservative one and nearly identical to arguments used to dismiss the artistic merit of certain forms of "degenerate" art and everyone was just uncritically sharing it, completely unconcerned with what kind of worldview they were lending validity to by sharing it.
Remember when the discourse about the Gay Sex cats pic was going on? One of the things I remember the most from that time was when someone went "Tell me a definition of art that excludes this picture without also excluding Fountain by Duchamp" and how just. Literally no one was able to do it. A LOT of people tried to argue some variation of "Well, Fountain is art and this image isn't because what turns fountain into art is Intent. Duchamp's choice to show a urinal at an art gallery as if it was art confers it an element of artistic intent that this image lacks" when like. Didn't by that same logic OP's choice to post the image on tumblr as if it was art also confer it artistic intent in the same way? Didn't that argument actually kinda end up accidentally validating the artistic status of every piece of AI art ever posted on social media? That moment it clicked for me that a lot of these definitions require applying certain concepts extremely selectively in order to make sense for the people using them.
A lot of people also try to argue it isn't Real Art based on the fact that most AI art is vapid but like. If being vapid definitionally excludes something from being art you're going to have to exclude a whooole lot of stuff along with it. AI art is vapid. A lot of art is too, I don't think this argument works either.
Like, look, I'm not really invested in trying to argue in favor of The Artistic Merits of AI art but I also find it extremely hard to ignore how trying to categorically define AI art as Not Real Art not only is unproductive but also requires either a) applying certain parts of your definition of art extremely selectively, b) constructing a definition of art so convoluted and full of weird caveats as to be functionally useless, or c) validating extremely reactionary conservative ideas about what Real Art is.
Some stray thoughts that don't fit any of the above sections.
I've occassionally seen people respond to AI art being used for shitposts like "A lot of people have affordable commissions, you could have paid someone like $30 to draw this for you instead of using the plagiarism algorithm and exploiting the work of real artists" and sorry but if you consider paying an artist a rate that amounts to like $5 for several hours of work a LESS exploitative alternative I think you've got something fucked up going on with your priorities.
Also it's kinda funny when people comment on the aforementioned shitposts with some variation of "see, the usage of AI art robs it of all humor because the thing that makes shitposts funny is when you consider the fact that someone would spend so much time and effort in something so stupid" because like. Yeah that is part of the humor SOMETIMES but also people share and laugh at low effort shitposts all the time. Again you're constructing a definition that you don't actually believe in anywhere outside of this type of conversations. Just say you don't like that it's AI art because you think it's morally wrong and stop being disingenuous.
So yeah, this is pretty much everything I believe about the topic.
I don't "defend" AI art, but my opposition to it is firmly rooted in my principles, and that means I refuse to uncritically accept any anti-AI art argument that goes against those same principles.
If you think not accepting and parroting every Anti-AI art argument I encounter because some of them are ideologically rooted in things I disagree with makes me indistinguishable from "AI techbros" you're working under a fucked up dichotomy.
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
đĽ¨áŠ ×Ý holy terrain!!!!!!, [ homelander x supe!reader ]
SUMMARYâ based on a request aka when you arrive to voughtâs tower covered in blood, you certainly don't expect to enjoy Johnâs comfort after feeling so numb.
WARNINGS â +18 minors dni, implied fem! reader, homelander is a warning himself, usual the boys content, mentions of murder, violence, reader matches homelanderâs freak ngl, always wash your hands before fingering #PLEASE, blood kink at it's best, degradation (blink and youâll miss it), dirty talk, porn without plot sort of?? lmao blame it on my hormones.
SIDE NOTESÂ â hi there, this is a result of me going feral in this new season. English's not my first language, so please be kind, any mistake it's my own fault sorry in advance. Hate this mf but wont deny I wouldn't fuck him to calm him down. Please interact if you like this, reblogs, comments, likes, all means a lot to me!
The smell is under your nose.
At first it didnât bother you to feel the warmth of it, youâre not disgusted by blood. But itâs everywhere. Fucking everywhere. Sticking in your face, staining your damn suit, pooling beneath your feet.
You can feel your own breathing, yet, you're numb to everything else. The screams of terror and the sudden silence of the killing are now something similar as a long-time-ago memory, a distant thought you cannot bring yourself to care about.
And when you came out of the elevator, you don't care about the other people looking at you either. The Vought personal that were always running in the floor, Ashley, or fucking Noir at the matter thinking you're Carrie or something, no one dares to talk to you even when youâre a mere sidekick, too afraid of your explosive personality to even demand to know what happened.
It's almost like you asked for it, to be left alone, to not deal with anyone but your own judgment.
So when you cross the hallway to your dormitory dreaming about a warm shower, you don't expect to see him inside, your relationship with Homelander being too sporadic to even catalog it as one. Yet he's there like it's his house, and you're too tired to even ask why he's there in the first place.
"There you are," he says, but you hear his voice like he's talking miles away from you instead of the couch where he really is. "Something was telling me you were having a rough day."
"Don't remember anything about inviting you to my room" he doesn't care about your tone as he walks closer to you, usually, when he speaks, he only seem to listen to himself. "Didnât give you a key."
He's oblivious at your words, instead, he seems to be too lost in his own way of seeing things, just waiting for you to say something similar to what youâve already said in his mind. To admit something like you missed him all day long, that you've been thinking about him as much as he's thinking about you, to fed his ego like only you can do after only a few times of sharing intimacy.
The air is thick, making it harder to breathe as he plants himself in front of you, blue eyes scanning your face as his fingers touched your hair, toying with the strands glued together with blood â Even if itâs gross, he donât seemed moved by it, mainly, you think, because heâs been through the same too.
"Don't need a key to show up," he laughs like it's obvious, and you look at him like he's having a rougher time than you. "This is my building."
It's almost a reminder for you, that you're living under his roof and have a place on his team because he just wants to. Even when you always do the dirty job no one dares to do, if you save his ass more times you can count, he still remarks youâre living in his world.
âI know,â you fight the need to roll your eyes to the back of your head while responding. Itâs something you remind yourself sometimes, how most of them are just plain stupid, always treating you like you were no better than fucking Deep.
The stink under your nose is annoying and your skin feels sticky at the touch so youâre almost begging for just ten minutes of privacy.
âI just missed youâ he says in a low voice, almost ashamed of admitting something he would never even dare to say out loud, a sudden verge of vulnerability, strange raw honesty as he looks at you. âDidnât you miss me too?â
You know the only way of really control him, how to make him do exactly what you want to do, so you let him. Let him act all needy and weird cause you want John wrapped around your finger, unable to think on his own. You want him to believe, whole-heartedly, that in the end heâs the one coming up with the great ideas when it's you every single time.
You donât find it cruel, heâs the same with you and he deserves it, so when Homelander bites his middle finger to grab the fabric of his gloves and pull it off, you let him touch you, treat you like this lost-dove-in-trouble he loves to see â âHad an awful day. Just wanted to see you,â like that. The correct combination of words and he looks like he got fucking shot by a celestial force, mesmerized. âAlways missing you, babe.â
Heâs sold by the moment, that tone you use, that little nickname that gets him, the sound of your heartbeat slightly faster than before, not enough to catch you lying, but enough to show youâre indeed, happy to see him as well.
He's pleased, so the next is unexpected to say the least, and you hate every second of it when he carries you like you two are married or something similar, sitting in the sofa with you on his lap.
âWhat are you-â
He shushes you, and you cannot finish what youâre saying when he pulls you to his chest, the fabric of his suit against your cheek as he, weirdly enough, hugged you close, the sound of his heartbeat instead, loud against your ear as you can feel him breathing beneath you, an steady rhythm as the silence filled the room. It's weird sometimes, to think he's human as well before the compound V.
âComforting you,â he says in a low voice. His bare hand now grabbing your tight enough to bury his fingers in the covered skin, squeezing it lightly as first, nothing you cannot control. And it's beyond doubt what he truly wants, the way his nose inhales the scent of your body like it's fuel, the blood mixing with your fragrance â "M' here now."
He likes it almost more than his own smell. Almost is the key, cause he cannot help but wish you'd stink like him after waking up next to him that very same day. The thought wakes something new in the alleged superhero, something that stings in his stomach, plaguing his mind with the thought of getting all that he wants, to mark you as his property as he has done before.
He cannot get enough. Of course he can't, he's used to have it all now, to never ask but take. That's why he bites your shoulder, why he didn't mind getting his hands dirty with you and your sticky suit, why he's not grossed out by anything, but instead, turned on by how much you needed him.
But in reality it's the other way around, cause Homelander's the one that pulls you closer, that kisses you like you're something heavenly, just like he is. He's not gentle, yet he knows you like it that way, that you're into that rough force he's used to and would kill any normal person in result.
"Who let you go on that mission on your own, huh?" He asks, concentrated in your suit, pulling it down slightly just to reveal the naked skin under the fabric, clean skin in contrast of all the red. "Seems like they all forgot we're supposed to work together."
You don't get why it feels so nice at first, why the hand on your hip moves through your body like you need some kind of reassurance after all you went through the day.
"I'm okay" you manage to say, the pure need to remind him you're good enough to make things on your own, some kind of memo that explains clearly that you want the same benefits he has. It's useless however, when he has you like that, making you tilt your head to the side, placing random bites in any sight of exposed flesh.
"You're hurt" he says, making you aware of your own body as he presses one hand against the injury on the side of your ribs. He's fucking sick for it, and it doesn't give you any time to react when his fingertips are pushing against the cut, your suit staining with your own blood as you mewl on top of him. "Clearly hurt."
He's drunk on depravity, lost on the face you make when the pain hits you all sudden, stealing the air from your lungs. He's suddenly hard beneath you and his hand's now rest on your hip making you move on top of him, hungry for anything he can get out of you, any little sound you make so focused on keeping quiet, trying so hard to not to fed on his bullshit.
The friction is unbearable, the fresh blood coming out of your now-opened wound, the slight force he uses to tear your suit apart like its nothing, giving him more space to work with as he seemed desperate to have you close. It takes you far from where you were first, the numb feeling that grew like a parasite your stomach swallowing it all, now instead, too sensitive to his touch.
Yes. You hate him for it, hate that it's too easy for him, the traumatized hero with too many issues, the world's strongest man that somehow manages to make a mess out of you just with something so simple as sitting on his lap.
He's so pleased when you moan, when you say his name and you forgot about mannerisms, he needs to pull out his other glove in response as his blonde hair falls over his face, throwing it to the floor as his bare hand is now able to rip apart your suit effortless. The warmth of his palm cups your now bare breast for him, and he leans into your chest, tongue flickering in circles over your nipple as you let out a strangled moan.
"Common, need you to use your words here," he demands for a moment, almost annoyed as you can see the traces of saliva that connected you to his mouth: Why does he look so good? Fucker. "Cause if you donât stop me now Iâll reduce your suit to ashes.â
âDonât care,â you know Ashleyâs going to be pissed, yet it's not enough to say anything about it. "Fucking hate the suit anyway."
"Such a dirty mouth" you're tugging his hair, hand on your kneecap pulling it slightly to the side as he forces you to open your legs for him. "What can I do with you?"
There it is, the ripped sound of his hands tearing the rest of the fabric apart, the pliable desperation in his touch, grabbing, kissing, and palming the curves of your body as it's holy terrain, unstudied land. He's caught in the smell of your skin finally mixing with his, the way your hips grinded in need for a deeper contact.
He laughs at you, laughs at that sight of defeat when he finally slides the hand that was on your knee under the ripped leavings of your now-destroyed suit. Of course he fucking loves the way you're speechless all thanks to his efforts, that you're unable to keep still as you straddle him now confident he's not repulsed by your dirty nature.
"Did you get turned on by killing?" He asks, and you try to respond something like he's clearly dumb. "Been smelling you since you've got here. All wet, covered in blood."
He's far from lazering you, but you can feel the weight of his gaze almost trespassing you when his hand finally reaches that nice spot between your legs and feels your drenched underwear beneath his fingertips. He can feel it all, and you are aware of it.
He's driven by the sounds of your heartbeat, the way your skin glimmers with sweat, he knows you're enjoying every second of it, his fingertips fondling on top of the cloth moments before pulling it to side. The warm contact with your cunt is enough to make him lose it, enough to make him succumb beneath you as he explores the folds of your aching core, his other hand holding your hip just to keep you in place.
John seems to forget, always does. Cause his grip turns beyond bruising and you can hear the crack when he moves you against his hand, a new broken bone to added to the list as he's unaware to the sound it produces, the pain that makes you shake violently blending immediately with pleasure.
You can take it. You're tough and a big girl who's taken worse, so you don't whine about it knowing you must be healing already, instead, you let yourself be trapped in that haze he created, the sounds of your sex when he hits that very spot you overly-enjoy, digits slightly curving inside as heâs experiencing the velvety feeling of your walls colliding against his hand.
"That's it, keep the show for me.â He loves praising so much since you told him heâs doing good one time, he needs to do the same for you at the first chance he got while you offered yourself to him, riding his fingers. âSuch a good slut.â
Heâs concentrated in the way his fingers disappear inside of you, the intense smell of blood and sex that now fills the air as you moan out his name, the red droplets in your face much like freckles, far more wicked than pure marks on your skin.
âSo nice, so warm,â he says to himself, the slick sound of your arousal filling the room, his teeth scraping the sensitive skin of your chest as he marks your skin like youâre all his.
Heâs sure heâs alleviating your problems, sure heâs making you feel so much better, thumb tracing circles in your swollen bud as he stole cries of pleasure from your parted lips.
You donât let him know youâre close but he can sense it, the slight change in your breathing each time more erratic, your heartbeats quickening their pace as you got closer to the edge.
And when you really finish, when youâre done riding your high, you grab the remains of your teared suit and look at him with that damn smile he loves. You know heâs expecting to receive anything back, any favor youâre willing to give in return.
But instead, when you got off his lap, you just caress his cheek gently before saying â âSee you later, John? Kind of busy now.â
my masterlist
#homelander x reader#homelander#the boys#homelander x you#homelander x fem!reader#cryptfile // the boys#homelander smut#the boys smut
1K notes
¡
View notes
Note
hey love can i request brothers bff cho and how he's just down bad for you đ¤đ¤đ¤
đ. đ§đ¨đđ: omg wait, i fucks with this baddd
âš đđ¨đ§đđđ§đđŹ: Choso x fem! reader - explicit content; minors DNI - masturbation (m!) - oral (m! receiving) - tit/breast fucking (m! receiving) - cowgirl position - pet names (baby, darling, honey, sweetie) - unprotected sex (psa: wrap it up or get tf up) - implied that reader is big chested - Choso crushing on you hard, lmao - mention of drool/spit.
âš đ°đ¨đŤđ đđ¨đŽđ§đ: 1.4k
Choso knew better than to be attracted to you, the sibling of his best friend ever.Â
Your brother and Choso have been buddies for a while, meeting during his part-time job at a burger joint as servers and finding out they have so much in common. Being older siblings, lovers of rock music, and relating to so much together, the two often hung out after work and became pretty good friends. Just two people vibing out in each othersâ company, and there was nothing to make this relationship complicated!
âHey, Choso, Iâve told you about my sister before, right?â
You greeted him with a smile. âItâs nice to meet you, Choso!â
Well, that is until you came and absolutely rocked Chosoâs world.Â
You were the younger sibling of two; a college senior comes home biweekly to take care of laundry and then drives back up for your education. By your gorgeous face and alluring figure, Choso was struck by your image from the first time his eyes ever laid on you. You were such a kind spirit, always so sweet to him and others surrounding you â youâd want to hang with the boys whenever you had the chance while you were visiting, which was hellish for the brown-haired man.Â
Youâd laugh along with the jokes, making Chosoâs heart skip uncontrollably, and the way youâd lean to him when youâre sleepy watching a movie with them pushed the guy on the verge of shutting down. He could never get tired of how youâd say his name; it came out so dear from your lips as if he could be under your spell at any second. And it didnât help that youâd walk around the house with shorts on, the lower fringes constantly threatening Choso on whether theyâd creep up to see the mere crevice of your ass.
As said before, he knew better than siblings of best friends were off limits. However, you were becoming too much for him. Itâs been half a year of seeing you, and there has never been a day or night where you havenât popped up in his head one way or another, particularly when his mind would think of you in the mostâŚlustful ways.
He throws his head back, reminiscing about you and your outfit from the pub. The way your breasts were tucked in nicely by the window of your bodycon dress, yet the cleavage was too tempting for his eyes not to notice. The dress sculpted your curves dangerously, Choso fighting the urge to put his hand on your hip to feel your clothed skin. And your lipgloss made your lips shine; every time you spoke to him was a test for him not to kiss you right there in front of your brother. It was so cruel how you looked so good for him!
He was spending the night at yours after a night out drinking with you and your brother, using the basement bedroom to sleep. Sleep evades him; however, he uses this space to deal with the erection heâs been dying to indulge in this entire night instead. His teeth pull the bottom of his shirt, dark jeans discarded to the floor, and his hand pumps his shaft thatâs freed from his boxer briefs.
He grunts at the memory, teeth grinding while he strokes his long cock. Precum exuding from the urethra slides down to the base and wets his fingers. âFuuck, Y/n,â your name is said in choked moans, the horny man fisting himself in a faster motion. Brown eyebrows are trenched, and his abdomen begins to flex. Shit, Iâm so close, so clâ
âChoso?â
He never in his life froze still in an instant, and his heart goes to a complete stop, too. No way.
âCaââŚMay I come in?â
No words are said from either side, so Chosoâs heat immediately shifts to icy cold when he hears the door open, and your frame is all he sees. Youâre still wearing the beautiful dress, yet your face is molded into an expression of utter anxiousness. Sweat goes down Chosoâs forehead, oh fucking shit!
âI came down to see if you were okay and needed anything,â your eyes were downcast to the floor, chewing on your lips during this awkward situation. âButâŚI heard you say my name andâŚâ
Oh, it was so over for him. All Choso could do was stare at you in dread, entirely shocked that you saw him masturbate at the thought of you! You were fidgeting with your dress, perplexed about how to handle this predicament, too. He was so done for; not only was he thinking of you, the sibling of his best friend, and using said thoughts of you, but now you are aware of how he pictures you in his fucked up head! Yup, he can never walk into this house again. âSâSorry, Y/n! Iâll just go andââ
âCan I help?â
Again, his body goes rigid mid-stride of getting off the bed after pulling his underwear up. âŚ.What?
âI mean, can IâŚhelp you with that?â You meekly walk into the room and close the door behind you. âI am the one who made you like this, soâŚIâm okay with it if you areâŚ..â
Choso blinks, too alarmed to make any movements. âBut, your brotherâŚâ Youâre quiet for a few seconds before you spook him by taking steps in his direction. He gulps thickly when your figure crawls on the bed, too close for his brain to comprehend. You take his hand with your soft ones and bring his fingers to your lips to kiss, and his breath hitches when you suck and lick his digits. The boner stuffed in his briefs twitches at the sensation of your tongue running against the underside of his middle finger and sucking on it.Â
You peer at him, âWhat about him?â That is what you say before lifting your dress to remove your panties. And just when Choso thought his life was about to be thrown in the gutter, you flipped the script on him again.
In his head, Choso knew he shouldnât be doing this.
âMmmâŚMmahh! Oh, Choso, you taste so goodâŚâ
But in his heart, he couldnât help but give in to this situation.
You were situated between his legs, ripped him off his briefs for you to suck on his glans freely. Your tinge dances around his cockhead to prompt more come to ooze out of his urethra, and your hand slides up and down to stroke his member. Choso whimpers under your touch, and shivers crawl up his spine as you lick from the base to the tip before sucking hard.
âFuuck, Y/n,â he grips the sheets, barely containing his hips to buck to your lips. âYour mouth, itâsâHssshhâŚ!â
âMmm?â You blink before releasing the tip with a sound. âWhat about my mouth, Choso baby?â Fuck, the nickname made the pink of his ears creep down to his nape. âYou feel good?â He nods at your question, and you giggle before sucking one of his balls, resulting in a sharp gasp from the brown-haired man. âIâm so happy you areâŚâ
Hallow cheeks take in his cock, busying your throat with his length that has you humming blissfully. You massage his waist as you bob your face up and down, and shaky breaths leave his lips while his legs jolt with every swish of your tongue.
ââShhiiit, oh shit, hnnn,â he canât do it, you were driving him crazy. âY/n, youâre gonna make meâŚMmmmâ
You pick up on his cue, withdrawing your lips from him to maneuver and pull down the top of your dress. Caramel eyes widen at the sight of your breast spilling out, forgetting how to breathe when you bring them to wrap around his long dick. You move them around to please him, taking the tip back into your mouth to slurp his leaking essence that trickles down to your chest.Â
âMmaahh, go ahead, darling,â you place kisses on the tip, Choso looking at nothing but your mounds swallow him with every stroke. It takes mere seconds for his orgasm to sneak up on him, his jizz coming out to fall and trickle down in between the rifts of your tits. âThere you go, let it out for meâŚâ the way you looked at him with half-lidded eyes took his breath away, especially with the spit that connects your gloss-shining lips to his spit-and-come coated shaft.Â
And when heâs finally inside you? Heâs too far gone to even think of being away from you.
âOhhh, hoooh!! Chosooo, yâu feel soo good!â
Your dress was cast-off entirely, your nude body bouching up and down on Choso, his cock bullying the inside of your cunt. Itâs been a solid fifteen minutes shared between the two of you exploring each otherâs bodies, and sweaty skin exchanges heat from the constant motions. And come from rounds prior spill from your chasm as you ride on Chosoâs dick with a rhythm.
He has his hands on your hips now, using you to keep him steady before he gets too lost in the feeling. Not that it hasnât happened already; the man moans with every clamp of your walls around him, tightening around him with every graze of your g-spot. You wail for him up top, and your aroused sounds have to be the cutest things heâs ever heard. And the way your tits jump every time you plummet down to the base of him, itâs an image that will haunt him for the rest of his days.
âTahhh, ughh, Jesus ChristâŚâ Heâs too sensitive right now; he just came not too long ago and is now being chased down for another one. âY/n, sweetie, too fast, slow dâAhhâŚ!â
You hear him and titter, âYeah? Want me to slow down, huhâŚâ You bring your hips up excruciatingly slow, listening intently to the shaky sobs from the brunette as you get to the very top. And then you smack yourself down with haste, sharing a yelp at the rushed sensation. You do it again, âThink youâre about to cum again, huh, honey?â
His hands now come to your ass to grope with the flesh, and you twitch around his girth at the hunger. âYeahhhâŚâ
âYou gonna be good and cum for me again, right?â Another snap of your ass crashing down on him.Â
âYess, baby,â he throws his head back to the pillows, his head pounding so hard it could kill him. You can feel him pulsating within your slit. âAlmost thereâŚOhhâooo..!â
You bite your lip, relishing at the sight of him being desperate for release. You lean forward to him, your breasts meshing with his chest as you snake a hand around the back of his head. You place your lips on his, and he doesnât hesitate to reciprocate.
The kiss gets hotter when you dial up the speed, tongues swirling and exchanging spit as the friction becomes a lot more pleasurable than before. Chosoâs ears ring the deeper you bring him in to kiss, humming on his tongue as you suck on it with harsh rocks on his length from scraping places you couldnât reach. Heâs so fucking addicted to you; his composure long deteriorated the moment he first put his cock inside you.
Choso bucks himself to you in sync, his climax coming in just a few ruts. He howls into you, and you wail along as your hips donât rest until youâre hit with a crescendo of your own. Contracting your vaginal walls milks him, exerting his load into you again to spill and flow down your sticky frames.Â
You two heave and pant in each otherâs mouth before the kiss is broken, and the string of saliva is evidence of you being one with the other. Although the both of you are dazed, you smile at him before kissing his nose. âGlad I helped you out, huh?â He chuckles weakly as you lay kisses on his chin.
KNOCK!! KNOCK!!
And just like that, the two of you are frozen yet again. WaitâŚ
Too late, the bedroom door busts open with a bang, and in comes your brother!
âYooo, Choso, my guyâhic,â your brother stumbles inside the room, still a bit loopy and drunk. âWanna go up and hit a quick blunt withâ ahâŚâ
The heat shared between you and the man below you switched to silent torture, awkwardness suffocating the three figures staring at each other. And this is the exact reason why Choso shouldâve known better than to mingle around with youâŚ
Š đđ¨đŹđĄđ˘đ đŤđđ˛2024 â reblogs and comments are appreciated wholeheartedly â header edit done by me + dividers by @/benkeibear.
#đŻđđđđ Ëââ§ę°á â ŕťęą â§âË đžđđđđđ: đşđđđđđđđđ#jujutsu kaisen x reader#jjk x reader#jujutsu kaisen smut#jjk smut#jjk x you#jjk x y/n#choso x reader#choso smut#choso kamo x reader#choso kamo smut#choso x you#choso x y/n#kamo choso x reader#choso kamo x you#choso kamo x y/n#jujutsu kaisen x you#jjk imagines#anime smut#jujustsu kaisen x reader
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
triple-dog dare | lsm
âBambi.â
The sternness of his tone surprised both of you, so much so that when you snapped to look at him, both of you froze. Your moon-sized eyes were further proof that your childhood nickname still rings true to date, although your being the deer made him the oncoming car in this scenario.Â
He didnât love that analogy.
Recovering quickly, he pulled the Ace from his sleeve: the surefire way for one of you to get the other onboard:
âI triple-dog dare you to come with me.â
pairing: lee seokmin x reader summary: when you're left off the guest list to seokmin's parent's thirtieth anniversary party, you're content to keep your questions to yourself and stay home. seokmin, on the other hand, is not content. in fact, he pulls the one card he knows will always win. au: childhood best friends to lovers genre: fluff, angst, smut type: one-shot rating: 18+ only. minors do not have my consent to interact. wc: 13k cw: pov switches, complicated sibling dynamics (seokminâs), there is in fact one (1) bed, halmonis gone wild, stupid childhood nicknames, fingering (v), oral sex (m receiving), multiple orgasms, implied penetrative sex (p in v). reader notes: afab, uses she/her pronouns, wears a dress/heels to the party, is implicitly an only child. the setting is intentionally ambiguous, so she's not implicitly korean and/or asian. there are no descriptions of body shape/size, complexion, etc. a/n: thank you to the incomparable @daechwitatamic for beta-ing this! it's been a long damn time since i've written anything, so this might not have seen the light of day without jo, the hype-man. on that note, i suck at summaries; just read the fic, lmao. svt masterlist. svt permanent taglist. multi permanent taglist.
For being the walking disaster that he is, there have been shockingly few moments in Lee Seokminâs life where heâs needed to shove his oversized foot into his oversized mouth.
Prior to the incident at your apartment, the last time heâd embarrassed himself like this was when heâd asked his oldest sister, Soyeon, in earnest whether or not she was pregnant, only to learn that she was just bloated; and heâs just an ass.
To your credit, youâre far from cruel when he slips up, but that almost makes it worse. You visibly deflate when he asks his well-intentioned but ill-fated question, rather than letting him have it the way his two siblings would have done.
The day in question went like this:
He asked, âDid you reserve your room yet for the 31st? If not, we can double up. Itâll be a lot cheaper.â
And you blinked, stunned like youâd been slapped. âHave I what?â
It dawned on you both at that moment that, for whatever reason, his parentsâ thirtieth anniversary party was in fact news to you. Two things then happened at once: you tried to hide your surprise and the twinge of pain that comes with being excluded; and he racked his stupid brain to find any explanation for why you had to feel either one of those things.
The best option he found was to gently toss his middle sister, Seonmi, under the metaphorical bus.Â
âSeonmiâs been working on something special for them. You know how she gets,â he waved dismissively. âSo obsessed with finding the perfect napkins â â He wiggled his fingers for emphasis. ââ and creating custom cocktails, that she misses the forest for the trees.â
You didnât look convinced. Likewise, you didnât look any less uncomfortable.
Fuck.
âIâm sure it was an honest mistake.â To drive his point home, he reached from his spot on your couch to give your knee a reassuring squeeze. âI have a plus-one, so itâs not like itâll be a logistical problem. You belong there as much as we do.â
And he meant it, wholeheartedly.Â
All his life, the running joke has been that Soonyi and Minseok Lee have four kids: two biological daughters, a younger son, and his otherwise unrelated twin, who spent more time sleeping on his top bunk than in her own home next door.Â
The way he saw it â and the way heâs sure his parents would see it â is that no family gathering is complete without you. Thatâs a hill heâd die on if need be.
You shifted in your seat, which caused his hand to slip off your knee, whether or not you meant for it to happen. Glancing uneasily out your window, you worried your bottom lip between your teeth, mumbling, âI donât knowâŚâ
Seokmin frowned. You didnât see it, though, and therefore werenât moved by it. Instead, you cycled through your anxious thoughts at high velocity. If he was still touching you, heâd be worried that your sparking brain might catch him on fire.
âWhat if itâs not a mistake? I mean, what if itâs a couples thing?âÂ
He couldnât even classify these questions as rhetorical because he wasnât meant to hear them in the first place. Though you asked out loud, each one of them was for your ears only. From his half of the couch â miles away â his frown deepened, unbeknownst to you.
âYou know, Seonmi follows me on Instagram; sheâd know that Kai and I broke up a few months ago. Maybe she doesnât want me to feel awkward? Even if I went, and I didnât feel weird about that, her expecting it to be weird might make it weird, right?â
Fuck.
Youâd spiral all day if Seokmin didnât stop you. As much as he loves how thoughtful you are, he knows better than most that you have a tendency to take it too far, inflicting that relentless consideration on yourself until it wounds.Â
âBambi.â
The sternness of his tone surprised both of you, so much so that when you snapped to look at him, both of you froze. Your moon-sized eyes were further proof that your childhood nickname still rings true to date, although your being the deer made him the oncoming car in this scenario.Â
He didnât love that analogy.
Recovering quickly, he pulled the Ace from his sleeve: the surefire way for one of you to get the other onboard:
âI triple-dog dare you to come with me.â
Begrudgingly, youâd conceded, just like Seokmin hoped you would. You sat with him while he figured out travel plans to the mountain resort, helped him visualize what the hell he needed to wear to an event like this. When the time came, you sent him half the cost for the room he booked, even though he repeatedly insisted that you didnât need to chip in.
Now, that unsolicited sum sits untouched in his Venmo balance. You sit next to him on the night train out of town.
Sit, he thinks, is a bit of an understatement. Youâre barely upright, so exhausted from your work day that his shoulder and side are bearing most of your weight. His arm went from tingling to numb an hour ago, but Seokmin doesnât mind. There isnât a burden he wouldnât carry for you, up to and including you yourself.
Besides, heâs not worse off for being left to his own devices. In fact, he keeps himself thoroughly entertained by taking selfies of the pair of you. The aftermath will stay securely in his camera roll â largely because youâd kill him if you saw how squishy your face is, pressed against his coat, or how your little pout trembles slightly, almost as if youâre trying to talk through your sleep â but he still finds it worth the risk. This mochi-cheeked version of you is one of his favorites.
When Seokmin has amassed enough silly photos to comprise a dossier, he tucks his phone back into his pocket with a self-satisfied smile. Youâre still out cold, so you donât stir at his subtle movements or the sound of the concession trolley rattling your way down the aisle.
The girl manning said trolley is significantly outweighed by the thing itself. She hardly looks old enough to have graduated high school, he figures, and he canât imagine how it is that sheâs working at this hour â or how she got stuck doing this job, when it takes all sheâs got to maneuver the giant metal contraption through all the train cars.
âAnything, sir?â She asks politely, albeit slightly out-of-breath.Â
Even though sheâs speaking to him, her gaze is directed squarely at his hat, leading him to believe that she may also be too shy for her job. Nonetheless, itâs been two entire hours since his dinner, and heâs on the brink of starving to death, so he coughs up a few bills in exchange for several different snacks.Â
She could do him the kindness of assuming his massive pile of food is for sharing, but she doesnât. She gestures to you and whispers, âAnything for your â?â
Seokmin intercepts the question, knowing exactly where itâs headed: in the same direction as the million others like it that heâs heard over the years.Â
ââ parole officer?â He supplies with a smile, âNo, this nap is fueled by a lot of crab rangoon. Sheâll be out for the duration, I fear.â
Both halves of his response seem to stun her, which means he has to cover his inevitable laugh with a fake cough.Â
This bit of yours will truly never get old, although the implications that prompt it did a long time ago. It was a stroke of genius on your part, dodging inaccurate references to your relationship status by offering up something too absurd to converse around.
âYou two make such a cute couple,â an Uber driver once told you.
âHeâs not in a relationship,â youâd politely corrected him. âHeâs in witness protection. Iâm duty-bound to keep him and his identity safe.â
The silence turns awkward, so Seokmin thanks the girl and gives her a smile he hopes says, âyouâre allowed to run away from me now; I wonât take it personally.â She bows her head a little too eagerly, then skitters off with a grimace, like she pulled something in her neck.
Alone again with you, he wiggles gently upright in his seat so that you can rest more comfortably against his pectoral, rather than his shoulder bone. Even though youâre still asleep, Seokmin swears he hears a quiet mmpfh, as if youâre expressing gratitude. He bites his lips to keep from smiling, knowing that smiling in your proximity is one step away from laughter: the only thing youâve never been able to sleep through.
Instead of giving into the urge, he murmurs, âYou should get paid royalties whenever we use that joke. Being as smart as you are should pay off.â
Now, he knows heâs not simply hearing things because youâre just barely loud enough to overcome your own mumbling.Â
âAgreed,â you sigh on an exhale before slipping to sleep off again.
âWell?âÂ
There are two beats between his first question and his next: the unfilled gap youâve left in the conversation and the cabâs trunk shutting firmly. ââs that cool with you?â
Seokmin stares at you, staring at him. His expression is soft, like your lack of responsiveness is something to be fond of, rather than annoyed by. Itâs unexpectant, too, leaving the door wide open.
You blink. âSorry â I â What did you say?âÂ
Hitting him when he least expects it, you shift your suitcase from your dominant hand so you can gesture properly to the bright, poorly crocheted bucket hat flopping over his forehead. âItâs a bit hard to hear you. That hat is so loud.â
His quizzically raised eyebrows drop in an instant. Likewise, that airy smile of his flattens into a straight line.Â
Bullseye.
âIs it me that you hate?â He asks, tone dead serious as he points his finger towards his own chest. âOr is it the very concept of whimsy?â
Youâre too busy biting back a grin to protest when, without being asked, Seokmin reaches out and takes the handle of your suitcase into his own hand, as well as the garment bag youâd draped over your arm. Before turning away to abscond with both sets of luggage in addition to his own, he shoots you an incredulous look. It dissolves entirely before his face even disappears from view.Â
âThis is an objectively delightful hat,â he mutters, nonetheless, in furtherance of the bit.
He spots a member of hotel staff standing on the sidewalk directly outside the hotelâs double doors and pleads his case to them. âShe made me this hat, you know,â he announces, gesturing back to you with a nod.
The valetâs uniform hat casts a shadow under the lamplight, but it doesnât do enough to hide the expression on their face. It is abundantly clear â even in the dark â that they didnât hear a single word Seokmin said before he offered up that bit of trivia, seemingly apropos of nothing. They muster up a customer-service smile that doesnât reach their eyes and tell him itâs a wonderful hat. Meanwhile, you roll your eyes from behind because nothing either of them just said is true.
That hat is the byproduct of delusions of grandeur and innumerable skeins of color-conflicting yarn. You made it for yourself, believing that you were the kind of cute and kitschy person who could pull it off; and inconsolable weeping Christ, were you wrong. It was â no, is â your greatest fiber arts failure.
Frankensteinâs floral monster would be in a secondhand shop somewhere if youâd had any say in the matter. It isnât because you didnât. Seokmin ârescuedâ it from the âto donateâ pile on your bedroom floor. Since then, heâs worn it at every â public â opportunity, season be damned.
Admittedly, heâs exactly the kind of cute and kitschy person who can pull it off, but youâve decided out of sheer pettiness to keep that appraisal to yourself.
You take your time catching up to him, both because his long legs make it hard to keep pace; and because the room is reserved under his name. After all, heâs the welcomed guest, not the reluctant party-crasher. The receptionist is already handing him a white keycard when you finally reach the desk. Seokmin holds it up between his index and middle fingers, closed-eye grin sparkling in a matching shade of ivory.
Though the journey up to your shared room is long, the real trip is being confined to an elevator with mirrors for walls.Â
No matter how hard you try to avert your eyes, you manage to keep finding some new, horrible angle of your stale, post-train state. Itâs torture. Three versions of you stare back with deep, dark undereye circles; and all you can think about is how dull your complexion is â especially in comparison to Seokmin, who may as well be bioluminescent with the way he glows from the inside out.
Itâs joy, you know, his primary state of being and something he radiates like no other. Heâs happy to be here, happy that youâre here, and happy to be happy. Whether or not he means it to be, itâs infectious. Now, you feel yourself starting to smile, too.
Despite your quiet observation, you must have missed him looking at you. Seemingly out of nowhere, he carefully sets down your belongings, raises his now-empty hand, and cups the right side of your jaw. Unaware that youâve frozen solid, he swipes his thumb carefully over your cheek, tilting his own head to the side and frowning.
âI got you bad, huh?â
You blink.
âThe zipper on my coat,â he explains, laughing. âLooks like it took a bite out of you when you used me as a pillow on the train.â
For reasons you canât possibly explain, the only word to roll off your tongue is a sheepish, âSorry.â
For a second, Seokmin is just as confused as you are about whether youâre needlessly apologizing to him or his coat. He chuckles quietly at how easily distracted you both are, then he gets back to the point: âDoes it hurt?â
âNo.âÂ
Your response comes unnaturally quick. Your pulse does, too, when you finally make eye contact with him. After clearing your throat, you give him a half-hearted smile, ignoring whatever medical event you seem to be experiencing. âI didnât know it was there until now.â
He hums in acknowledgment, then rescinds his hand. You watch in silence while he re-encumbers himself with your luggage and turns back to face the elevator doors, which open almost immediately.
Seokmin steps out easily, like the weight of your respective burdens doesnât mean a thing. âIâd say this way, please, but Iâve already forgotten the room number,â he admits with a sheepish laugh. âThe keycardâs in my pocket.â
You take his cue and reach into the front, right pocket of his coat for the keycard. As soon as you see the room number, you snort.
âYou booked room number 218 because thatâs your birthday, and then⌠what? You forgot your own birthday?âÂ
âIâm deeply flawed.â He sighs, put-upon. âNow, letâs go, Bambi. It feels like you packed a weekâs worth of bricks.â
Thereâs no time to point out that you never asked him to carry your suitcase or bag for you in the first place. Likewise, thereâs no opportunity to ask exactly how many bricks is a weekâs worth. Heâs on the move again before you can blink, energy evident in each step regardless of how late it is.
Once again, you follow Seokminâs lead. Despite the signage, which is clearly visible on the wall, he walks confidently in the wrong direction, prompting you to grab him gently by the elbow and steer him the opposite way. His smile doesnât falter; he plays it off as if he was just testing how closely youâre paying attention.Â
It takes several turns down several additional hallways before the pair of you reach your target. When you come to room 218, you tap the keycard against the reader, causing the lock to click open. You turn the handle, push the door open into the room, and step awkwardly out of the way so your personal bellhop can get by.
âThis is what I was trying to tell you when you so viciously insulted my favorite accessory.â Seokmin nods his head towards the center of the room. âAll of the rooms Seonmi included in the reservation block have a king-sized bed â singular. The rooms outside the block are criminally overpriced for ski season.â
Itâs far from the first time youâve doubled up, so you shrug. âJust like old times, right? Like, when you thought your house was haunted, and you forced your way into the top bunk with me?â
âFirst of all,â he says as he sets both of your suitcases down and places one hand on his hip, the other pointing at you. âWe were six.â
After locking the door behind you, you toe off your shoes, smirking at him from over your shoulder. âWhatâs your second point?â
âIt was haunted ââ He insists. Then his stern expression melts into something smug, the way it always does when heâs about to blatantly rewrite history. ââ and you asked me to come up there because you were scared.â
A laugh slips out of you automatically, but you selflessly decide to let him have this. Crossing to him, you pat him on the bicep, patronizingly simpering all the while, âYou are the brave one.â
Even though youâre both cowards, and he knows it, he pockets this little victory with a pleased hum and a grin.
Turning away from him, you make a beeline for the closet area near the door. There, you shuck off your coat and hang it up, out of the way. While you do, Seokmin passes you both your garment bag and his. From there, the pair of you work in efficient silence: you, pulling your respective formal wear from their bags and smoothing out any wrinkles; him, tucking away your extensive collection of toiletries in the bathroom.
When everything is in its place, you turn back around and notice for the first time how beautiful the room actually is. Though the shades of the floor-to-ceiling windows are almost completely drawn, the snow-covered mountains are at least partially visible through the gap in fabric. If you had the time, youâd spend all day tomorrow sitting on the forest green, velvet chaise directly in front of the window, staring at frosty peaks so massive, they feel close enough to touch.
To your right, an electric fireplace heats the room, while a portrait-framed television hovers on the wall above the mantle, flipping through famous artworks as a screensaver. In between flashes of Van Goghâs Almond Blossoms and Klimtâs The Kiss, you catch a glimpse of Seokminâs smile reflecting on the black screen.
Awestruck, you turn to him and sigh, âDonât let me get used to this.â
He jerks his thumb to his right, gesturing towards the bathroom. âDonât judge me if I steal one of the bathrobes. Theyâre probably more expensive than half the shit in my apartment.â
âI wonât, but theyâll bill you for it when they figure it out,â you warn him. âOn that note, do you need to shower or anything before I start my skincare side quest?â
Seokmin shakes his head, causing the crocheted abomination to flop. âAll yours. My hairâll get weird if I donât deal with it tomorrow before we head out.â
And with that mental image of his insurmountable cowlick, you quickly grab your pajamas and shuffle off towards the bathroom.
The first few seconds after you close the door are spent gawking at the insanely intricate, geometric tile pattern in the walk-in shower. Thinking of how much time it mustâve taken to lay each one of them, you set to work on your own tedious task: your ten-step regimen of cleansers, toners, serums, and moisturizers. Seokmin says otherwise, but you donât think any of them truly make a difference. As stupid as you know it is, the routine itself is therapeutic, even if your skin is no more bouncy and glowy than it was before.
When itâs all said and done, you emerge from the bathroom to find your best friend stretched out on the half of the bed nearest the door with his eyes fixed on his phone screen. Itâs the side of the room he always chooses, claiming that itâs to protect you from any intruders, but you know the truth: heâs too much of a freeze baby to sleep near the window, and he knows you like it cold.
âFeeling refreshed?â He mumbles to the best of his ability; his sweatshirt hood is pulled up and drawn so tightly that it squishes his cheeks and chin, restricting his movement.
Chuckling quietly as you go, you pad over to your half of the bed and slip under the comforter. Like a moth to a flame, the other occupant sends his last text, tosses his phone to the side, and scoots closer to you, eager to siphon whatever extra body heat he can. His head winds up on your shoulder, while your cheek rests against the top of his head.
âBefore you tell me that I look it, Iâd encourage you to stare long into the abyss that is my under-eye circles.â
When he laughs, itâs merely a puff of air from his nose. âYou never look as tired as you feel,â he says distractedly, fiddling with the drawstrings of his hoodie. âPretty miraculous, given how little sleep you get.â
That comment warms you up so thoroughly, you wonder if he can feel it. Then, you wonder if that was the point. You intend to tease him for that, but then it dawns on you how fidgety heâs being. Itâs rare for him.
âYou okay, Thumper?â
It feels silly, using that nickname after so long. Your clumsiness stuck around for the ride, continuing Bambi into perpetuity; but he grew out of his companion name when he hit puberty, and his giant feet were suddenly proportional to the rest of him.Â
Heâs certainly no bunny, nor is he a child, but the low ebb of anxiety rolling off of him reminds you of the scared little neighbor boy you used to know. It fits, even if it is silly.
At first, Seokmin begins his explanation without peeling his gaze off his restless fingers. âApparently, Seungcheol and Mingyu are in town.â Then, his eyes slowly lift up to find you peering down at him. âThey want to meet up to go snowboarding before we leave.â
Ah.
There it is: the top-secret look in his eye that only you can decipher. The one heâs been practicing for years, at your insistence, for moments like this, when he needs to be talked into something. When he needs to be brave and avoid missing out on something heâd love, solely because it freaks him out.
You respond the same way you always have; the way you once pinky-promised you always would: âI triple-dog dare you.â
He sighs deeply, neither fully resigned nor relieved, but then he nods. His head knocks slightly against your shoulder as he does. âIâll do it.â
And thatâs that; itâs settled.
Or so you think.
A beat passes in silence, until Seokmin suddenly pipes up again, âBut youâre going to have to hold my hand on the chair lift, or Iâll pass out and fall to my death.â
âDeal.âÂ
You grab his hand now in consideration of your promise and scratch affectionately at his palm. Surprisingly, his thoughts havenât made him clammy. His skin is even softer than usual, likely due to the expensive hotel lotion heâs undoubtedly now harboring in his suitcase. Tongue firmly in cheek, you look at him sideways.Â
âJust â leave the hat in your suitcase, okay? The snow will be blinding enough.â
Seokminâs been dressed and ready for at least thirty minutes, but youâre still standing exactly where you have been for the last forty-five. Face pinched, you turn this way and that in front of the mirror, smoothing fabric thatâs already wrinkle-free, apparently for the hell of it.
âIâm oh-for-three.â Your exasperated sigh is punctuated by your bare, right foot stomping on the carpet. It doesnât make the impact you likely hope it will, at least sonically. It does, however, speak volumes about how close to the ledge you are.
âAll of them looked good,â he says earnestly. âI think this one is my favorite, though, if that means anything.â
Apparently, this is the wrong answer. Your wild-eyed gaze lifts from your own reflection until youâre staring him dead in the eye through the mirror.
âWhy did I even pack this?â You ask, âDo you see this?â
Suddenly, you lift a manicured hand to point at your neckline, from which heâd admittedly been averting his eyes. âThis is too much cleavage for a family function, isnât it?â
As quickly as you glanced at him in the first place, you go right back to fussing with your dress, thankfully missing the way he swallows thickly.
Fuck, now heâs staring â but youâre the one that made him look in the first place â and he can feel heat rising to his ears, a dead giveaway. His sudden silence does enough to communicate his struggle. He has no idea how to respond without vaulting over the boundaries of your friendship.
Is it hot in here?
Deciding to rely on his usual tactic, he jokes his way out.
âIf you think Iâll ever side against tiddieâŚâ He forces a grimace, shaking his head gravely. âThen you really donât know me at all.â
You laugh loudly, and whatever one-sided tension filled the room snaps like a twig. Better still, the smile you give him stays on your face while you reassess your dress. Seokmin takes it as a personal victory that you commit to his choice, rather than cycle back through your options for the second time.Â
While this means that youâll both be able to hit the open bar sooner rather than later, the biggest upside is that he no longer has to keep excusing himself to the bathroom so you can change again, and again, and again.
You finish up quickly, tossing on jewelry, and then turn to him. His shoulder keeps you steady while you slip into your devilishly high heels. Seokmin pays them little mind now, however; his attention is drawn to the accessories youâve chosen. Sure, they match perfectly with the rest of your outfit, but thatâs not what strikes him. Itâs the fact that everything youâve picked was gifted to you by his parents at one point or another.
Unable to stop himself, he reaches out and gently taps on one of your dangling earrings. âEighteenth birthday,â he muses to himself.Â
Then, both his gaze and his hand lower to your necklace. He skims his fingertip along the delicate, gold chain, inadvertently making you freeze up. âChristmas 2019?â
You shake your head slightly, though it barely counts as movement.
âAh,â Seokmin corrects himself. â2020.â
Sensing that heâs somehow made you uncomfortable, he reels himself back in and clears his throat. âShall we?â He asks, furnishing you with a bent arm to loop yours through.
You take his cue, link your arm to his, and sigh, âI suppose we shall.â
The walk to the elevator is quiet, in that neither one of you says a thing. Seokmin can hear the gears in your head turning, though, without any conversation to drown them out.Â
You step inside that glorified, mirrored box; and for a few minutes, he lets you work through the thing he knows ruined your sleep last night. That is, until he hears your breathing come a little quicker than usual.
âHey.âÂ
It was supposed to be a jumping off point. He was going to go from there and reiterate that you belong here with him. The plan was to reassure you for as long as it takes to get you to believe it, but you look up at him almost helplessly, and his Etch-a-Sketch brain is wiped clean in an instant.
The very best he can do is smile and offer a single word: âHi.â
âHi,â you whisper back, eyes twinkling.Â
Your plagued frown curves slightly back in the right direction. The creeping shroud of doom lightens, if only a little bit.
âThatâll do, pig.â You swat his arm, but he says it again, emphatically, âThatâll do.â
Halfway through you scolding him for quoting Babe at a time like this, the elevator door reopens, ready to regurgitate the pair of you out onto the ballroom level.Â
Unlike the lobby, which sits only one floor below, this floor looks like it was ripped straight from the pages of a fantasy novel. Everywhere he turns, thereâs something new â and vaguely elven â to look at. Fairy lights hang in perfectly spaced arches from the lofted ceiling, delicately illuminating the exposed, wooden beams above. The chandeliers â plural â are crafted out of antlers of some kind, cutting between rugged and highly refined.
As stunning as it all is, Seokminâs mind snags on a single conclusion. Youâre the one who voices it, though, much to his surprise.
âThis is the most Seonmi thing Iâve ever seen in my life,â you whisper to him, all without taking your eyes off the extravagance in front of you. âIs this a dress rehearsal for her wedding next year?â
He bites down on his lips hard to keep his laughter to himself. Of course, youâre dead on. Nothing about this space feels like his parents, who are supposed to be the sole focus of this entire event. He already found it odd that they agreed to such a big to-do in the first place â especially when it would require their loved ones to go out of their way, literally and financially â but this isâŚ.
âAm I being petty, or is this kind of⌠selfish?â
Petty, no.Â
Psychic? Probably.
âYouâre right, and you should say it.â Seokmin nods and withdraws his arm from yours so that he can drape it properly around your shoulder. âThis way to the beer, please. Weâll need it.â
Merely four steps in the direction to the bar, and a screech rings out from somewhere neither of you can locate. In fact, Seokminâs head is turned the opposite way when someone launches themself at you, damn near ripping you from his hold.
âOh, my god! I knew youâd come!â
Soyeonâs relief in seeing you is palpable. Seokmin can practically feel his bones being crushed as she hugs you tight, swaying from side to side. He catches a glimpse of your expression, which barely peeks through the curtain of his oldest sisterâs hair; youâre far happier now than you were in the elevator.
His sister kisses the side of your head. âI missed you so fucking much. I love my residency program, but I hate how far away it keeps me.â
A solid minute passes by like this. When it starts to get unbearable, Seokmin clears his throat, hoping to remind his sister that she hasnât seen him in months, either; and heâs also standing right here.
Instead of greeting him, Soyeon shoots you a wry smile. âWho is he today? A fugitive youâre harboring?â
In tandem, the two of you appraise him with thoughtfully narrowed eyes. See, this he didnât miss: being both of his sistersâ least favorite younger sibling.
âOh, no, though I can see why you think that.â You shake your head, then reach out to pat his shoulder patronizingly. âIf anyone asks, this is a foreign diplomat, and Iâm the interpreter he canât understand a word without. Best not say hi to him; he wonât know what youâre saying.â
Soyeon nods, though Seokmin wonders if she truly gets what youâre trying to achieve. Not quite, he realizes a moment later. Instead, she covers his chin with her hand so she can squeeze both his cheeks at once.
âHeâs adorable,â she coos. âDoesnât look old enough or mature enough for diplomacy, though.â
Seokmin rolls his eyes. âWell, we canât all be doctors, can we?â
Again, in tandem, all eyes on him widen with feigned shock. Between overlapping gasps of âhe does understand!â and âsomeoneâs been studying!â, he shakes off his sisterâs touch and scowls.
âIf youâre going to keep bullying me, can you at least do it at the bar? That way, I can numb my suffering with booze.â
At this, Soyeon drops the charade and pulls him into a hug like a vice grip. She holds him so tightly that his vision starts to get spotty. Itâs not until he gently pats her back, begging for air, that she lets him go.
âI missed you too, Thumper,â she swears, prompting you to snicker.
Now, heâs annoyed for a completely different reason â one that makes even less sense to him. That nickname hasnât bothered him in the last decade, so it shouldnât now. Then again, the only person whoâs called him Thumper since middle school is you.
The rules are different for you, if they exist at all.
âAnd I promise to catch up with you later, but Iâve got five thousand questions for Bambi, and the answers arenât half as juicy with you around.â
Just like that, his plus-one is subtracted.
As much as you love Soyeon, sheâs no Seokmin. With him, talking is easy; he never rushes to fill silences, doesnât steer the conversation with a white-knuckled grip.Â
On the contrary, his oldest sister comes forward with a pickaxe, smashing through small talk while she mines for the wild stories she thinks sheâs missed out on since moving away.
You donât blame her, really. If you spent all your hours in a hospital, only sleeping in the lulls between other peopleâs trauma, youâd probably become just as intense â the human equivalent of a cracked-open fire hydrant â in the search for closeness, too.
In the thirty minutes you sit with her, you brief her on all the cliffhangers youâd left her with the last time you saw her.
Yes, youâre still stuck with your lease in the same apartment; and the old lady next door still regularly sets off the buildingâs fire alarm by accident.
No, you decided not to stay with Kai and havenât spoken since the breakup; he needed more of your time and energy than you wanted to sacrifice for him.
No, Seokmin still hasnât gone out with anyone that you know of in months. In fact, itâs been so long since either of you have touched on this topic, especially compared to how little time he and the last girl were together, that you canât even remember her name.Â
Beyond that first, limited fact, you keep your mouth shut about the rest. Itâs not your business to share; and it wouldnât kill her to ask Seokmin about himself for once.
The longer you spend with her, the more frustrated you find yourself getting, although you keep this fact to yourself, too. Soyeon and Seonmi have both spent their lives fussing about Seokmin, talking about him like heâs some helpless baby, without doing much to get to know him.
Thatâs it.
If you were at all confident that Soyeon would take the initiative, youâd let her find all of this out on her own. She wonât, you know, but maybe itâll sink in if she hears it from you.
âSeokminâs doing really well, now that you mention it,â you offer, though she barely mentioned him in the first place. âHe got promoted last month; heâs now lead architect on that massive commercial lot downtown. Apparently, itâs still a secret, whatever it is theyâre putting there. Must be something special.â
Seokmin is something special, you all but yell inside your head.
Soyeonâs eyes brighten.Â
Nobody loves secrets quite like she does. You wait for the barrage, anticipating all the questions to which youâll have to respond with âseriously, I donât know,â but they donât come.
Instead, she puts her drink back on its coaster, reaches out, and squeezes your wrist with her slightly chilled hand. âIâm grateful that heâs always had you, Bambi. If he didnât, I donât know if heâd lean in to opportunities like that.â
The look on her face tells you she means it. Maybe thatâs what makes your stomach sour: that she can sit there, hearing of Seokminâs accomplishments, and still find a way not to credit him for them.
Anger ignites inside of you. The flames lick up your esophagus, ready to explode, and you suck in a breath with every intention of letting her burn.
But then an arm slinks around your waist. Seokminâs head bumps slightly against yours until youâre cheek to cheek.
âI hope Iâm interrupting something.â
For a second, you think his slight tipsiness caused him to misspeak. Tilting your head to the side the best you can, you look at him out of the corner of your eye and catch his very subtle wink.
Soyeon opens her mouth, but Seokmin makes his wish a reality.
âSorry, sis,â Seokmin says, entirely unapologetically. âI just found out that the band takes requests; and Iâll be goddamned if Bambi and I donât show you clowns the meaning of dance.â
It takes no encouragement whatsoever for you to slip off your stool, get to your feet, and inch your way closer to his side. Then, like a starting gun was fired, the two of you bolt clumsily away from the bar, with you shouting âsorry!â over your shoulder as you go.
Your heels skid against the dance floor when you finally reach it, but Seokmin steadies you before you can eat shit in front of god and everyone.
âYouâre way too expressive, you know that?â The fact that heâs out-of-breath doesnât keep him from laughing. âI couldâve seen that grumpy turtle face of yours from space.â
Unintentionally, you prove his point, drawing your eyebrows together and frowning. âI do not ââ
ââ Also, I lied,�� he interrupts yet again.
This, coupled with the everything else going on, leaves you too stunned to speak.
âThis band is all trot, all the time. They donât take requests â trust me, I tried â but if you stay here with me long enough, we can kill two birds with one stone.â
Seokmin doesnât wait for you to answer because he knows itâs a yes. He doesnât wait for you to assume your position, either, and instead holds your left hand in his right before placing your right on his left shoulder. This close, you feel the urge to tell him how handsome he looks with his hair parted off his forehead. You donât, however.
The music swells behind you. Seokmin leads, and you follow, swaying slowly and moving across the floor.
âTwo birds?â You remember to ask, one eyebrow arched.
His right arm lifts. âSpin,â he whispers. You step under his arm, then twirl. While youâre facing the opposite direction, he continues, âThere. Do you see it?â
âOh, my god.â
You do.
The bar stool you were just occupying is now filled by Seokminâs great-uncle, Hajoon, while his new and much younger girlfriend, Yunhee, hovers near his shoulder. Even from this distance, you can see the look of abject distress on Soyeonâs face, totally unhidden by her attempt to seem engaged.
You return to your position in front of Seokmin, your hand accidentally landing on his bicep, rather than his shoulder. Flustered by the deceptive bulk there, you immediately scoot your palm back to where it belongs.
He leans in so that only you can hear him. It doesnât feel necessary at all, given how loud the bandâs horn section is, but you donât recoil this time.Â
âThey had me trapped over by the appetizers,â he explains, low voice making you shiver involuntarily. âEvery time he started a story with when I was your age, I wanted to point out that Yunhee hadnât been born yet.â
You canât help the laugh that erupts out of you and therefore canât pull your head away from Seokminâs ear in time to save him. Instead of wincing or complaining, he looks at you and breaks into laughter of his own as soon as your eyes meet. The effect doubles, and before you know it, both of you are teary-eyed.
âHow the hell did you get away from him?â
Itâs a feat you've never once managed. Uncle Hajoonâs inability to read a room is equal parts due to his horrible hearing and his tendency to never stop talking. Even if he did leave space in the conversation for you to excuse yourself, youâd never successfully get the message across.
Seokmin lifts his arm again but not for you. He takes his leave to spin himself, simpering as he goes, âThatâs where Yunhee came in handy, actually. I didnât know she had it in her, but sheâs not as much of a dud as we initially thought.â
âOh?â
âShe told him that I should be able to dance with my girlfriend, and he shouldnât keep me any longer.â He shrugs. âIt didnât seem like the time to correct her.â
All the heat in your body goes straight to your cheeks. Nonetheless, you attribute it to the dancing and choke out, âNo royalties for me, then.â
âNot this time.â Seokmin shakes his head. âI said that Soyeon was trying to catch up with everyone and would love to hear his stories.â
You bite back a grin. âYouâre a bastard, you know that?â
âMaybe.â He smiles with every single one of his teeth. âBut youâre free.â
âSurprisingly so. I havenât felt the Eye of Sauron on me at all yet.â Just in case your statement serves as a jinx, you glance around the room for Seonmi. The tension youâve been keeping in each one of your muscles slackens when, once again, your radar is blip-free.
âDinner was supposed to start ten minutes ago. If I had to guess, sheâs either leaving a scathing Yelp review or personally waterboarding the chef as we speak.â
âBoth at the same time,â you counter, earning a wry smile. âShe inherited your momâs self-assuredness. If she believes she can, she will.â
After the pair of you dance through two more songs, the band breaks, and the hotelâs battalion of waiters come in, bearing domed, silver trays. Seokmin takes off in a hurry for your assigned table in the far corner of the ballroom, so famished that he barely remembers to tug you along behind him.
Through the meal and all its complimentary wine pairings, you do your best to focus on the conversation. Seokmin introduced you to the few people sitting with you that you havenât had the occasion to meet yet. While he does what comes naturally to him, charming them with ease, you struggle for the first time to pay attention to him.
A few tables over, Seonmi sits down with her fiancĂŠ, joining the company of her parents; Soyeon and her date are there, too, leaving Seokmin out by design. Like an insane person, you can only watch her, rather than Seokminâs blatant theft of bites from your plate. She laughs at whatever jokes her mother cracks, but youâd recognize that look of veiled angst anywhere. She isnât happy, you realize. You canât avoid the feeling that youâre the reason why she isnât.
Time passes, somehow too quickly and too slowly. The plates are emptied, then cleared away by the wait staff â except for your half-empty glass, which is your third. Much like the other guests at your table, the joyful buzz youâd been feeling so far leaves, too.
All thatâs left is you, Seokmin, and that ominous, storm cloud you canât seem to shake.
âYouâll probably feel better if you talk to her.â
Heâs always more observant than you give him credit for. You snap out of your zoned-out stare across the room in order to look at him. You frown. âI doubt it. She already looks pissed. Me parading my presence here despite her isnât going to help anything.â
âBambi,â Seokmin sighs, not impatient but gentle. âSheâs not exactly warm, but she has always liked you. Thereâs literally no reason why she wouldnât be happy to see you ââ
You open your mouth to argue.
ââ that happened over twenty years ago, and you really need to stop feeling guilty about it ââ
You close your mouth, cross your arms self-consciously, and sink in your seat. Despite yourself, you glance over at him and catch the way heâs looking at you. He doesnât need to say the words out loud for you to hear them.
Itâs either the unspoken dare, his reassuring, soft-eyed smile, or all the blasted merlot that does you in. Youâre not sure which of the three was the coup de grâce, and as you slink off towards her table, you realize it doesnât matter. For one reason or another, youâve decided that fear isnât going to get the better of you this time.
Seonmi somehow senses you coming. Even without the band underscoring your movement, your timid steps across the mahogany parquet shouldâve been impossible for anyone to pick up on.Â
Must be an older sister thing, you think, being doomed to keep a perpetual eye on others.Â
She doesnât say anything when you slip into the chair next to her, which doesnât bode well but isnât a deal breaker, in and of itself. The important thing is that she doesnât get up to leave. You tell yourself that this is a good sign. The knot in your stomach begs to differ, however.
Say something.
Say anything.
âEverythingâs⌠lovely, Seonmi, seriously.â You gesture around you, smiling, but she only gives you a cursory look. âYouâve really outdone yourself with this one.â
Seonmi takes a sip of her cocktail â something bitter, the petty voice in your head assumes â and lets the corner of her mouth rise slightly. If itâs the closest thing youâll get to a smile, youâll take it. She hasnât granted you a proper one in the decades since you got gum in her favorite Barbieâs hair.
âThanks, kid,â she sighs, setting the drink back down on her personalized, cardboard coaster.
You canât remember the last time she called you âBambiâ, let alone your real name. Just like Seokmin, youâve always been a child to her. Apparently, you always will be, no matter what you do.
Her grip around the glass remains rigid, not unlike her overall posture. Condensation weeps under and around her manicured fingers, uninhibited. You watch those droplets soak through the coasterâs design, darkening her parentsâ initials and wedding date, while you mull over whose turn it is to talk.
Ultimately, as is usually the case, Seonmi makes this decision for you. Without so much as a glance at you out of the corner of her eye, she muses, âIt was a lot of work, getting all the details ironed out.â
You pick up on the subtext immediately. One of those details wouldâve been the guest list; another, the invitations. Seokmin assumed it was all an accident and said as much to you no fewer than a hundred times, but this little comment from his sister blows his assurances to smithereens.Â
Your exclusion wasnât an accident at all.
Suddenly, somehow, the room is twenty degrees colder. You shoot a panicked glance over to where Seokmin was just sitting, wanting nothing more than to slink back to his warmth with your tail between your legs; but heâs not where you left him. In fact, heâs nowhere to be found.
Fuck.
âAh,â is the best you can do.
And then the two of you sit awkwardly in silence while the seconds age in dog years.
You shouldâve brought a drink over with you so youâd have something to do with your hands. Or your phone â except you left it on its charger, you idiot â or a time machine, so you can revoke your bullshit decision to walk over here in the first â
âHe deserves that, donât you think?â
The combined suddenness of her voice and the switch in topics makes you jolt ever so slightly. You try to pass it off, to pretend that youâre simply adjusting the skirt of your dress, but your efforts go unnoticed. Seonmi is too busy pointing casually ahead, drawing your focus to the center of the dance floor.
Like absolutely no one else is watching, Mr. Lee twirls around his laughing wife, his heart-shaped smile beaming so brightly that it almost hurts your eyes. The love of his life has to hold one of her hands over her mouth to keep her laughter from bursting out; the other hand is raised with the rest of that arm, allowing her husband to spin himself underneath. When heâs halfway through, she surprises him, drops her arm down, and embraces him fully, giggling all the while.
It almost makes you tear up â Mr. Leeâs unabashed, silly love, and how much it reminds you of his spitting-image of a son; the way Seokminâs motherâs eyes sparkle in the same blissful, radiant way his do. Maybe the same canât be said for his older sisters, but itâs abundantly clear where Seokmin came from. Itâs even clearer where he should end up.
âYes,â you breathe, and it almost sounds like a laugh because of course, he does. Before you can stop yourself, you ask, âIs that really a question?â
No, you realize too late, itâs bait.
Without batting an eye, she counters, âIs it really so hard for you to let him have that?â
Seonmi turns her head to look you dead in the eye. Confusingly, despite her words, thereâs nothing in her tone or gaze that reads like malice. If anything, the slight furrow of her brow shouts concern.
Your mind is spinning too fast to keep up with. Whatever her next move is, youâre too dizzy now to see it coming and too disoriented to follow it. With the knot in your stomach tightening further, you stammer, âIs â what?â
âGod,â Seonmi drops her face into her hands. âYou donât get it, do you?â
A fish on dry land, all you seem to know how to do is open and close your mouth. You may not be literally flailing, but with the state your mind is in, you may as well start.
âSeokmin loves love.âÂ
She says each of these words slowly, like sheâs trying to hammer each nail through a thick skull.Â
âItâs the one thing heâs wanted most since he was a kid, yet I can count on one hand the number of short-term relationships heâs been in. He doesnât ever bring anyone home to meet us; he doesnât bring anyone to weddings, or parties, or holidays; he just brings you.â
Of course, youâve been right there through all of his situationships. Heâs always scant on details when they end â and youâve never pressed for any â but you know better than anyone that nothing has stuck long-term.Â
Youâve never thought about how odd this really is, but with Seonmi spelling it out for you now, you canât come up with a single, good reason why someone as objectively incredible as Seokmin canât make these things work â or why, even as you rack your brain, the only constant you can find in his life is you.
She glares now, as if sheâs daring you to speak; as if youâve got anything sheâd deem worth adding. The bulldozer revs up again, whether youâre ready or not: âYouâve always been the only person he saves space for, whether or not thereâs a place for you, and he has no room left in his life for someone to love him like that ââÂ
Seonmi points again to her parents, who are circling slowly on the dance floor, talking softly to one another.Â
âSo, what is it? Do you truly not see what heâs missing, or are you choosing not to because you like his attention?â
Your eyes burn with tears, but you canât let them fall, and you canât wrap your head around why that is.Â
Who are you hiding them from: Seonmi or yourself?
The longer she stares at you, the muddier it gets. You donât want her to be right. You donât want to be the kind of person sheâs describing; but thereâs something awful whispering in the back of your mind, saying that you might be.Â
Youâve left every relationship youâve been in, telling everyone who asks in the aftermath that you like being on your own better. But thatâs bullshit. Itâs not your own company that you keep when youâre single; it Seokminâs.Â
He makes sure that you never spend a day feeling alone, that heâs always available over the phone in the rare times heâs not physically with you. As his best friend, he treats you better than every single one of your exes ever has. Like youâre worth more than anyone else will credit you.
What kind of friend are you if you feel relieved whenever his relationships expire?
Seonmiâs hand drops, landing half-heartedly clenched on the tabletop. Just the same, her voice drops until itâs almost a whisper.Â
âI am begging you,â she pleads, eyes narrowing desperately as they search yours. âIf you donât want him, someone else will. Please just â get the hell out of their way.â
By the time you reach the elevator, all youâre left with is a blur. Youâve already forgotten how the conversation ended, or which one of you was the first to get up. If she said anything else to you, it was drowned out by your own hammering pulse and a looping chorus of voices validating your biggest fear, stating in no uncertain terms that you donât belong.
Youâre shaking when you reach your floor. Heels clicking under unsteady footsteps, you make for room 218; and as you go, you shove your hand into the well-concealed pocket of your dress for the keycard Seokmin forgot to grab himself on the way out earlier.
Heâs certainly not in the room when you finally step inside, although you have no clue where heâs gone. Itâs for the best. The door closes behind you, and with no one to see it happen, you burst into tears.
All rational thought flies out the window, shaken off by the tornado of utter confusion tearing through your brain. You grab your suitcase, needing nothing more than to be anywhere else, and begin haphazardly throwing your things back inside of it.
Why did you still come with him, knowing it wouldnât end well? It wouldnât be the first time youâve told him no; he wouldâve listened if you truly meant it.
If you didnât mean it when you initially tried to squirrel your way out of this, why not? Was it just your friend asking sincerely that won you over without a fight; or was it because you knew, deep down, itâd hurt to see him bring someone else?
Why would it hurt?
The answer to that will crack the foundation of everything the two of you have built, but only if you admit it to yourself. It canât threaten you if you donât say it out loud, donât make it real.
So, you wonât.Â
Youâll bury it deeply enough to forget about, repour the concrete, and tiptoe through the rest of your life with your best friend still at your side.
That is, if your friendship survives the weekend â rather, your sudden departure from it â at all.
âHalmoni, itâs time to go back to your hotel, okay?âÂ
He coos this, as if heâs pleading with a toddler at bedtime, because thatâs exactly what it feels like to wrangle the drunk, 80-year-old clinging to his arm.
Physically, she needs to hold onto Seokmin to keep herself steady. Mentally, sheâs ready to run and has made several attempts to do just that when she thinks his guard is down. Itâs no wonder the hotel staff cornered him and begged him for help; sheâs too wily for those who donât know her.
The manager had at least done him the courtesy of hailing a cab. It sits out front, warm and waiting, while he shepherds his grandmother through the lobby.
ââ and another thing!â She slurs.
There is never not another thing. She shouldnât bother concluding her sentences in the first place; sheâs never done talking.
âI told your sister â I said, Sunny ââ
Seonmi, he dares to presume, although he doesnât dare to correct her.
ââ you canât have stuff like this ââ She gestures animatedly, albeit vaguely around her. ââ in places like this and expect retirees to pay for it! I said â oh, what did I say? â Ah, I said, âfind me the cheapest motel in the area, or Iâll be staying in your room with youâ ââ
Her kitten heels hit the brick outside with an angry thwump.
Seokmin canât help himself. âShe didnât go for that?â
âNo!â His grandmother squawks.Â
The driver sees the ball of a woman wobbling his way and quickly exits the cab, skirts around it, and flings the back door open for her.Â
âI canât imagine why, halmoni,â he lies through his teeth, which shine down on her in his best, least sincere smile. âYouâre a blast in a glass.â
She roars with laughter, even while two grown adults work together to pour her into the backseat without bumping her head on the doorframe. âGlast in a blass!â
âExactly. Can you â?â
He gives up before he finishes voicing his request; itâs no use. Instead, he bends down to hug her and finagles the buckle of her seatbelt while sheâs too distracted to fight him off. That click is the most beautiful sound heâs ever heard, after the clunk of the door shutting her in.
By the time Seokmin turns to the cab driver, his grandmother is fully slumped in her seat, pilled peacoat rising and falling with every wine-laced breath.
âI am so sorry.â He sighs, which devolves into a sheepish laugh, and fishes all of the cash out of his pocket. No tip could possibly cover the emotional toll of this ordeal, so he does his best and gives the driver everything he has.
The driverâs eyes widen. Seokmin gets the impression that he doesnât quite understand the task heâs undertaking.Â
Poor bastard.
Seokmin continues, âMy grandfather is at the inn already; he didnât feel well enough to come here, but heâll be ready to get her inside once you drop her off.â
âSounds easy enough.â The driver smiles and holds out his hand to shake.Â
Seokmin reciprocates, and he declines to explain just how wrong that assessment is. He thanks the man and chirps a quick goodbye to his grandmother before rushing back inside.
Walking into the ballroom, he hopes to find you and Seonmi laughing about whatever misunderstanding had gotten in your way before. At the very least, he expects you to still be sitting next to each other at the same table. That would be good enough, he thinks; he could assist in repairing the situation from there.
The problem, it seems, is beyond his help. Neither one of you occupies the same table. If his quick scan tells him anything, youâre not even in the same room.
No matter which way he turns, he canât spot you. His sister, on the other hand, is near the far corner, having what looks like a nightmarish conversation with their parents. There are approximately five billion things Seokmin would rather do than get in the middle of that, but you donât have your phone on you, and he has no other way to find out where you went.
Above the heads of the two women, Seokminâs father catches sight of his approach. They lock eyes; thereâs something insane in his fatherâs gaze. The older man shakes his head, mouthing âno.â
Seokmin stops short, raises his hands with the palms up to get across his confusion, and mouths back, âBambi?â
In response, his father extends a single finger and points upwards. He then makes a shooing motion with his hand. His wife and daughter are so engrossed in their argument that neither of them catches the pantomime or Seokminâs quick exit, back the way he came.
On the elevator ride upstairs, Seokmin worries. The most likely explanation is that you went to find your phone so that you could find him â but you havenât texted or called him in the time heâs been looking for you, so he supposes it isnât likely after all.Â
Maybe, he thinks, the wine caught up to you. Youâre not as strong a drinker as you think you are. While he walks down the hallway to room 218, he steels himself. Even though you both hate it, heâs ready to hold your hair if he walks in and finds you with your head in the toilet. That dress looks too good on you not to be expensive; heâd rather talk you out of your embarrassment tomorrow than have you shell out for dry-cleaning.
You didnât deadbolt the door behind you, which strikes him as odd. In fact, you didnât even close it properly; it isnât latched. All he has to do is tap on it for the door to open.
âBambi?â He calls out before stepping inside entirely, thinking itâs only decent to confirm in advance that heâs not an intruder. âSorry for disappearing. I had to pour my grandmother into a cab â it was exactly as awful as it sounds.â
The faint rustling sound he hears isnât coming from the bathroom, which is both dark and unoccupied. Part of him wants to take this as a good sign, but the rest of him wonders if heâs walking in on a burglary. That flicker of fear is followed by a stupid sense of validation:Â
You always laugh at him when he cites this as his reason for choosing the bed closest to the door; you claim itâs statistically unlikely. Finally being able to say âI told you soâ after a robbery wouldnât make either of your belongings magically reappear, of course. That said, it might make him feel a little better.
But the figure rooting through your suitcase isnât a bandit at all. Itâs you with your coat on.
âUm,â he starts, unintentionally startling you. âWhat isâŚ.âÂ
His question peters out when you look up at him. There are broken mascara tracks down your cheeks, as if you tried to wipe them off without actually looking at them. Above them, your wide eyes are wet, like youâre seconds away from crying all over again. Even worse, youâre trembling.
Seokminâs only instinct is to reach for you. Before he can wrap his arms around you, you jerk away from him. âPlease donât.â
So, he stops, though he doesnât understand why. This is quite literally the only time in your life that youâve pushed him away.
âWhatâs going on?â Ideally, heâd project calm at a time like this. He just sounds desperate. âWhat happened with Seonmi?â
âShe â um, she didnât â It wasnât that bad; Iâm just⌠You know how sensitive I get when I drink wine.â
Like a switch flips, a half-hearted smile takes over the bottom half of your face. Itâs not real; if it was, your eyes would light up and crinkle at the corners. Whatever that look is, itâs bullshit.
Seokmin gestures to your suitcase, where everything you brought with you has been unceremoniously shoved. âSensitive enough to, what, run away? No. Iâm not buying it. She said something â or did something â to make you this upset. Bambi, what happened?â
His urgency is selfish, he knows it. Seonmiâs always been way too intuitive for her own good. Thereâs no way she hasnât noticed the way he looks at you when you arenât looking; how god-awful he is at acting platonic.
He tries â has been trying, for a long time now â to shake these feelings off because he knows youâre not emotionally available. Because he knows who heâs supposed to be for you, and how devastating it would be if he threw your friendship away.
That devastation is right in front of him now; and itâll push you out of his life forever if he doesnât shut it down. He has to get in front of it.
You strike first, though. âSeokmin, why didnât you bring anyone else?â
There are two ways for him to interpret that question: with the emphasis on anyone, meaning not you; or as an escape route. For your sake, he chooses the latter.
âShe gave me a plus-one, not a plus-two,â he says softly.
Despite his tone, it must hit you like a punch. You nod curtly, once. âGot it. Basic math. Thanks, Seokmin; that was never my strongest subject.â
Foot, meet mouth.
You immediately set back to work, reaching for the lid of your suitcase to close and zip. Before he thinks once, let alone twice, his hand darts out and flattens against the mesh inner pocket on the top, preventing you from doing so.
âNo.â He shakes his head firmly. âNot happening.â
You donât scowl at him the way he expects, nor do you even stop to look at him. Itâs far worse than that; your eyes start swimming, focused helplessly on your suitcase.Â
When you speak, your voice cracks. âI shouldnât have come in the first place. I knew that this invitation shit wasnât an accident; I knew I wasnât welcome to ââ
ââ You came anyway.â Seokmin doesnât mean to snap at you, but the point is moot. Softening at the edges, he quickly continues, âAnd Iâm glad that you did because I donât want to be here with âanyone elseâ.â
Itâs not the whole truth, so it may as well be a lie. You know him too well for him to get away with it; it was stupid of him to try. Your head turns, and the slight narrow of your eyes says it all.
I triple-dog dare you to tell me the truth.
This fork in the road has two dead ends. His only options are to do just that or double down and lie straight to your face, while you see straight through him. Either option pulls the pin, he figures, so itâs no longer a question of who gets hurt; itâs who gets hurt worse.
Seokmin jumps on the grenade.
âI donât want to be with anyone else!â
It comes out too loudly, startling you. In a way, itâs angry, too. He wishes could project that anger onto Seonmi for starting shit, as usual, but the person heâs maddest at is himself for putting you both in this position.
For the first time ever, he canât decipher the expression on your face. Heâd shove his foot into his mouth to try and keep himself quiet, but his adrenaline is firing on all cylinders, and he canât seem to stop shouting.
âAnd Iâm really fucking sorry to say it because I know you donât want to hear it, not from me or anyone else. So, you can leave, alright? Iâm not going to stop you.â
The force of the surprise almost knocks the air out of him, so quick that Seokmin canât process whatâs happening until his back is flush to the wall behind him â until your hands, flat against his white button-up, curl to grip the fabric, and you kiss him so hard that he sees stars.
Youâre surprised too, it seems. When you pull away, chest heaving, you freeze in the same way he does. Eyes searching the otherâs, unsure of what to do now that twenty-plus yearsâ worth of boundaries have been blown to bits.
You whisper, âAre you still sorry?â
Of the five million feelings swelling inside of him â fear, kind of; joy, yes; fucked up by your blown-out pupils, definitely â regret isnât one of them.
ActuallyâŚ
He cups your face in his hands like water from a spring, drinks down the sight of you in this new and perfect light. âIâm only sorry that it took me this long to tell you,â he confesses before kissing you back twice as hard.
Youâd ask Seokmin to pinch you and prove to you that youâre not dreaming, but the fear you feel at the thought of waking up is too overwhelming.Â
Even if it wasnât, he canât help you, can he?Â
His hands are far too busy.
Your pretty dress is long gone now, having been shucked off and tossed somewhere out of sight. In its place, itâs Seokminâs body that now drapes over yours, warm in touch and tone, like molten gold.Â
His middle and marriage fingers curl inside you, working you up again; and all you can do is cling desperately to his hair, whimper, and wait for the fall.
âI take back what I said earlier,â he murmurs between nips and kisses at your neck.
You canât ask him to elaborate. Youâre too close to careening over the edge for the second time tonight; too busy babbling fucking nonsense.
His simper against your throat reverberates all the way down, lights up your every nerve in tandem like a switchboard. âOnly an idiot would tell you to be less expressive.â
The pad of his thumb swirls over your clit; its movement synchronizes with his middle finger inside of you, targeting your weak spot. He presses down on that spongy patch of nerves, and your hips buck involuntarily, a hallmark of your body begging for you while your words fail.
âYou were right, though.âÂ
You summon all your concentration. âIâm always right,â you counter. Seokmin pulls his mouth away from the underside of your jaw just to look at you pointedly. âYouâll have to be more specific.â
He picks up the pace of his ministrations, pulling no punches. Youâre teetering on the ledge with no real ability to lift your own neck; your head crashes back against the pillow as you wail, clenching and gushing around his fingers.
âI do know how sensitive you get,â he snickers before slipping his fingers from you and sweeping down to kiss you sweetly.
The ringing in your ears has barely subsided, but youâve decided not to take anymore of his teasing laying down. Slipping your fingers from his hair, you move your hands to his shoulders; and with whatever muscle control you still maintain, you flip him off of you, onto his back.
âHow long ââÂ
You climb over his lap and straddle him, placing your palms flat against his chest. Itâs as much a show of dominance as it is a carefully disguised trick for balance.Â
ââ have you been waiting to say that?â
Caught red handed, Seokmin shoots you that trademark, heart-shaped smile. His cheeks were already flushed from the effort he just expended on you; that perfect pink only deepens when he blushes and laughs, âWhat, you think I canât come up with killer lines in the heat of the moment?â
You scratch your nails gently down the lines of his abdominal muscles. âNope,â you purr.
Sitting up on his elbows, Seokmin tilts his head to the side and narrows his dark eyes at you. Youâre nowhere near used to seeing him look at you like this, like youâre something to be devoured. The feeling of being wanted so badly makes your stomach flip.
âGive me some credit, wonât you?â He asks, voice low. âYouâre a knockout; youâre naked in front of me for the first time; and itâs a miracle I can talk at all when I feel this concussed.â
When you lean in, he licks his lips expectantly. Youâre close enough to kiss him, of course, but you stop a few millimeters shy of your mark and watch him fight the urge to pout. His eyes search yours, almost pleadingly.
âIs that why youâre still not naked?â
Seokminâs next move is to reach for the black briefs heâs still got on, but you stop him, encircling each of his wrists with your hands.
âAh, ah, ah,â you tut with a patronizing shake of your head. âYouâre fired. Iâm in control now.â
If the little sigh he lets out is any indication, he is very much on board with your self-promotion.
He takes your cue and reels himself in, allowing you to move further down his body, your fingertips hooking under his elastic waistband and tugging as you go. When his length finally springs free, you duck your head to take him into your mouth, beyond eager to feel his weight on your tongue.
âOh, my god,â he groans, eyelids fluttering, while you swirl your tongue around his head. âFeels s-so ââ
The rest of his sentence gets stuck in his throat; you take what you can of him down your own throat, working whatever remains with your hand.Â
Seokmin wants so badly to watch, you know he does, but heâs sensitive, too. His head tips back, eyes closed and mouth hanging open.
Itâs messy, the spit dribbling down your chin and the sound brought forth by the suction of your mouth around him. The obscenity of it all spurs you on. Nothing inspires you quite like Seokminâs breathy whines and low moans, though. Above all else, itâs his reaction to you that slicks the inside of your thighs.
Youâd give him the ending he deserves, right down the back of your throat, but you feel his fingertips graze your shoulder, beckoning you to look up at him.
Voice rough, he pleads, âCome here.â
With his steadying hands on you, you move back into your original position with your bent knees on either side of him. You immediately spot the indent his teeth have left on his lower lip, which is now slightly swollen. Delicately, you brush your thumb over the mark. âOh, youâre a goner.â
Seokmin looks at you pointedly. Though you tease, youâre even worse off: drunk on the taste of him, as much as the sight of him underneath you, wanting you just as badly.
âAlright, alright,â you concede. âI am, too.âÂ
The hand you use to wave dismissively at him then reaches down between your thighs, fingers wrapping around his cock and lining it up with your entrance.
âBut Iâm taking you down with me.â
And you do.
So thoroughly that you barely recall him staggering off to the bathroom when all is said and done, the wash cloth he returns with to clean you up, or the way you slump into his waiting arms before promptly falling asleep.
You sleep so soundly, in fact, that you donât stir when the sun blares through the open curtains. Likewise, when Seokmin carefully maneuvers himself out of the tangle of your limbs and places your head on a real pillow instead, youâre none the wiser.
What finally gets to you is the clatter of the expensive, hotel-issued shampoo clattering against the floor of the shower, echoing off the tile like a sonic boom. You sit bolt upright in bed, staring bleary-eyed in the direction of the bathroom.Â
As if on cue, Seokmin pokes his head out of the doorway to see if you managed to sleep through the noise. Damp hair splays over his forehead, hanging just as loosely as his lazily-knotted bathrobe. If you werenât still too sleepy to function, youâd love nothing more than to grab him by that tie and drag him back to bed.
âShit. Iâm sorry, Bambi,â he coos, though his mouth is full of both toothpaste and a toothbrush in a distinctly greener shade of blue than usual.
You merely point at his mouth with a half-powered look of distress, otherwise unable to put your suspicion into words. He doesnât get it; he glances down at his chest, looking for what he assumes is a stray glob of paste.
When you finally do speak, itâs a prayer: âPlease tell me thatâs not mine.â
Seokmin blinks at you, then down his nose at the toothbrush heâs using. He cocks his head to the side, opens his mouth to assure you it isnât, and finally, when the realization makes his eyes widen, he groans.
You wail, âNoooooo!â
Memories of your last trip together clash before your mind â specifically, attempting to navigate a drug store in a foreign language while you shopped for the replacement toothbrush Seokmin is currently holding.
Ears bright red with embarrassment, he ducks back into the bathroom. Immediately, you hear a rush of water from the tap, which nearly drowns out his feeble cry of âIâm sorry!â
âI know itâs an honest mistake, but how do you make it twice?âÂ
You collapse back onto the pillows and bury your face in your palms; and you stay that way, even when you hear him padding softly over to you. The mattress shifts under his weight as he makes his way, one knee at a time, until you feel him looming over you. His hands reach out and gently pull yours from your face.
Before you can get any ideas, Seokmin flattens himself on top of you; a weighted blanket, smelling like vanilla and spearmint. He folds his arms across your chest and props his chin up on the top of his right wrist, bright eyes sparkling as he peers up at you.
Suddenly, you find it very difficult to be annoyed with him. The worst part is that none of this is by design. He always just looks at you this way, not to get out of trouble but because youâre you.
Your hand reaches out of its own accord and brushes the remaining damp strands off his forehead. When your touch lingers, Seokmin leans into it, warming your palm with his cheek.
âHey,â you say, after failing to come up with anything better.
He beams. âHi.â
âWhy are we awake at this hour?â
That smile of his evaporates slowly, giving way to a grimace youâve seen before. âSeungcheol and Mingyu want to meet up at the ski lodge before the post-brunch crowd gets there,â he explains. âAnd I told my parents weâd get breakfast with them first, since yesterday was⌠well, mostly a disaster.â
âAnd it will conveniently provide you with time to think of a way out of snowboarding?â You chuckle quietly and pat his cheek.
Seokmin shakes his head firmly, then stretches his neck enough to kiss you.
âNo,â he mumbles defiantly against your lips. âI never back down from a triple-dog dare.â
#dokyeom#lee seokmin#dk#svt#dokyeom x reader#seokmin x reader#dk x reader#svt x reader#dokyeom fluff#dokyeom angst#dokyeom smut#dokyeom imagines#dokyeom scenarios#dokyeom fic#dokyeom fanfic#svt imagines#svt scenarios#svt smut#svt fanfic#svt fic#kvanity#re: triple dog dare#i hate tagging shit for people with multiple name variations oh my god#i give up
762 notes
¡
View notes